9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page i
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Globalizati...
27 downloads
1447 Views
4MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page i
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia focuses on the relationship between spatial dynamics of globalization and an active civil society by examining the different conditions in which civic spaces emerge in Pacific Asian cities. It makes the important argument that civic spaces are crucial to the production and meaning of liveable cities. Experiences from seven countries and at the global scale are brought together to illuminate how the engagement of civil society in the public sphere is contingent upon creating civic spaces for community life and collective action. The research brought together in this book addresses: •
• • •
The links between civic spaces and civil society; the different types of civic spaces and their connections to civil society efforts at organization and the controls and constraints state and capital interventions place on civic spaces. The social production of civic spaces: how the case studies speak to the formation and transformation of civic spaces in different contexts. Regulation of civic spaces: how state, capital and the community interact in and engage in contestations as well as cooperation over civic spaces. Civic spaces and community mobilization: how civic spaces are sites for the initiation of collective action and can be the outcomes of such action.
This unique book provides a cogent analysis and a series of ten case studies on Pacific Asian countries, adding new research on globalization and civil society that has until now focused on the West. It will be of great interest to a broad range of disciplines including politics, urban studies, geography, sociology, globalization and Asian studies. Mike Douglass is Professor of Urban and Regional Planning and the Director of the Globalization Research Center at the University of Hawaii, USA. K.C. Ho is Professor of Sociology at the National University of Singapore. Giok Ling Ooi is Professor at the National Institute of Education at Nanyang Technological University, Singapore. She is also Adjunct Professorial Fellow at the Institute of Policy Studies.
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page ii
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page iii
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia The social production of civic spaces
Edited by Mike Douglass, K.C. Ho and Giok Ling Ooi
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page iv
First published 2008 by Routledge 2 Park Square Milton Park Abingdon Oxon OX14 4RN Simultaneously published in the USA and Canada by Routledge 270 Madison Avenue, New York, NY 10016 This edition published in the Taylor & Francis e-Library, 2007. “To purchase your own copy of this or any of Taylor & Francis or Routledge’s collection of thousands of eBooks please go to www.eBookstore.tandf.co.uk.” Routledge is an imprint of the Taylor & Francis Group, an informa business. © 2008 Mike Douglass, K.C. Ho and Giok Ling Ooi for selection and editorial matter; individual contributors, their contributions All rights reserved. No part of this book may be reprinted or reproduced or utilised in any form or by any electronic, mechanical, or other means, now known or hereafter invented, including photocopying and recording, or in any information storage or retrieval system, without permission in writing from the publishers. British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data A catalogue record for this book is available from the British Library Library of Congress Cataloging in Publication Data Globalization, the city, and civil society in Pacific Asia: the social production of civic spaces / edited by Mike Douglass, K.C. Ho and Giok Ling Ooi. p. cm.–(Rethinking globalizations; 6) Includes bibliographical references and index. ISBN 978-0-415-39789-6 (hardback: alk. paper) – ISBN 978-0-20393938-3 (e-book: alk. paper) 1. Public spaces–Political aspects–Southeast Asia. 2. Public spaces–Social aspects–Southeast Asia. 3. Civil society–Southeast Asia. 4. Political participation– Southeast Asia. 5. Spatial behavior–Southeast Asia. 6. Culture and globalization–Southeast Asia. I. Douglass, Mike. II. Ho, Kong-Chong, 1955– III. Ooi, Giok Ling. HT147.S64G56 2007 306.2–dc22 2007014294 ISBN 0-203-93938-7 Master e-book ISBN ISBN 10 0-415-39789-8 (hbk) ISBN 10 0-203-93938-7 (ebk) ISBN 13 978-0-415-39789-6 (hbk) ISBN 13 978-0-203-93938-3 (ebk)
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page v
Contents
List of figures List of tables List of contributors Preface Acknowledgements 1 Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
vii ix x xiv xvi 1
MIKE DOUGLASS, K.C. HO AND GIOK LING OOI
2 Civil society for itself and in the public sphere: Comparative research on globalization, cities and civic space in Pacific Asia
27
MIKE DOUGLASS
3 Governing cities: Civic spaces, civil society and urban politics
50
K.C. HO
4 State-society relations, the city and civic space
66
GIOK LING OOI
5 Chinese public space: A brief account
79
HENG CHYE KIANG
6 Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times: A case study of globalizing Kuala Lumpur
104
MORSHIDI SIRAT AND ATIKULLAH HJ. ABDULLAH
7 Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages
121
MICHAEL LEAF AND SAMANTHA ANDERSON
8 The pavement as civic space: history and dynamics in the city of Hanoi DAVID KOH
145
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page vi
vi Contents 9 Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai
175
HANLONG LU
10 From street corners to plaza: The production of festive civic space in central Seoul
194
MYUNGRAE CHO
11 Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis
211
MERLYNA LIM
12 Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
231
LIMIN HEE
13 Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the royal ground): From a historic plaza to a civic space
254
PORNPAN CHINNAPONG
14 International meetings and dissent: The city as political space for global issues
268
JOSEPH BOSKI
Index
288
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page vii
Figures
2.1 2.2 2.3 5.1
5.2
5.3
5.4 5.5 5.6 5.7 5.8 5.9 5.10 5.11 5.12 5.13 6.1 6.2 6.3 7.1
Civil society and civic spaces Global timelines, the city and civic space in Pacific Asia Population growth in four Southeast Asia mega urban regions, 1900–2000 Map of Wangcheng in Kaogongji showing a walled city with an orthogonal grid of streets and a walled administration compound in the center Detail from a map of Chang’an engraved on a stone stele in 1080 showing walled residential wards provided with gates on two or four sides of the wards Relief tile from the Han period showing what might be Chengdu’s market surrounded by thick walls and filled with rows of shops Detail of Qingming shanghe tu showing a street lined with shops and a drugstore owned by a minor functionary Schematic reconstruction of Kaifeng showing streets lined with diverse activities Trade and popular entertainment in a contemporary temple fair in Beijing Song period painting of Golden Bright Pond, Liaoning Museum Beijing’s Beihai Park opened to public in 1925 Shimin gongyuan (Citizenship Park) in Beijing “Da-Sai et le modèle rural” Night scene of Beijing’s Wangfujin pedestrian mall Tiananmen guangchang in Beijing Xinhai guangchang in Dalian Spatial distribution of mosques in Kuala Lumpur The National Mosque: the most preferred site for popular protests and demonstration in Kuala Lumpur The Kampung Baru Mosque: discussions and debates normally spill over to nearby food stalls Zhejiang village, Dahongmen, Beijing, China
29 34 36
81
82
84 86 87 88 90 93 93 95 97 97 99 112 113 113 130
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page viii
viii Figures 7.2 Dongmei village, Quanzhou, Fujian, China 8.1 Motorcycles and vendors, Nguyen Du Street, Hanoi, Vietnam 8.2 Vendors outside the Opthamology Hospital, Ba Trieu Street, Hanoi, Vietnam 8.3 Bia hoi (draught beer) shop, Yen Phu Street/Thanh Nien Street corner, Hanoi, Vietnam 9.1 Hierarchical governmental management model during planned economy 10.1 Opening day of Plaza Park, 1 May 2004 11.1 The Hotel Indonesia (HI) roundabout (traffic circle) 11.2 National Monument (Monas) in Independent Square 11.3 Suharto’s franchise YAMP mosque 11.4 The Panoptic signboard 11.5 Warnet 11.6 Hotel Indonesia (HI) roundabout in Thamrin-Sudirman Jakarta intersection was filled up by thousands of protestors, May 1998 11.7 The Jakarta Parliament House swarmed by hundreds of thousands of student protestors, May 1998 11.8 The newly renovated HI roundabout, Jakarta, January 2003 11.9 The fenced Monas Square, Jakarta, January 2003 12.1 Open spaces in the Raffles Plan 12.2 View of the contemporary Padang, and part view of Suntec City on left 12.3 Orchard Road “consumption-scape” 12.4 Filipino workers outside Lucky Plaza on Sunday 12.5 Filipino workers in the almost hidden pedestrian alley between the large complexes of Wisma Atria and Ngee Ann City 12.6 Filipino workers in the green space behind Orchard MRT Station 12.7 A precinct, the basic unit of planning in new towns 13.1 Detail map of Rattanakosin Island area in 1896 (2493 B.E.) showing the original trapezoid shape of Tuuk Phramen/ Sanam Luang 13.2 Politically strategic locations and directions of citizen movement
133 146 165 168 177 207 215 216 219 220 222
223 223 225 226 234 235 240 242
242 243 245
256 262
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page ix
Tables
5.1 5.2 5.3 5.4 5.5 8.1 9.1 10.1 14.1 14.2 14.3
Sizes of some temple squares Size of some civic/citizen guangchang Civic/citizen guangchangs in provincial capital cities Civic/citizen guangchang in non-provincial capital cities Guangchang at district level Approximate salary levels of a sample of officials of a ward and some other low-salary earners in non-ward employment Housing property pattern and citizens’ evaluation on community life A comparison of the spatial expression of two rallies G8 summits, 1975–2005 APEC ministerial conferences, 1989–2005 WTO-Seattle: Seattle Police Department injuries
89 96 98 100 100 160 180 204 271 273 281
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page x
Contributors
Atikullah Hj. Abdullah is Senior Lecturer at the School of Humanities, Universiti Sains Malaysia and currently program chairperson of the Islamic studies section at the school. His main interest and expertise is Islamic economics and social engineering, with specific focus on discovering Islamic-rooted principles in the economic and social life. Atikullah has presented conference papers and published several works relating to Islamic principles in sustainable development and quality of life; Islamic principles in business contracts and agreement; and Islamic principles in disaster management. His current research focuses on Islamic principles of public interest and its role in the development of an Islamic financial system in Malaysia. Samantha Anderson is a Senior Project Officer with the International Centre for Sustainable Cities (ICSC), a non-profit organization headquartered in Vancouver, Canada whose mandate is to catalyse action on urban sustainability in cities around the world through practical demonstration projects, peer learning networks and high profile events. Samantha holds two Masters degrees, one in East Asian Studies from McGill University and one in Urban Planning from the University of British Columbia. Her areas of interest include local economic development, local government capacity, peri–urbanization, migration, gender, and longterm planning. At ICSC, Samantha works primarily on the Sustainable Cities: Partners for Long-term Urban Sustainability (PLUS) Network, a learning network of cities from around the world engaged in long-term planning for urban sustainability. Pornpan (Boonchuen) Chinnapong is Assistant Professor at the School of Architecture, King Mongkut’s Institute of Technology Ladkrabang (KMITL), Bangkok, Thailand. Among courses for architecture students at KMITL, she is responsible for Architectural Design Studio, Site Planning, and Introduction to Urban Planning. Her research interests range from urban form and the use of civic space in Bangkok, major urban development plans in Bangkok, and environmental design for the blind’s accessibility. She is co-author of “Bangkok: Intentional World City” in Relocating Global Cities: From the Center to the Margins (Rowman &
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xi
Contributors
xi
Littlefield Publishers, INC., 2006. With Michael Douglass) and “Bangkok as a Capital and Emergent World City” in Capital Cities in Asia-Pacific: Primary and Diversity (Academia Sinica, 2006. With K.C. Ho). Joseph Boski is a doctoral candidate in Urban Planning at the University of California, Los Angeles (UCLA). His research examines social movements, globalization, and urban geography. He has been a fellow at the East West Center in Honolulu and a researcher at Hitotsubashi University in Tokyo. Myungrae Cho is Professor of Urban and Regional Planning, School of Social Sciences, Dankook University, Seoul, Korea. He is Director of the Korea Center for City and Environmental Research, Executive Director of the Citizens’ Movement for Environmental Justice, and a Member of the Presidential Commission on Sustainable Development. His main research interests are in the fields of spatial political economy, urban sociology and green politics. Major publications include Post-Fordism and Modern Society in Crisis (1999, in Korean), Modern Society and Urban Theory (2002, in Korean), Exploring Green Society (2002, in Korean), Developmental Politics and Green Progress (forthcoming, in Korean), and The Space and Environment of Globalization (forthcoming, in Korean). Mike Douglass is Professor of Urban and Regional Planning and Director of the Globalization Research Center at the University of Hawaii. He has lived and worked for many years in Asian countries where he engages in research on urban development and planning with international development institutions and national and local governments. Current research includes the urban transition in Asia; civil society and civic space; and the globalization of migration and householding. Publications include Japan and Global Migration (UH Press, 2003. With Glenda Roberts); Cities for Citizens: Planning and the Rise of Civil Society in a Global Age ( John Wiley, 1998. With John Friedmann); Culture and the City in East Asia (Oxford University Press, 1997. With Won Bae Kim). K.C. Ho is Associate Professor of Sociology at the National University of Singapore. An urban sociologist by training, Dr Ho’s research interests range from the political economy of cities, economic restructuring and sub-regional development to urban cultures and community development. He is co-author of City-States in the Global Economy: Industrial Restructuring in Hong Kong and Singapore (Westview, 1997) co-editor of Culture and the City in East Asia (Oxford, 1997) and Service Industries and Asia-Pacific Cities (Routledge, 2005). Limin Hee obtained her Doctor of Design degree from Harvard University in 2005, previously having pursued a Masters of Arts in Architecture at the National University of Singapore. As a registered architect in Singapore, she has built projects on a broad scale, ranging from institutional buildings to infrastructural and public space projects. Since 1997,
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xii
xii Contributors she has taught at the National University of Singapore, having in the last few years also served as Teaching Fellow and invited juror at the Harvard Graduate School of Design. Her research work has been published variously in international refereed journals, presented at conferences, and published in books – on subjects such as urban design, Asian cities, public spaces, architectural theory and design pedagogy. Her current research work includes investigations of the design of public space and its cultural constructions, and also the dynamics of Asian urbanism. Heng Chye Kiang is Professor and Dean of the School of Design and Environment at the National University of Singapore. His research interests are in the history of Chinese cities and architecture and urban design and conservation in Asia. As a consultant for various projects in China, he has won several international design competitions including first prize in the Tianjin’s French Heritage District and Xiaobailou District International Design Competitions in 2005 and 2004 respectively, as well as first prize in the Suzhou Graduate Campus City International Urban Planning/Design Competition in 2002. He is author of A Digital Reconstruction of Tang Chang’an (China Construction Industry Press, 2006) and Cities of Aristocrats and Bureaucrats (University of Hawaii and Singapore University Press, 1999). David Koh is Fellow and Coordinator of the Regional Strategic and Political Studies Program of Singapore’s Institute of Southeast Asian Studies. He has extensive and intensive research experience in Vietnam and has in the process developed a network of people from academia, government, and think tanks in Vietnam. His first book Wards Of Hanoi, which examines state-society relations in Vietnam, was published by the Institute of Southeast Asian Studies in 2006. He writes regularly on Vietnamese contemporary politics and society, and is a regular op-ed contributor on the subject. He also conducts regular briefings for diplomats, government bureaucrats and analysts on Vietnam. Michael Leaf is the Director of the Centre for Southeast Asia Research (CSEAR) at the University of British Columbia (UBC), Vancouver, Canada; an Associate Professor in the UBC School of Community and Regional Planning (SCARP); and a Research Associate of the UBC Centre for Human Settlements (CHS). The focus of his research and teaching has been on urbanization and planning in cities of developing countries, with particular interest in Asian cities. Since the time of his doctoral research on land development in Jakarta, Indonesia, Dr. Leaf has been extensively involved in urbanization research and capacity building projects in Indonesia, Vietnam, China and Sri Lanka. The courses he teaches at UBC deal with the theory and practice of development planning and the social, institutional and environmental aspects of urbanization in developing countries.
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xiii
Contributors
xiii
Merlyna Lim is Assistant Professor of Justice and Social Inquiry at Arizona State University, with a joint appointment at the Consortium for Science, Policy and Outcomes. She was awarded a PhD in 2005 from the University of Twente in Enschede, the Netherlands, for a doctoral dissertation entitled “@rchipelago online: The Internet and Political Activism in Indonesia.” Her research interests include: political economy of space, cyber and urban activism, globalization, and mutual shaping of technology and society. She holds the following awards: Annenberg Netpublics Fellowships (2005), Henry Luce Southeast Asia Fellowship (2004), WOTRO Fellowship (2003), and ASIST International Paper Contest Winner (2002). Recent publications include a monograph entitled Islamic Fundamentalism and Anti-Americanism in Indonesia: Role of the Internet. Hanlong Lu is Professor and Director of the Institute of Sociology at Shanghai Academy of Social Sciences (SASS), and he is also the Dean of the Faculty of Social Development Studies at SASS. His study area of specialization has been focused on transformation and development and urban studies. He is the author or editor of more than ten books, and the chief researcher (editor) of Shanghai Social Report Year Blue Book, most recently Social Constructions and Social Governance (2006), Equilibrium and Stability: Enrich the Value of Development (2005), Xiaokang: From Goal to Developing Model (2004), Improving the Quality of Urban Life (2003), Urban Governance and Quality of Citizen (2002). He was a visiting scholar and did research abroad in many famous institutes both in the United States and the United Kingdom. Giok Ling Ooi is Associate Professor at the National Institute of Education at Nanyang Technological University. She is also Adjunct Senior Fellow at the Institute of Policy Studies. Her research and publications have focused on urban and housing studies, environment and sustainable development, ethnicity and health. Her two recent books are Housing in the Capital Cities of Southeast Asia (Institute of Southeast Asian Studies, 2005) and Sustainability and Cities – Concept and Assessment (World Scientific Press, 2005). Morshidi Sirat is Professor of Urban Geography at the School of Humanities, Universiti Sains Malaysia, Penang and the Director of National Higher Education Research Institute (IPPTN). As Director of IPPTN, Morshidi is active in contract research work for the World Bank, UNESCOBangkok and several public agencies in Malaysia. As an urban geographer, Morshidi’s research and publications have focused on the relationship between globalization and urban transformation in Malaysia. He has published widely on planning and geography issues in international journals. He has written several books on globalization-planning-service sector nexus and his latest book (co-authored with colleagues from the geography section) on high-tech electronics industries and air cargo services is being published by Universiti Sains Malaysia, Penang.
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xiv
Preface
This book is the product of four years of discussion among members of our civic spaces group. The objective of the National University of Singapore funded “Civic Spaces in a Global Age” project grant was to assemble a group of researchers to examine the impacts of globalization on civic spaces in a number of Pacific Asia cities over a three-year period. The project partners are Michael Douglass, Professor of Urban and Regional Planning at the University of Hawaii at Manoa, K.C. Ho, a sociologist at the National University of Singapore, and Ooi Giok Ling, a geographer first with the Institute of Policy Studies (IPS) and presently with the Nanyang Technological University. The research plan called for three jointly funded workshops where the research team would meet to discuss research methodologies and findings. The first workshop was held in Singapore in March 2002 with IPS overseeing the workshop organization. This workshop brought together an interdisciplinary group of planners, sociologists, political scientists and geographers interested in examining how local society is reacting to the forces of globalization, specifically with convivial civic spaces a critical element of social organization. This workshop resulted in a set of papers that were published as a special issue in International Development Planning Review, volume 24, number 4 (2002). Mike Douglass secured Toda Foundation funds to have a second workshop in Vancouver in June 2003. The research group worked on a second set of papers that was different from the first round set of IDPR papers in two significant ways. First, we brought together a wider geographical coverage of papers that included China and Vietnam. Second, conceptually we brought together more papers that dealt with the connections between civic spaces and civil society. Unfortunately, the outbreak of SARS meant that half the research group was unable to attend this conference, creating a setback for the group. Thus the completed set of papers did not materialize until December 2004, when we had the third workshop in Singapore. As a research group representing countries in East Asia, Indochina and Southeast Asia, we wanted to use our individual papers to build a composite
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xv
Preface
xv
picture not just of how globalization is impacting on the countries of Pacific Asia, but more importantly to see how local forces of state and society are reacting to such forces. As explained in the introduction of the book, we wanted to recover the social in global cities research, position civic spaces as a unit of observation and analysis of various forces, and most importantly to show how the local can be an influential, countervailing force. Collectively, we hope the essays in the book will provide the reader with a systematic analysis of the relationship between civil society and the production of civic spaces, an understanding of how civic spaces and civil society can become effective forces for social change, and an understanding of common patterns as well as variations in the evolution of such relationships. Mike Douglass K.C. Ho Giok Ling Ooi
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xvi
Acknowledgements
The editors would like to acknowledge the generous financial support of the National University of Singapore research grant R-014-000-012-123 and the Institute of Policy Studies for making possible the workshop on civic spaces in the global age, held in Singapore in March 2002. The folks at the IPS provided excellent conference organization and allowed us generous use of its conference facilities. We thank Dr Vivian Balakrishnan (then Minister of State for Community Development) for opening the workshop and Professor Tommy Koh for his encouragements and for hosting an unforgettable dinner at Au Jardin, Singapore Botanical Gardens. The second workshop in Vancouver in June 2003 was supported by the Toda Foundation, which also partially funded research for each chapter. The research group met again in December 2004 when the National University of Singapore hosted the International Sociological Association research group on urban and regional research (RC21) meeting. Our research group was supported by the balance of funds from the National University of Singapore research grant. Professor John Friedmann was able to join the group for this meeting and we are grateful for his comments on individual presentations and for his encouragements. We also thank Professor Sim Loo Lee, chair of the Department of Real Estate, for providing workshop support in terms of facilities and conference support. We also received excellent support from Alanna Yeo and Rachel Chan in preparing the collection for publication, and thank Mrs Lee Li Kheng for the production of the maps.
Copyright Acknowledgements The authors and publishers would like to thank the following for granting permission to reproduce material in this work: • •
Notes on Sanlitu illustrations [ ], Nie Chongyi [ ], Song dynasty for Figure 5.1 Hiraoko Takeo, Chang’an yu Luoyang [Chang’an and Luoyang], 1957, for Figure 5.2
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xvii
Acknowledgements xvii •
• • • •
• •
Wu Liangyong, “A Brief History of Ancient Chinese City Planning”, URBS ET REGIO, 38/1986, Kassel: Gesamthochschulbibliothek, cover for Figure 5.7 “Old Beijing in Panorama” [ ], Beijing: People Chinese publishing house [ ], 1991, p.117 for Figure 5.8 Mike Douglass for Figure 10.1 Johannes Wijaya for Figure 11.1 International Development Planning Review for Figure 11.4 taken from M. Lim (2002) “Cyber-civic space: from panopticon to pandemonium”, International Development and Planning Review vol. 24, no. 4 p. 388. Yusnirsyah Sirin for Figure 11.7 National Archives of Thailand for Figure 13.1
Every effort has been made to contact copyright holders for their permission to reprint material in this book. The publishers would be grateful to hear from any copyright holder who is not here acknowledged and will undertake to rectify any errors or omissions in future editions of this book.
9780415397896_1_pre.qxd 07/09/2007 09:11 Page xviii
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 1
1
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia Mike Douglass, K.C. Ho and Giok Ling Ooi
The challenge of civic participation in Pacific Asian cities Major cities in Pacific Asia1 play multiple and often conflicting roles. Municipal authorities are responsible to local electorates and work to create a liveable environment (better services and amenities) for their residents. However, as cities are the principal bases for foreign direct investment, both national and local authorities have been increasingly engaged in the business of attracting transnational capital to the city, in the hope that these investments build up the urban economy and bring about an increased demand for the city’s workforce, and in turn create an enlarged market for local businesses. As Pacific Asian cities become increasingly integrated into the global economy, these roles have become increasingly complex and often divergent. The changing state and society relationship During the height of the developmental state era from the 1960s to, in most cases, the 1990s, the implicit social contract between government and citizens was the promise of economic growth and material benefit in exchange for curtailment of democratic rights, including freedom of speech and assembly, for the citizenry. Economic growth in the emerging “miracle economies” of Pacific Asia during this period was made possible by the advent of the “new international division of labor,” which represented a massive shift of labor-intensive assembly and manufacturing processes to a handful of “newly industrializing economies,” most of which were in East and Southeast Asia. The industrialization phase created new class fragments that have become more expressive. This has occurred at different levels in terms of: a growing middle class demanding more participation in various civic matters, trade unions and workers resisting weakening terms of employment, as well as a growing group (including migrant labor) that has been marginalized (Hsiao 1993; Rodan 1996; Robinson and Goodman 1996). The combined effects of such collective expressions have been the opening up of an expanded
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 2
2 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia political space. These diverse resistances against strong-arm regimes began to seriously challenge existing regimes for the first time, leading in several cases to fundamental political reform instituting democratic systems of governance. Economic restructuring and state response In the 1980s, the rising urban middle class and the bubble economy generated in Japan led to a new phase of local-global relations. Labor-intensive industry was running its course in higher income countries and began shifting into Southeast Asia from Northeast Asia and Singapore at the same time that global franchise capital found sufficient markets to begin unrelenting intrusion into Pacific Asia cities. In the 1990s global finance capital also began pouring into the region, and major cities began to experience fundamental restructuring of their built environment to reconstitute the urban core for global management and service functions in the form of mega-projects. There is unstoppable construction of shopping malls to host global chain stores, and massive construction of gated suburban communities. Although the collapse of several economies following the very sudden flight of investment from the region in late 1997 brought much of the private sector land development to a halt, public sector investment and public-private partnerships continue in the form of mega-projects aimed at intentionally creating world cities (Olds 1995; Marshall 2003; Newman and Thornley 2005). This occurred synchronically with neoliberal reforms being made a condition of participation in the world economy governed through global trade agreements and, more specifically, as a condition for economic assistance through such agencies as the International Monetary Fund and World Bank. The effect of these reforms has been to greatly open local economies to intensifying global competition for investment. As labour-intensive operations began to shift more rapidly to China from the 1990s, governments in other Pacific Asian countries felt increasingly compelled to compete for higher-order technology and urban-based service segments of global accumulation. The arena for such competition has been in the largest cities of Pacific Asia. A new complexity in state, society and capital relations The increased involvement of different capital circuits imply the pull of cities towards world city formation and this is reflected in the built environment via new capitalist spaces of production (business districts, techno parks, science parks) and consumption (malls, gated communities). As capital has a transnational orientation, the relationship between capital and community has been fundamentally altered. While corporations have adopted good corporate citizenship as an emblem of their identity, projects
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 3
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
3
which stem from this orientation tend, for most parts, to be national or international in nature. An older relationship between capital and community has declined. For most parts, world city formation is intentional as many governments remain in the developmental state mode in trying to open their economies to all circuits of global interaction. As elaborated earlier, under neoliberal reforms, inter-city competition for foreign investments has intensified and governments have responded by increasingly directing resource allocations toward global intercity competition for world city status. As civil society develops, there is an increasing demand expressed in a variety of domains. There has been a growing popular interest in heritage and preservation as traditional quarters have been lost through capitalist redevelopment. Conservation of green and open spaces in the city has also acquired a new importance as urban residents seek a balance between development and quality of the urban environment. The interaction between state, civil society and capital has grown increasingly complex. Alarmed by a growing civil society, the state has responded in many cases to increasing regulation of public spaces to prevent popular unrest. However, there have also been instances where the state has sided with civil society in preserving built heritage and green space when this has helped solidify its role as the protector of national culture and/or increased its legitimacy and popular support. The increased presence of capital in different circuits has also created a new shift from civil society– state relations to civil society–corporate economy relations as the principal source of contestation over the creation of life spaces in the city. Globalization has also transformed the organization of civil society. For their part, non-governmental organizations and civil society organizations emerging from political reform are also using capital and mega cities as sites to mobilize international as well as national campaigns for social and environmental justice and many other social causes aimed at resisting or at least redefining the terms of global economic and political engagement. All of these observations bring the production of urban space to the forefront in both enabling and reflecting the interplay of global and local forces in Pacific Asia’s principal cities.
Focus of the book The focus of this book is on the various types of life spaces in which civil society finds room to create cultural practices in community lifeworlds. We (Douglass, Ho and Ooi, 2002) term such spaces as civic spaces – spaces of social inclusion in which state and private economy are kept at arm’s distance from dominating the production and reproduction of culture. We believe that that focus on civic spaces will help address the following imbalances in the current state of urban studies and in turn provide a more balanced approach to the study of globalization and the city.
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 4
4 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Recovering the social in global cities research Understanding this particular sphere is crucial. The reproduction of communities has been a neglected area of study in global cities research. While the literature has suggested an increased inequality and divisiveness (Sassen 2000; Marcuse 2000), we really do not have much to go on in understanding how urban society coheres under the fragmenting effects of globalization. It is not enough to go by Iris M. Young’s (1990: 251) dictum of “an ideal of city life as a vision of social relations affirming group difference.” As economies under globalization become more fragile, understanding how society reacts and adapts to these changes represent a crucial avenue of research. One key strategy is examining civic spaces where local relationships are reproduced and sustained. This is all the more important as urbanization increases in Pacific Asia and the share of urban population living in Pacific Asian cities grows. Positioning civic spaces as a unit of observation and analysis Of the possible empirical phenomenon we can observe about globalization and urban change, this book proposes civic spaces as an observational unit. We suggest civic spaces as an indicator of globalization and urban change. As an observational unit, civic spaces, in their various forms (see next section) will allow an important comparative analysis of where capital touches down; how local relationships are reproduced and expanded; and the diverse nature of state alignment with capital and community. Understanding how the local can be an influential, countervailing force The power of the local can be established through the link between civic spaces and civil society. Civil society is manifested in the multitude of voluntary associations, emerging from households, neighborhood associations, religious organizations, clubs, labor unions, and other socio-cultural identities. Such associations are outside of direct control of either the state or the private economy and are often referred to as the “third” sector that co-exists with government and markets to form the public domain or public sphere (Friedmann 1987; Habermas 1989). In providing vital linkages between people and the state, civil society organizations are essential to the functioning of democratic societies and serve as principal institutions directing the self interest of individuals toward defining the public interest and the common good (de Tocqueville, 1969). These organizations serve as the institutional means for citizens to monitor, restrict and direct the uses of state and corporate power. As a social ideal, an active civil society will complement the state and inculcate in its citizens a sense of stakeholdership in the nation-state that goes beyond ownership of material assets and the citizen as consumer (Ooi and Koh 1998: 102).
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 5
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
5
More recently, the propensity to form associations in civil society is viewed as being the fountain of social capital that is a crucial source of economic sustainability (Putnam 1993). Through routines of collaborative engagement in civil society, localities build capacities for problem solving and innovation. Multiple forms of association with a high degree of autonomy from state and private business are associated with local economic resilience in the new global economy of informational networks and rapid innovation in knowledge industries (Thurow 1999; PPI 2000). It is important to understand where the local situates in this configuration of forces in the production of urban space. As suggested above, intentional world city formation has exaggerated local–city tensions by increasingly extroverting the attention of public resources to the forces of global accumulation. This does not mean, however, that the local necessarily yields to the global or that capital city and global join together in some fashion to marginalize local community lifeworlds. As the chapters in this collection will show, the outcomes are much more open ended and contextually rich than current literature on global hegemony allows.
The diversity of civic spaces For the social, political and economic promises of the rise of civil society to be realized, there must be civic spaces available for its daily practices and collaborative engagement among its various constituents. Civic spaces are defined as those spaces in which people of different origins and walks of life can co-mingle without overt control by government, commercial or other private interests, or de facto dominance by one group over another. Echoing Lefebvre’s (1991: 59) observation that all social change requires appropriate spaces for its fruition, providing and giving sustenance to civic spaces is a basic requirement for the promises of genuine citizen participation in governance. The use of the term “civic space” here is not intended to be equivalent to either “civil society space” or “public space.” The former, which includes the household as well as exclusive social clubs or even fanatical communes, is much broader in scope. Similarly, the term “public space” normally implies public ownership or direct management by the state; yet many forms of civic space can be found in private or nominally private spaces such as coffee shops, pubs or even the country store. Here the interest is in spaces that are inclusive, that is, open to a broad spectrum of civil society, whether public or private. In this sense, civic spaces are perhaps most closely equivalent to what Evans and Boyte (1986, 1992) call “free spaces” or “community free spaces” (King and Hustedde 1993: 2): A free space occurs in a setting in which people can meet for public talk and actively contribute to solving public problems. It is characterized by several major components: a sense of shared bonds, a comfortable
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 6
6 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia physical, social, and cultural setting, a social network, engaging debate and dialogue, a participatory environment, and a potential for forming larger public networks and vision. If a free space exists, citizens can learn group identity, self-respect, public skills, and the value of cooperation. This unabashedly romantic definition can be seen as adding a spatial dimension to a long lineage of thought about the nature of civil society from Aristotle to the Enlightenment and on to present day discourses about the public sphere.2 It misses, however, the insurgent spaces that are wrought from struggles among factions of civil society, the state and private economic interests. More than a sense of shared bonds, the idea of civic space here is that of autonomy from the state, inclusiveness, and potential for asserting the voice of civil society in the arena of public affairs. As Goffman (1959; 1961; 1963) has argued, civic spaces are “open spaces” in which anyone and everyone has the right of access and the right to initiate contact with each other. Such an interpretation of the role of civic spaces, however, does not discount their being open and contested territories for which claimants from different sectors of urban society can stake a range of varying claims. It is this contestation process that has put the provision of civic spaces and the role that they play under considerable stress in cities of the Pacific Asia. Like civil society, the idea of civic space in Pacific Asia involves a transposition of concepts largely developed in Western society. In a vacuum of public debate about civic spaces, experiences in the Pacific Asian cities suggests that political and social contestations over their provision are nonetheless intensifying in the current moment of accelerated urbanization occurring in the region. In particular, the polarization of population and economic growth in a few metropolitan regions has exacerbated already very high population densities and, as a consequence, struggles over urban land use and the built environment have tended to limit expansion of public sites that might be used as civic spaces (Basnayake 2000; Tan 2000; Wong and Ooi 1989). In this context, the processes of providing civic spaces in Pacific Asia have lacked purpose and clarity. This is partly because city governments, facing extreme financial constraints and repeated crises, are reluctant or have a low capacity to expand public spaces, especially under neo-liberal economic reforms pushing toward privatization. To say this another way, the built environment of Pacific Asian cities is overwhelmingly driven by private sector land developers who seek to maximize profit in land development rather than the public good (Mercado 2000). More critically, many governments limit the provision of civic spaces as a means to contain movements for regime change (Lim 2003). Yet with the rise of civil society and appearance of so many NGOs in the region that are championing “rights to the city,” demands for civic spaces as a claim for democratic governance are also increasing (Friedmann 1999).
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 7
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
7
Finally, using the terms “free space” and “autonomy” does not mean that civic spaces are unregulated or have no constraints on access or use. Whether in the form of private property, common property or state property, civic spaces require rules of access and use if they are to function in an inclusive, fundamentally non-violent and civil manner. Although regulation of civic spaces can take place under common property regimes outside of the state, in the contemporary world most civic spaces rely on larger protection by governments to keep commercial interests and other encroachments at bay. The need for regulation makes the provision of civic spaces all the more complex than terms such as “public space” imply. In some instances, for example, civic spaces are created through the regulation of private property, as in the case of laws in several US states requiring privately-owned shopping malls to allow freedom of speech on their premises. These observations lead back to the long-standing thesis that civil society exists in relation to the state in which the roles of law-making and police powers reside and are called upon to insure the “civil” or non-violent uses of civic spaces. As such, civic spaces do not exist under absolute control by either state, civil society or private ownership, but rather as physical (or cyber) spaces that become civic spaces through the interactions of the three. This further suggests that civic spaces are often contested and subject to shifts in power relations. Eight types of civic spaces can be identified as a means to initiate broader discussions on the origins, roles and prospects in the future. A significant body of research related to civic spaces suggests that most of them are under great stress and might even be declining in many instances. At the same time, new efforts to create civic spaces have also been launched. Together they are giving recognition to the widespread concern that cities require such spaces for their social, political and economic life to flourish. Public parks/plazas Public squares, parks and plazas are basic forms of civic spaces in towns and cities in many world regions. In Italy, the piazza has been a vital civic space since Roman times: The grid of archetypical Roman urban design inevitably included a square near the city heart called a forum. In this public space vendors might assemble, festivities take place, friends or enemies gather, opinionated individuals mount a speaker’s podium. In a literal sense, civil society was coterminous with the sum of public opinion heard in the forum, theatre and other places of gathering in the city. Without the infrastructure and the institutions of the city, its strangers and its tapestry of personal connections, there could be no Public Benefit, Common Good, or indeed Civil Society (Witteveen 1996: 78)
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 8
8 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Political mobilization, public rallies and forms of unorganized political exchanges continue to take place in the plaza on a daily basis in Italy and elsewhere. In the US, the public park takes on some of these civic roles, though in a much less routinely organized manner. In Tokyo, Hibiya Park, next to the Imperial Palace, has been the site for popular protest movements since its inception after the Meiji Restoration (Machimura 1997). Much of contemporary research on cities in the West reveal that the plaza and the park are under increasing stress and are sites of intense social conflict. Homelessness, gentrification, increasing social stratification and inequalities between haves and have-nots are manifested in struggles over such spaces, with the tendency to abandon the notion of the park as an inclusive civic space by either letting it become a residential zone for the homeless or excluding “undesirable” people from them through regulations, removing benches or engineering physical designs such as uncomfortably rounded bench seats to discourage sleeping or long-term habitation (Harvey 1992). In response to the potential loss of this vital form of civic space, governments and community organizations have launched public square renaissance and “Save-the-Park” campaigns. In Waterloo, Canada, a combined agora and forum in a civic square with a public amphitheater has recently been created by the municipal government to bring civic and commercial space together in the city center. Dublin, Ireland, has attempted to revitalize the historic area of Smithfield by opening in 1999 a new Civic Plaza the size of two football fields. Among the annual events scheduled is a Freedom of the City Ceremony, with Aung San Suu Kyi, the prodemocracy Nobel Peace Prize laureate, being the first to be honored. Barcelona used the 1992 Olympics to fund the restoration of its main park, and in Paris the Parc André Citroën has been developed on the site of a defunct car assembly plant (Economist 1996). Restoring parks and making them welcome to the public at large are separate matters. For the latter, local citizens need to be engaged in the process of mutual accommodation. Grassroots citizen organizations to make parks, streets and neighborhoods more convivial and inclusive can be found in many cities. In San Francisco, for example, the Community Design Consulting Program of Urban Ecology was formed in 1994 to bring architects, planners, and landscape architects to provide professional design support in collaboration with community groups in low-income, often ethnically diverse neighborhoods. Its Blueprint for a Sustainable Bay Area (Urban Ecology 1996) has as its goals a broad-based process of citizen participation to “confront the challenges that threaten our quality of life; in our homes, neighborhoods, small towns, suburbs and major cities.” In addition to providing much needed open space, the provision of plaza and public parks brings people of many different backgrounds into contact with each other, thus promoting a basic sense of civility that counters a common urban trend of spatial segregation by class, gender, ethnicity,
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 9
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
9
age and other differences. This realization underlies many of the citizen movements for maintaining existing and creating new plazas and parks. Public sidewalks and “main street” Public sidewalks, particularly those in downtown commercial and residential areas, have traditionally provided civic spaces for people to mingle as they walk to work, shop or just go for a stroll. Juxtaposed to commercial establishments, they allow for the exercise of civic rights that are normally curtailed in private retail establishments that they front. Jane Jacobs, in her landmark treatise, The Death and Life of Great American Cities (1961), observed that the mix of civic with commercial and residential functions at a neighborhood and community scale was one of the most important enhancements to urban life. Public sidewalks in community shopping areas have been a key element of the mix of civic with other urban functions in the past. As documented by Kunstler (1994) and others (Sorkin 1992), the decline of “main street” throughout urban United States and other countries as the shopping mall supplants older downtown shopping streets has been a direct assault on the civic dimension of urban life. Once the symbol of the convivial city where neighbors met neighbors while shopping and engaging in civic life, the main street has systematically declined with the appearance of huge discount stores and privately owned malls located in suburban and exurban areas. In the US more than half of all residences are now located in suburbs where the primary spaces of human congregation are shopping malls. Exclusively commercial, malls are designed to promote consumption as citizenship. Seemingly public, they are increasingly being patrolled to enforce private property rights, including denial of rights of assembly and free speech and such activities as labor strikes and pickets in front of its shops. The most radical absence of public streets are found in the privately owned exurban urban nodes that are “economically powerful but politically invisible” private developments composed of “office parks, business campuses, privately-planned residential communities and commercial centres . . . containing impressive concentrations of office jobs and hotel space account for extremely high volumes of retail sales,” but are devoid of public functions and civic spaces (Knox 1993: 2). Such “stealth cities” are not confined to the US or high income countries. Jakarta’s Lippo Kawaraci – Lippoland – is a privately owned new town designed for a population of one million “middle and upper class” residents (Rimmer and Dick 1998). Recognizing the reality of suburbanization and the emergence of the mall as the center of public interaction, movements have emerged to legally compel malls to create civic spaces in them (WWC 1996). Several US states have passed laws mandating malls to allow free speech. In Japan, the City of Nagoya created a private–public partnership to build a combined shopping-community center in the form of a high-rise building with public
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 10
10
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
events held in the open courtyard on the ground floor and commercial shops and community activities such as public art shows jointly occupying each of the higher floors. On a larger spatial scale, the neo-traditional town planning that has emerged in many countries promises a return to the multi-functional community and its civic spaces (Kunstler 1994). So far, the actual developments, such as Seaside, Florida, Laguna West, California, and Disney’s Celebration in Orlando, Florida, have been oriented toward affluent households and communities. In a related development, advocates of “smart cities” propose that telecommunications and tele-commuting will also allow people to recreate smaller, intimate communities replete with public and civic spaces (Shaw and Utt 2000). Missing from almost all of these suburban developments is a conscious appreciation of civic spaces for all residents. Malls are increasingly policed to keep non-shoppers out, new towns tend to be composed of gated communities that ensure that lower income groups are excluded from whatever common spaces they provide. In Pacific Asia, the lack of public and civic spaces is even more glaring in such developments. Malls are typically devoid of even a bench to sit on, and their food courts do not invite convivial social exchanges of conversation. Common spaces in residential areas also tend to be “top–down” in planning and not generally intended as “free spaces” for community use outside of state surveillance (see in this volume: Hee; Lim; and Boonchuen). Community/civic centers and public buildings Government, non-profit and for-profit community centers have provided civic spaces covering a wide variety of activities, ranging from hobby clubs and the arts to community political organizations and action groups. As noted above, a number of governments have been actively trying to create civic centers to revitalize declining downtown areas as well as civic life. These same spaces, especially public buildings housing government functions, have become the sites of insurgent citizenship (Friedmann, 1998) where the public gather to make demands upon government and, as many cities have experienced since the WTO conference in Seattle in 1999, demands for a more accountable global corporate economy. After the 11 September 2001, terrorist attack on New York City, public buildings and such spaces as public sports and entertainment sites have been systematically placed under increasing police, military and intelligence agency surveillance, with their civic aspects being sharply curtailed. Of course, the actual civic nature of these spaces depends upon the pace of political reform toward democratic forms of governance. Where the pace is slow, such spaces continue to either be sites of government orchestrated pageantry or, as Boski (this volume) calls it, ephemeral citizen insurgence. In other cases, such as more recently in Taipei, even City Hall opened its
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 11
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
11
front courtyard to popular access after reforms brought a new party to power in the mid-1990s. Commercial establishments with traditions as civic spaces Some types of commercial establishments are given commercial viability because they are frequented for the civic spaces they provide. Many are long-established social institutions that have continued to thrive in contemporary times. Among the most well known of these commercial places in North America, Europe and many parts of Asia are the coffee shop and the pub where people are generally free to spend hours of time and engage in conversations with strangers as well as friends at modest costs and limited commercial impositions. In Japan and Korea, the privately owned public bath traditionally took on the role as a civic space where all people in a community would gather not only to bathe but to engage in conversations with neighbors. In the case of Japan, it is revealing to note that in the bubble economy of the late 1980s public baths were targeted as a “block busting” technique by land developers who would buy and demolish them to break down community solidarity against the loss of housing to commercial buildings. The result was a precipitous decline of public baths to a mere handful in central Tokyo by the early 1990s (Douglass 1993). The spread of global fast food restaurants are explicitly designed to promote fast eating and quick departure, undermining the civic nature of coffee shops and diners. Global chain shops such as Starbucks – which plans to have 1500 outlets in Asia by 2003 – might offer opportunity for civic encounters, but the gourmet prices of its coffee put it out of range of significant shares of the population. Everywhere, the local diner and coffee shop are yielding to fast food chains, which have enhanced commercial interests at the expense of the civic experience of eating out. Some institutions carry on, however. The UK pubs continue to thrive because they offer civic spaces for local communities. Despite the spread of global fast food chains to Pacific Asia, cities are still replete with local restaurants that provide for social as well as eating occasions. Private establishments regulated by the state to include civic spaces The quality of civic life in all civic spaces greatly depends on the ways in which they are regulated by the state, private or common property owners, stewards and users. In some instances, governments have moved to create civic spaces in privately owned establishments that serve the public at large. The state of Florida, for example, requires airports to provide free speech areas to allow for the expression of the civic freedoms to their users. As noted above, a few states in the US also require malls to allow for free speech. The vast majority of states have not, however, adopted such legislation.
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 12
12
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
In Pacific Asia, government regulation of privately owned establishments is exceptionally modest. At the same time, however, in some countries, such as Japan, public–private partnerships in creating buildings that have both civic and commercial space are more apparent than they are in countries such as the US. Cyber civic spaces The emergence of the Internet over the past decade has held the promise of new forms of civic spaces without geographical propinquity. These promises of telematics range from empowering citizens to form “virtual communities” (Graham 1994, 1997) to the re-emergence of (neo-)traditional communities on a human scale in “smart cities” (Shaw and Utt 2000). “Blade Runner” dystopian futures with telematics used to give totalizing control to behemoth corporate governments have also been conjured about the future of wired cities, and there is increasing concern about “digital divides” and privileged spaces in the informational networks that now characterize the contemporary city (Castells 1989; Knox 1994; Graham 2000). The image of the Panopticon (Lim 2002) notwithstanding, revolutions in telecommunications are nevertheless creating new forms of civic spaces. To some observers, the use of the Internet by increasing numbers of people represents an important means for civil society to organize beyond national boundaries. This allows for a confrontation of undemocratic world governance that has already appeared at that scale in the form of transnational corporate networks and intergovernmental bodies such as the World Trade Organization. Internet cafes with low-cost access to computers abound in many Pacific Asia cities, especially in Southeast Asia where the ability to buy computers is still restricted to a small percentage of the population. In addition to person-to-person communications, Internet services provide open chat rooms, bulletin boards and web pages for social and political causes. In the US the public library has begun to take on this role to create virtual communities in the digital age (Molz and Dain 1999). A key issue in this regard is the shift from publicly created to privately owned telecommunications systems that incorporate international flows of money and capital, allowing “corporate capital to escape the regulatory powers of nation-states” (Graham 1994: 418). The increasing concentration of ownership of all forms of media into huge transnational corporations stands in sharp contrast to the promises of the civic space expansion through the spread of easy access Internet use within civil society. In the early 1980s, for example, fifty corporations dominated mass media of all types. As multibillion dollar mergers and acquisitions became a regular feature of global capital by the late 1990s, the number of dominant firms shrunk rapidly to ten by 1997 (Bagdikian 2000). By 2002, the number had decreased to six giant communications conglomerates.3 The influence of these corporations over selection of information and the commercialization of cyberspace
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 13
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
13
are identified as one of the most important threats to freedom of the press and speech (McChesney 1999). In Pacific Asia, current tensions in the use of the Internet are mostly related to civil society-state relations as strong-arm governments attempt to directly control political and other information that is bypassing already strong censorship of the press and other media. As political reforms proceed toward more democratic forms of government and economies are increasingly open to transnational corporate linkages, the debates about the Internet as civic space are likely to shift to civil society–corporate economy relations as access to news, information, and knowledge is increasingly filtered through global corporate networks. Marginal, illegal/covert and disguised civic spaces In situations of severe social and political repression of civil society, civic spaces can still exist and be sustained because their particular characteristics or locations are difficult to assail or control by government authorities even though the activities are declared to be illegal or offensive to dominant social groups. Hegemony is never totalizing; resistance is rarely absolutely subdued, human agency can be expressed even by the most marginalized people. Such civic spaces might be harbored, for example, in temples, religious schools or other sites for religious practices that governments dare not directly enter. They are common in large ethnic communities where the very numbers of people and “foreign” languages shield them from intensive state control. Under the authoritarian governments in Pacific Asia, as Korea showed throughout the long struggles toward democratic government covering several decades, universities can become sites where proscribed resistance is shielded by even public institutions. As struggles for reform grow in strength, they move from their marginal spaces into the city’s wider landscapes of public streets and landmarks for insurgent action. Insurgent spaces The appropriation of urban spaces for political insurgence occurs at particular historical moments and sites as forces within civil society rise up to confront the state or other powerful entities such as emerging nondemocratic forms of global government (Boski, this volume). Almost every city has sites that are imbued with deep cultural and political meanings that, while perhaps invisible on a daily basis, have become the spaces for protests and challenges to the dominating interests. Successful occupation of such sites can become a source of political validation and empowerment. As the Tiananmen Square episode of 1989 clearly revealed, capturing – or failing to capture – some sites can put political institutions of an entire nation at stake. Democracy Monument in Bangkok (Boonchuen, this volume), EDSA boulevard in Manila, Hibiya Park in Tokyo (Machimura
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 14
14
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
1997), the Parliament building in Jakarta, are among the sites that insurgents know will carry high levels of symbolic importance when successfully occupied. Yet on any given day, these sites are just as likely to be little more than business thoroughfares, places of leisure or even tourism. The types and examples of civic spaces summarized above serve to illustrate that their provision and characteristics are being challenged and transformed in the contemporary cities of the world (Westwood and Williams 1997; Soja 1997). Stress on civic spaces is coming from many sources. Increasing fortification of urban space and surveillance of public spaces have subjected them to closer state scrutiny and presence, reducing the autonomy of those spaces from the state (Davis 1990). Roads and sidewalks inside of growing numbers of gated communities do not allow for civic use. Strengthened private property rights and fear of unwanted intrusions are turning large office buildings from places of public access to armed fortresses. With increasing surveillance of public spaces and privatization of what use to be considered public spaces – large buildings and streets – the city is being remade with diminished civic spaces. Added to these trends is the increasing numbers of transnational migrant communities and multicultural composition of urban populations. While the city has always been thought of as a center of diversity, in the current era this has become exceptionally complex as cities are more stratified by income, ethnic and racial divisions. Even large cities in higher income economies of Pacific Asia are becoming the homes of hundreds of thousands of long-term foreign workers (Douglass 1999; Kassim 2000). Exploitation of insecure immigrant labor increases the vulnerability of the homeless, an underclass of chronically unemployed. It also weakens the position of households working in the service industry. In contrast, a small share of the population enjoys rising affluence. The resulting “heteropolis” is a city fragmented into a myriad of “lifestyle clusters” ( Jencks 1996) or, perhaps more accurately, life chances. Civic spaces in these contexts tend also to fragment along rather than bridge social divides. Yet in many cities, civil society organizations and governments have moved to renew existing civic spaces and to create new ones. Park and civic center restoration, new towns and smart cities, fostering civic spaces in privately owned public places such as suburban malls, and using public libraries for access to the Internet for all community residents regardless of income are some of the many initiatives in this direction. While globalizing forces at play seem to jeopardize civic spaces, these local efforts show that opportunities to create and sustain such inclusive spaces do exist and are being pursued.
Urbanization and society in Pacific Asia Urbanization in Pacific Asia has been proceeding at a phenomenal rate. Forty years ago, Southeast Asia was largely rural as the United Nations (2001:
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 15
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
15
133) estimated that only one in five persons in the developing economies of its ESCAP (Economic and Social Commission for Asia Pacific) region resided in urban areas.4 By 1980, one in four was an urban resident, and by 2000, it was one in three. Within East Asia, Korea has experienced rapid urbanization, with the urban population share growing from 57 percent (of the total population) in 1980 to 82.4 percent in 1999. Taiwan and Japan, on the other hand, have had fairly stable urbanization rates in the last 20 years. Southeast Asia as a region has experienced very rapid rates of urbanization, particularly Indonesia, which moved from an urban population share of 22 percent in 1980 to 42 percent in 2001. In 2001, Taiwan, Korea and Japan in East Asia, Malaysia, Singapore, and the Philippines in Southeast Asia have more than half their populations living in cities. Urbanization has been influenced by a number of interrelated economic trends. The East Asian Miracle in the 1960s and 1970s has largely been played out in the major cities of Japan, Taiwan and Korea, with the first and second cities playing key roles in manufacturing. The share of primary industry in total output in these countries declined dramatically, being replaced by a rising manufacturing share that has an urban bias. Southeast Asia enjoyed largely a second wave in the 1980s and 1990s as foreign direct investments from the US, Europe and Japan flowed in, supplemented by flows from Korea, Taiwan and Singapore.5 Indochina and China are the recipients of the third wave of investments which mostly begun in the mid-1990s. While China and Indochina countries are still largely rural, the rate of urbanization is likely to increase as these countries (with Vietnam and China as the main candidates) will urbanize rapidly, as and when they become increasingly incorporated into the global economy. While urban growth is rapid, the urban transition is still underway in most Pacific Asia countries. What can be called a significant urban middle class is also recent in most countries, and the successful rise of civil society in the form of legitimate large-scale political communities independent of state-run parties is still somewhat exceptional. For these and other historical reasons, civic spaces have tended to be found in marginal or clandestine sites with important moments of insurgency that have in turn led toward more democratic forms of governance in several countries. The rapid urban change occurring in Pacific Asian cities, coupled with an emergent civil society, make the study of civic spaces (in all its different forms) as an important site for the analysis of global–local interactions in the production of urban space. The potential of civic spaces lie in the collaborations at the micro level and the possibilities of local relationships becoming an important source of social capital. As suggested earlier, the analysis of civic spaces will show up the interplay of forces, in terms of globalization impacts over land use conflicts, to the role of governments in managing such conflicts. The essays in this collection adopt a more open-ended approach to the analysis of various social forces, providing a
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 16
16
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
better understanding of the issues on the ground, rather than suggesting a hegemonic interpretation of globalization. As contests over changes in the built environment have sharpened government-society relations, global economic forces are putting pressures on cities to privatize and commodify urban spaces and to replace political citizenship with consumer citizenship. The city is thus being transformed into a site composed of individuals “voting” with money for material possessions rather than a place in which social or political communities have spaces for autonomous civic life. Global economic forces in the form of the activities of multinational companies have also led to the growing concentration of high-salaried service professionals in global cities, leading to increased urban income inequalities and polarization between this privileged internationally mobile group and the working class which have seen their economic fortunes decline as jobs migrate to distant shores (Sassen 2000). The government’s response to this new economic climate has also contributed to the polarization by devoting more attention and resources to economic policies at the expense of social policies (Mayer 1999). All of these challenges to the future of cities in Pacific Asia draw attention to the understanding that the rise of civil society in Pacific Asia has an equivalent in the built environment: the construction of civic spaces that are vital for voluntary social associations to bridge divides through shared experiences, and for people to engage in resolving social, political and economic issues in common. An agenda for policy on civic space thus needs to pay attention not only to progressive reforms in state–civil society relations, but also to ways in which relations between localities and globalization are transforming the content and uses of urban spaces.
Chapter overview The research brought together in this book addresses several major goals: •
•
To theorize and empirically explore the relationships between the civil society and the production of urban spaces. The chapters in the book focus on various types of “civic spaces” that seek to provide civil society with spaces for associational and public life at arm’s distance from state and commercial interests. The ten case studies explore a wide variety of contexts ranging from spaces where lower classes congregated in ancient Chinese cities to cyberspaces of the contemporary Internet – all in a Pacific (East and Southeast) Asia context. While a significant amount of research has been done on this and related topics, to date there are no such studies on them for the Pacific Asia region. To understand the history and role of civil society in social and political philosophies of societies in the Pacific Asia region. Most literature on civil society focuses on the West; much of this literature presents a pejorative view that civil society has never existed in other parts of
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 17
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
•
•
17
the world. Research in this book seeks to give a better accounting of social philosophies and civil society in Pacific Asia both historically and contemporaneously. To analyze and explain tendencies and issues related to specific types of civic spaces in a given city. Several studies find that great stress has been placed on long-standing community and public spaces. The sources of threats to civic space include the state, which in Pacific Asia has had a marked tendency toward authoritarian control over civil society and its spaces, and the global economy, which is increasingly privatizing and commercializing land use and the built environment. Others show that new civic spaces emerge through state–civil society negotiations and from new forms of technology such as the Internet. To compare and synthesize studies of many cities. The goal of the book is to identify common themes, patterns and issues as well as point out the singularities of each particular context. In this way it can contribute to the broader (as yet almost exclusively Western) literature on society and space.
To these ends, we have identified four broad themes from which the various chapters can be introduced. The links between civic spaces and civil society The three introductory papers in this collection represent more general attempts at highlighting the important links between civic spaces and civil society from three angles. Douglass identifies and discusses how contemporary globalization has created explosive growth in cities and spatial polarization. Such urban restructuring is driven increasingly by global capital and fed by international migration. The result is that Pacific Asian cities have become socially more diverse and face growing inequality and social fragmentation. A number of issues emerge at the level of state–society relations. Local communities react to these changes by pushing for a better quality of life. The reaction of authorities to these demands has been varied and range from democratic reforms to increasing regulation of public spaces. Thus at the level of urban society, such changes and responses clearly call for new forms of governance that can manage the growing inequality and fragmentation, incorporate the growing diversity and create a balance between economic and social developments. Picking up the thread at the governance level, the chapter by Ho looks at local connections by highlighting the community basis for civic spaces and the ways in which civic spaces can provide the foundations for civil society actions. Ho argues that local communities contain vital elements that continue to play important functions in strengthening local relations by being magnets for sociability, as crucibles of opinion, providing
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 18
18
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
amplification for action and as repositories of collective memory. These four functions, along with entrenched material interests form the basis for collective action through their ability to develop an identity and bring into focus the sentiments of the community. Such capacities for action work in an ebb and flow fashion, rising with mobilization in response to threats and opportunities, stabilizing where there is formal organization and relating in adversarial as well as collaborative relations with external agencies. By focussing on the state and how it regulates land use through planning, Ooi analyzes the ways in which the state can weaken civil society and public participation through its control over land use development and planning as well as the uses of public spaces through direct policing. Civic space over time in the city-state of Singapore has in the Foucauldian sense, been turned into spaces of surveillance upon which the public’s eye is trained always. Where planning and the control of the use of public space are highly centralized with the state sector as is the case in Singapore, as Ooi argues in her paper, there is little to stop the sidelining or de-centering of such spaces and civic activities in the public life of the citizens and city-state. Ooi’s paper sets the context for the discussion which follows in Hee’s paper on the “internationalization” and ultimately commodification of important civic spaces in Singapore politics. Formation of civic spaces This set of four papers looks into the evolution of civic spaces in specific contexts. China represents a good example of the ebbs and flows of civic space formation. Taking a brief but long-ranging history of Chinese cities, Heng shows how dramatically the civic spaces of the Chinese city changed according to the nature of the regime and its conception of public spaces. As Heng points out, nature and evolution of public spaces in Chinese cities have been closely linked to the power and vision of the regime in power. As the authority of the regime diminished, the flourishing of civic spaces ensued. New types of public spaces also developed as outcomes of efforts by influential reformers as well as arising from visions of new regimes. The potential for urban public space to be appropriated by different groups of people meant that it has been the target of control by authorities throughout Chinese history. Leaf and Anderson take an associational view of civil society and examine the extent to which this layer of organization has taken root in post 1989 China. Their study of two peri-urban villages show that the success of local efforts depends on the embedded nature of relationships between local government and the villagers. Their conclusion is similar to Lu’s, which is that as China’s economic reforms have dismantled the work unit, the effectiveness of local efforts at improving the immediate environment
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 19
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
19
depend ultimately on the local government, and the collaborative relations built, as market driven associations and civil society associations are weak and at infancy. In the context of the Chinese city, Leaf and Anderson argue that instead of civic space being conceived of as a space for non-state civil society – that is, unencumbered by the constraining actions of the state – it is more accurate to portray Chinese civic spaces in intermediary terms, as spaces regulated jurisdictionally through lower order components of the state. More importantly, Leaf and Anderson point out that contrary to liberal observers, the advent of economic reforms has not weakened the state but rather strengthened its local components. In their discussion, Leaf and Anderson highlight the differences in the local state’s response to the peri-urban settlements with one case study illustrating tolerance and ultimately assimiliation and the other demonstrating active state repression. The potential of religious sites to function as civic spaces is examined by Sirat and Abdullah. Their study of mosques in Kuala Lumpur shows that while most mosques function as community spaces in themselves, several, because of historical legacies end up functioning as civic spaces in terms of their capacity to function as staging areas for the mobilization of popular opinion over public issues. Significantly, this paper also shows the episodic nature of such engagements, one event in the mid-1970s and the other in the late 1990s indicate the latent social energies that are embedded in such places. The dual nature of religious sites as communal and civic and the episodic nature of transformations mean that we need to understand the factors that allow for the potential transformation of communal spaces to civic spaces. Sirat and Abdullah point out mosques traditionally have acted as sites for public debate over a range of social issues and have supported social and charitable causes. The working out of such social activities have been more prominent for some mosques and, over time, this has become associated with the mosque’s reputation in the eyes of the people so much so that when external events trigger action within these mosques, such sites are transformed into civic spaces for the debate and mobilization of public opinion and action at a much wider scale. A more systematic analysis of how sites emerge as civic spaces is provided by Boonchuen’s study of Bangkok’s Sanam Luang. Her analysis shows how this particular site has accumulated a number of symbolic elements over several decades, from a site hosting the burial ceremonies of national heroes, to its location as a site for free speech. Thus, coupled with its central location and access to other symbolic sites, Sanam Luang has emerged as the most important civic space for Thailand. Like Sirat and Abdullah’s analysis, Boonchuen’s chapter also shows how symbolism stays within the memory of the Thai public such that mobilization attempts that are episodic are identified with the same sites. Her study of Bangkok’s Sanam Luang shows how over the course of more than two centuries this particular site was transformed from privileged royal grounds to a popular civic space as
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 20
20
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
the political structures of the Thai Kingdom shifted to a constitutional monarchy and experienced episodic popular mobilization toward more democratic governance that invariably gathered protestors to it. By the mid1980s, however, globalization takes a turn toward restructuring Sanam Luang as a major global tourist destination. The appearance of global circuits of finance and franchizing in Sanam Luang at this time supports the analysis of Douglass (Chapter 2), who observes that this was a critical juncture at which civic space issues in Pacific Asia turned from state–civil society contestations toward civil society-global capital confrontations. In the case of Sanam Luang, civil society organizations were able to successfully oppose the commodification of the important and historic civic space. Regulation of civic spaces These papers take the issue of regulation from a state perspective and examine the contestations (or lack of ) over specific spaces. Organization at the local community level seems to be in flux, as China’s economic reforms have disbanded the local work unit. Lu argues that the need to provide a range of local services to residents remains an important issue and in the case of Shanghai, the local government has been strengthened to assume more functions in managing the needs of the community. While Lu shows the effectiveness of such new arrangements in plugging the gap left by the demise of work-unit organizations, he also highlights several emerging problems. Shanghai illustrates a case of a state very much in control and the paper in large part is devoted to demonstrating the empowerment of local government agencies by higher level government to solve community-level problems. The move towards the privatization of residential housing has created a new common economic interest among homeowners to protect the value of their assets, including common spaces. While Lu provides evidence of commercial provision of open spaces in response to growing demand interests and public-spirited citizen actions, these work with and alongside state agencies. China’s strong state environment is also replicated in Singapore, and Hee’s analysis of four different types of public spaces shows how its civic character remains underdeveloped, in spite of greater participation by private developers in the provision of public spaces and in spite of calls by the government for greater local participation. The case of Singapore is significant for the absence of civic spaces in the abundance of public open spaces and demonstrates the need, as Hee argues, to scrutinize the processes in which such spaces are created. Hee’s paper attempts to unpack the underlying currents of post-colonial urban processes, private sector voluntarism, the forging of identities of marginalized people in the city and the cultivation of an emergent civil society – within the framework of the creation of civic spaces. She argues in the context of civic spaces that are created in historically contingent ways that there are others in the
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 21
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
21
making with multi-layered meanings, particularly in Singapore, a city-state well aware of the stakes in global inter-city competition for foreign capital invesments, and yet still searching for self-identity at this juncture in its comparatively short history of thirty-seven years of nationhood. While it is easy to conclude that state regulation is effective at the macro level, at the micro level it is a different matter altogether. Koh’s analysis shows how the law is often forced to make concessions regarding the control of vendors in Hanoi’s sidewalks in order to balance competing demands of accessibility of produce and services to consumers with congestion issues. Where before economic freedom, the pavement had been relatively free of civil activity, by the late 1980s such activity became a daily sight of Hanoi City, and a daily “pain” for Hanoi’s urban administrators. In the contest for use of the pavements in the capital city of Hanoi in Vietnam, Koh highlights the social processes through which public spaces have become sites of civic engagement between state and citizens involving, in many instances, the superior officers of patrolling ward policemen, the residents, media and the roaming vendors who set up business on the pavements. In this way, Koh draws meanings to civic spaces other than as sites of resistance to homogenizing global flows, as Hee has argued in her discussion. Civic spaces and community mobilization The papers in this section are significant for the ways in which they examine specific instances of mobilization, its costs and the consequences of successful mobilization. Of the set of case studies of Pacific Asian countries, Korea stands out as the one country that has made significant achievements in democratic reforms through civil society engagements. Cho’s paper provides an analysis of how an active civil society is tied to a variety of civic spaces. His paper indicates how major streets and their adjacent squares and parks have performed a critical role as staging areas for important grassroot political events. Such events occur outside the arena of institutionalized politics and have over the years been an important avenue for achieving democratic reforms. Cho also shows how such civil society victories have also resulted in the creation of new public spaces that will continue to nourish civic consciousness. The international nature of mobilization is discussed in two papers by Lim and Boski. Lim shows how the shifting grounds of civic spaces have been strengthened by Internet enabled communities. She demonstrates the significant interplay between the organization of activities in cyberspace works itself down to the street level in the form of organized protests. What can be called “insurgent civic spaces” – spaces created as sites for political mobilization against formidable powerholders – are the subject of concern in the two chapters by Lim and Boski. Merlyna Lim traces the historical
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 22
22
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
episodes in the production of public spaces of Jakarta from pre-colonial to post-Suharto era. She shows how state-society relations have historically been imprinted in urban space, with each era marked by particular physical, institutional and symbolic representations in public spaces. As Lim states, the histories of people are also the histories of places, and space is an active part of rather than simply a backdrop to social and political change. She provides detailed instances of the ways in which space and place have been bound up with the formation of identities and historical conflicts and struggles over power. In spatializing history, Lim raises the question of whether the massive mobilization and creation of insurgent civic spaces to provide sites for the overthrow of the Suharto regime can be projected into the future toward a more democratic society. Her response is that while insurgent spaces will always have their importance in political change, what is needed is more enduring civic spaces, which are embodied in parks, plazas, sidewalks and other spaces as well as cyberspace. In the short term, one irony of political reform after Suharto is that while political liberties such as freedom of the press and popular assembly are now imprinted in the constitution, successive governments have turned to further controlling public space through fences and other means as a way to dampen political gatherings in the city. These more recent episodes readily show how the control of space can be a powerful tool in controlling civil society. Joe Boski’s paper parallels that of Lim by showing how insurgent spaces emerging around global governance events such as G8 and World Trade Organization (WTO) meetings have become increasingly fortified and policed, with “no-go” zones extending further and further from meeting sites. In reviewing a number of episodes of protest movements around global summits, Boski clearly shows how space is used as an active element of countering dissent by such tactics as moving meetings to remote sites, such as the G8 meeting in the remote Rocky Mountain region of Kananaskis, Canada, and/or simply fortifying and increasing the no-go perimeter around these events to distances that effectively mute any form of protest. State use of the tactics of dislocation, militarization and routinizing of control techniques over the spaces of these events has meant that protest becomes ephemeral. Hope is given to proposals for creating processes of negotiation between state and civil society actors in the planning of such events in a manner that offers reasonable security for the meetings while appreciating the value of social protest. Ultimately, the study of civil spaces relates to the question of how can Pacific Asia’s growing urban populations create life-spaces in the city for a more livable, convivial and democratic future. A key question in this regard is whether or not civic spaces can be routinely created rather than appropriated through civil society–state–economy struggles. Several chapters give hope in this regard, and others pinpoint specific issues and pressure points for an urban agenda. Now, more than ever, the future development
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 23
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
23
of cities in Pacific Asia must incorporate the growth of spaces needed for human fruition through an active and inclusive civil society made possible by having access to common spaces for daily association and political voice.
Notes 1 We follow Fuchs et al. usage of the term “Pacific Asia.” This includes the countries of the western Pacific rim (essentially East and Southeast Asia), and excludes South Asia and North America. See Roland J. Fuchs et al. (eds.), Urbanization and Urban Policies in Pacific Asia (Honolulu, Hawaii: East-West Center and Canberra, Australia, National Centre for Development Studies, Australian National University, 1987), p. 1. 2 As summarized by Korten (2001, 2): Historically the term civil society traces back to ancient Greece and Aristotle’s concept of a politike koinonia or political community, later translated into Latin as societas civilis, or a civil society. Aristotle described the civil society as an ethical–political community of free and equal citizens of good and responsible character who by mutual consent agree to live under a system of law that expresses the norms and values they share. As the law is a codification of the shared cultural values by which the members of society have chosen to live, it becomes largely self–enforcing–maximizing the freedom of the individual and minimizing the need for coercive state intervention. It is an ideal consistent both with our current understanding of the organizing principles of healthy living systems and with freeing the creative potentials of humanity. 3 AOL-Time Warner, News Corporation, Disney, Bertelsmann, Vivendi and Viacom (Mediachannel, 2002). 4 United Nations (2001) Economic and Social Survey of Asia and the Pacific 2001, New York: ESCAP. 5 On the basis of FDI inflow and outflow data from UNCTAD 2001, Japan has been a net exporter of capital in all three time points (1980, 1990 and 2000). Taiwan has been a net exporter since 1990, primarily into China and some Southeast Asian countries. Korea and Singapore have had significant capital outflows since 1990 but inflows are larger than outflows.
References Bagdikian, B.H. (2000) The Media Monopoly, 6th edn., New York: Beacon Press. Basnayake, H. (2000) “Planning of Space for Outdoor Recreation for Sri Lanka’s Urban Public”, in G.L. Ooi (ed.) Model Cities – Urban Best Practices, Singapore: Urban Redevelopment Authority and Institute of Policy Studies. Castells, M. (1989) The Informational City, Oxford: Basil Blackwell. Davis, M. (1990) City of Quartz: Excavating the Future of Los Angeles, London: Verso. de Tocqueville, A. (1969), Democracy in America, New York: Harper and Row. Douglass, M. (1993) “The ‘New’ Tokyo Story: Restructuring Space and the Struggle for Place in a World City”, in K. Fujita and R.C. Hill (eds.) Japanese Cities in the Global Economy: Global Restructuring and Urban-Industrial Change, Philadelphia, PA: Temple University Press. Douglass, M. (1999) “Unbundling National Identity – Global Migration and the Advent of Multicultural Societies in East Asia”, Asian Perspectives, 23: 79–128.
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 24
24
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Douglass M, Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Special Issue on Globalization and Civic Space in Pacific Asia”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 345–61. Economist (1996) “To Be Loved and Give Delight: City Parks”, 24 February, 338: 9–10. Evans, S. and Boyte, H. (1986) Free Spaces, New York: Harper and Row. Evans, S. and Boyte, H. (1992) Free Spaces: The Sources of Democratic Change in America, Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. Friedmann, J. (1987) Planning in the Public Domain: from Knowledge to Action, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Friedmann, J. (1998) “The New Political Economy of Planning: the Rise of Civil Society”, in M. Douglass and J. Friedmann (eds.) Cities for Citizens: Planning and the Rise of Civil Society in a Global Age, London: John Wiley. Friedmann, J. (1999) “Claiming Rights: Citizenship and the Spaces of Democracy”, Plurimondi, 2: 287–303. Graham, S. (1994) “Networking Cities: Telematics in Urban Policy – A Critical Review”, International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 18: 416–32. Graham, S. (1997) “Imagining the Real-Time City; Telecommunications, Urban Paradigms and the Future of Cities”, in S. Westwood and J. Williams (eds.) Imaging Cities; Scripts, Signs, Memory, London: Routledge. Graham, S. (2000) “Constructing Premium Network Spaces: Reflections on Infrastructure Networks and Contemporary Urban Development”, International Journal of Urban & Regional Research, 24: 183–200. Goffman, E. (1959) The Presentation of Self in Everyday Life, New York: Anchor Books. Goffman, E. (1961) Asylums, New York: Anchor Books. Goffman, E. (1963) Behaviour in Public Places: Notes on the Social Organization of Gatherings, New York: The Free Press. Habermas, J. (1989) Structural Transformation of the Public Sphere, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Harvey, D. (1992) “Social Justice, Postmodernism and the City”, International Journal of Urban & Regional Research, 16: 587–601. Hsiao, M.H.H. (ed.) (1993) Discovery of the Middle Class in East Asia, Institute of Ethnology, Academia Sinica. Jacobs, J. (1961) The Death and Life of Great American Cities, New York: Random House. Jencks, C. (1996) “The City That Never Sleeps”, New Statesman, 125: 26–8. Kassim, A. (2000) “Indonesian Immigrant Settlements in Peninsular Malaya”, Sojourn, 15: 100–22. King, B. and Hustedde, R. (1993) “Community Free Spaces”, Journal of Extension, Winter, 31. Knox, P. (1993) The Restless Urban Landscape, Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice Hall. Knox, P. (1994) Introduction to Urban Geography, Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice Hall. Korten, D. (2001) The Civil Society: an Unfolding Cultural Struggle. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed July 2002). Kunstler, J.H. (1994) The Geography of Nowhere, New York: Touchstone. Lefebvre, H. (1991) The Production of Space, London: Blackwell. Lim, M. (2002), “Cybercivic Space in Indonesia: From Panopticon to Pandemonium?”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 384–400. Lim, M. (2003) “From Real to Virtual (and back again): Civil Society, Public Sphere, and the Internet in Indonesia”, in K.C. Ho, R. Kluver and K. Yang (eds.) The Internet and Development in Asia, London: Routledge.
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 25
Globalization, the city and civil society in Pacific Asia
25
McChesney, R.W. (1999) Rich Media, Poor Democracy, Urbana, IL: Illinois University Press. Machimura, T. (1997) “Building a Capital for Emperor and Enterprise: the Changing Urban Meaning of Central Tokyo”, in W.B. Kim, M. Douglass, S.C. Choe and K.C. Ho (eds.) Culture and the City in East Asia, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Marcuse, P. (2000) “Cities in Quarters”, in G. Bridge and S. Watson (eds.) A Companion to the City, London: Blackwell. Marshall, R. (2003) Emerging Urbanity: Global Urban Projects in the Asia Pacific Rim, New York: Spon Press. Mayer, M. (1999) “Urban Movements and Urban Theory in the Late 20th Century”, in S. Body-Gendrot and R.A. Beauregard (eds.) The Urban Moment: Cosmopolitan Essays on the Late 20 th Century City, Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Mediachannel (2002) Issue Guides/Ownership. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed July 2002). Mercado, R.G. (2000) “Environment and Natural Resources Management: Lessons from Programme Innovations of Selected Philippine Cities”, in G.L. Ooi (ed.) Model Cities – Urban Best Practices, Singapore: Urban Redevelopment Authority and the Institute of Policy Studies. Molz, R.K. and Dain, P. (1999) Civic Space/Cyberspace: The American Public Library in the Information Age, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Newman, P. and Thornley, A. (2005) Planning World Cities, New York: Palgrave, Macmillan. Olds, K. (1995) “Globalization and the Production of New Urban Spaces: Pacific Rim megaprojects in the Late 20th Century”, Environment and Planning A, 27:1713–1743. Ooi, G.L. and Koh, G. (1998) “State-Society Synergies: New Stakes, New Partnership”, in A. Mahiznan and T.Y. Lee (eds.) Singapore – Re-Engineering Success, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Oxford University Press. PPI (Progressive Policy Institute) (2000) The New Economy Index. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed July 2002). Putnam, R. (1993) Making Democracy Work, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Rimmer, P.J. and Dick, H.W. (1998) “Beyond the Third World City: The New Urban Geography”, Urban Studies, 35: 54–72. Robinson, R. and Goodman, D.S.G. (eds.) (1996) The New Rich in Asia, London: Routledge. Rodan, G. (1996) “Class Transformations and Political Tensions in Singapore’s Development”, in R. Robinson and D.S.G. Goodman (eds.) The New Rich in Asia, London: Routledge. Sassen, S. (2000) The Global City, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Shaw, J. and Utt, R. (eds.) (2000) A Guide to Smart Growth: Shattering Myths, Providing Solutions, Washington, DC: Heritage Foundation. Soja, E. (1997) “Six Discourses on the Postmetropolis”, in S. Westwood and J. Williams, (eds.), Imaging Cities; Scripts, Signs, Memory, London: Routledge. Sorkin, M. (ed.) (1992) Variations on a Theme Park; the New American City and the End of Public Space, New York: Noonday Press. Tan, W.K., (2000), “Balancing Nature, Landscape and City,” in G.L. Ooi (ed.) Model Cities – Urban Best Practices, Singapore: Urban Redevelopment Authority and the Institute of Policy Studies. Thurow, L. (1999) “Building Wealth: the New Rules for Individuals, Companies and Nations”, Atlantic Monthly, June, pp. 57–69.
9780415397896_4_001.qxd 07/09/2007 09:10 Page 26
26
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Urban Ecology (1996) Blueprint for a Sustainable Bay Area, Oakland, CA: Community Design Consulting Program, Urban Ecology Inc., p. 2. Wong, A.K. and Ooi, G.L. (1989) “Spatial re-organization”, in K. Sandhu, K. Singh and P. Wheatley (eds.), Management of Success – The Moulding of Modern Singapore, Singapore: Institute of Southeast Asian Studies. Westwood, S. and Williams, J. (eds.), Imaging Cities; Scripts, Signs, Memory, London: Routledge. Witteveen, P. (1996) “Understanding Civil Society, Its Ramifications, Its Roots”, Human Mosaic, 30: 72–84. WWC (Walt Whitman Center) (1996) Malltown Square: A Legislating Civil Society Project, New Brunswick, Department Political Science, Rutgers University. Online. Available HTTP: http://www.cpn.org/sections/ affiliates/ whitman/lcs-malls.html (accessed July 2002). Young, I.M. (1990) “City, Life and Difference”, in P. Kasinitz (ed.) Metropolis, Center and Symbol of Our Times, New York: New York University Press.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 27
2
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere Comparative research on globalization, cities and civic space in Pacific Asia Mike Douglass
As Pacific Asia enters its first urban century, the forces of globalization are radically restructuring cities as they intersect with local histories and shifting constellations of power. Two contradictory outcomes are readily observed in this local–global process: the rise of civil society and the yielding of urban spaces to the logic of global accumulation. The rise of civil society is manifested in at least two ways: first, the increasing pressure for more livable cities that provide spaces for everyday forms of social engagement away from state and corporate control and, second, insurgent occupation of urban spaces to push the agenda for political reform. In contrast, the logic of global accumulation pits city against city in a hyper-competitive game to build urban landscapes that facilitate the increasing velocity of the global circulation of capital: through the capture and commodification of space, the shift from public to private ownership and control, and the conversion of community and cultural spaces into simulated “world city” spaces for global service functions and localized segments of transnational value-added chains. In the urban turmoil of mobilization for political reform confronting both the state and the logic of global accumulation, each society incorporates and manages these contradictory forces in different ways, depending on their own histories, culture and forms of governance. One way of understanding how a given society intersects with globalization is to explore the spaces of their cities and how civil society has or has not thrived in them in the past, and to look toward prospects for the future. Here called “civic spaces” – socially inclusive spaces with a high degree of autonomy from the state and commercial interest – the focus is on identifying and tracing the uses and transformations of these spaces in Pacific Asia cities. With globalization and urban transformations as the larger dynamic, the discussion in this chapter is premised on the proposition that the need to physically create civic spaces that are open to people of all walks of life is of paramount importance for, and the future of, a more participatory and politically active society in Pacific Asian cities. Taking the view that civil society is as much “for itself” as it is a potential part of the
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 28
28
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
public sphere, the discussion begins by exploring the concept of civic space and its relationship to civil society, the state and economy.
Civil society and civic space The term “civil society” has a variety of definitions (Hegel 1967; Tocqueville 1969; Gramsci 1971; de Habermas 1989).1 Here it is understood as the totality of voluntary associations having significant autonomy from both the state and economy. No assumption is made about the “goodness” of such organizations. Nor is any assumption made that to be called “civil society” these associations must be engaged in the public sphere or the direct politics of state policy formation and implementation. As Friedmann (1998) correctly observes, most of the daily engagements through these associations are indicative of civil society for itself, i.e., people engaging with other people for social, cultural, religious or other voluntary association away from state or corporate economy intrusions. Civil society as “civil” cannot long endure without the state, which is tacitly given or forcefully takes on law-making and police authority to, inter alia, make and enforce law, resolve major contestations, and prevent the violence of one person or group against another (Keane 1988). Likewise, every society must have an economy, and with the possible exception of subsistence (self-provisioning) economies operating outside of the market, in the modern world civil society materially reproduces itself largely through an increasingly globalized corporate economy. Civil society thus exists in relation to state and economy, and is fraught with tensions and contradictions. Disharmony within civil society is rooted in this relationship as well, as evidenced in the Jihad vs. McWorld stylization of contemporary global strife and violence (Barber 1996; Castells 1997; Lim 2005). It is rife with class, ethnic, religious, gender, lifestyle and other divisions that can diminish as well as expand chances for social tolerance and cooperation. In this sense, civil society organizations mediate relationships among individuals, the state, and private economic interests. The fact that it does not participate in the political sphere does not mean that it does not exist. Rather, it suggests that, first, civil society can still exist for itself and, second, that in its political involvement it might exist in forms that are sporadic and clandestine. In the case of Pacific Asia, until very recently engagement in the public sphere has been suppressed and marginalized. However, widespread political reforms over the past two decades have created new opportunities for the political activation of civil society. At the same time, cities and civil society are being assailed by the global corporate economy. State complicity in this is manifested – particularly over the past two decades – through neo-liberal political and economic reforms supporting the globalization of all circuits of capital, including the commodification of social relations through the changing of civic space to private commercial space.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 29
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
29
Figure 2.1 Civil society and civic spaces.
How these shifts play out in a given city can be seen through the structuring and usage of urban spaces. The production of space reflects and assists in transforming relations within civil society as well as those among civil society, state, and corporate actors (Lefebvre 1991). Specifically, the following discussion is concerned with the creation and endurance of civic spaces, which are defined as socially inclusive spaces in which people of different origins and walks of life can associate without overt control by government, commercial or other private interests, or de facto dominance by one group over another (Douglass 2002; Douglass, Ho and Ooi 2002). Figure 2.1 locates civic spaces in relation to civil society, the state and economy. As previously noted, civil society is mostly “for itself,” seeking spaces away from overt involvement in the public sphere, state or economic control. Alternatively referred to as “life spaces” (Friedmann 1988), “lifeworld” (Habermas 1989; Cho 2002), “free spaces” (Evans and Boyte 1986, 1992), or “community free spaces” (K ing and Hustedde 1993), these are the spaces of social encounter that contribute to the production and reproduction of practices of social cooperation, problem solving, and social capital formation (Putnam 1993). Since civil society is not necessarily engaged in inclusive or tolerant behavior, it can also form exclusive spaces, including the household, that do not comprise civic spaces. Religious institutions barring non-believers, clubs with membership based on gender, ethnicity, race or other exclusive categories are not civic spaces as defined here; nor are those spaces included which are used for uncivil intentions such as planned violence against other civil society organizations. All of these are here categorized as exclusive spaces. Civil society needs civic spaces to effectively engage in the public sphere. One of the oldest traditions identifying the city with the emergence of civil society is the construction of public squares serving this purpose. Since Roman times, cities of Italy invariably include a public forum in the form of a large centrally positioned square. These were not only spaces for casual social encounters, festivals and petty commerce; but also sites where individuals could express political opinion and engage in debate about
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 30
30
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
political affairs of the day. Without such spaces, “there could be no . . . civil society” (Witteveen 1996: 78). However, the mere existence of a public square, park or other spaces that appear to be civic spaces is not necessarily an indication of opportunities for civil society to engage in political discourse or action. Many nominal public spaces are colonized by the state or combinations of state–private enterprise interests (Habermas 1989). Authoritarian regimes typically tightly control parks and other public spaces in which political rallies are orchestrated by the state. As described in revealing detail by Lim (this volume) in her history of civic space in Jakarta, the provision of public spaces by the state was more accurately an attempt to symbolically build a national identity with the aim of legitimizing the authority of regime in power. However, precisely because of the political authority that these areas represent – evidenced by the demanding and achieving of political reform by the assembly of hundreds of thousands of people at these sites in the late 1990s – such spaces are never in total control of the state or any dominant group. Civil society for itself and civil society politically mobilized cannot be clearly separated in the real world. Speaking about political events at a community festival or discussing how to mobilize a campaign for political reform while on an Internet chat line are perhaps common occurrences. Because of such tendencies, authoritarian states strictly limit or have strict surveillance over even the most mundane social gatherings. In the case of Indonesia under the Suharto regime, street corners had a posted sign demanding that any visitor from outside the area must be reported to the authorities within 24 hours after arrival in a neighborhood (Lim 2002). In several Southeast Asian countries, for example, governments reserve the right to detain people who meet in groups of five or more in a public place. In this manner, public spaces are substantially limited as spaces for the flourishing of civil society. To summarize, Figure 2.1 indicates that not all civil society spaces are civic spaces; neither are all public spaces civic spaces. Here the interest is in spaces that are inclusive: open to a broad spectrum of civil society, whether public or private, with every person having the right of access (Goffman 1959, 1961, 1963). This does not mean that civic spaces are unregulated or without any constraints on access or use. Whether in the form of private property, common property or state property, civic spaces require rules of access and use if they are to function in an inclusive, fundamentally nonviolent and civil manner. Although regulation of civic spaces can take place under common property regimes, in the contemporary urban world most civic spaces rely on larger protection by governments to keep commercial and other encroachments at bay as well as maintain the peaceful sharing of these spaces. As the examples above show, the idea of civic space is much more complex than can be captured by simply calling it “public space.” In some instances, for example, civic spaces are created through the regulation of privately owned spaces, such as in the case of laws in several states of the
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 31
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
31
United States requiring privately owned shopping malls to allow freedom of speech on their premises. In others, such as the peri-urban settlements around Chinese cities reported by Leaf and Anderson (this volume), the local state can be a crucial actor in securing community spaces. Whether or not people are free to use these spaces is another matter. This very fact that the state is seen as the ultimate regulator of space on behalf of civil society also makes civic spaces continuously susceptible to the state colonization of public space. This further suggests that civic spaces are often contested and subject to shifts in power relations (Mitchell 2003). As noted, civic spaces can exist in privately owned establishments, such as the pub in the United Kingdom, the local coffee shop in the US, or the privately owned public bath in Japan. They can even perhaps be created in such privately owned developments as Suntec City in Singapore (Hee, this volume), although the specter of simulated collective memory and the commodification of civil society experiences, and thus citizenship, suggests that rather than creating an authentic juxtaposition of the civic and the commercial, it is a pseudo-heterotopia (Foucault 1986) of consumerism. They may also be ephemeral civic spaces appearing sporadically as insurgent spaces occupied by social movements seeking political reform, as exemplified in the contested spaces around meetings of the World Trade Organization, the World Bank and other would-be global governance institutions far removed from democratic decision-making processes (Boski, this volume). In these and many other ways, the production of civic space is a process now reaching from the local to the global scale.
Globalization, cities and civic space in Pacific Asia Globalization, as an intensification of interaction around the world, is more than just the sum of local–global relations. The speed of information and decision-making flows are such that actions at one site can be near instantaneously known at another, creating informational streams that transcend a single city or region (Castells 2000). The result is the emergence of networks of decision-making flows rather than simple two-way relationships between a location and, for example, a potential global investor. Positioning within these networks is a multi-player game, as can be seen in the current intercity competition for world city status in Pacific Asia (Douglass 2000). The view from the city is one of a compelling world system that constrains and provides signals that direct local action. This is currently manifested in governments providing infrastructure, tax holidays and other subsidies to out-compete other cities and regions to “win” global investment. Under the ascendant neo-liberal paradigm, ways to win this game are directed toward a limited band of options: deregulation, privatization, ever more open economies, and direct cost recovery for what were previously thought to be public goods and services. In addition, city governments feel increasingly compelled to engage in boosterism in the form of urban
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 32
32
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
mega-projects such as the world’s tallest buildings, world hub airports, global business districts, and other investments in the built environment that are not only functionally required to host global flows but are also symbolically powerful in attracting them into the urban economy. There are great variations in which globalization implicates different kinds of relationships. As put forth by Hee (this volume), global capital or any other force is not hegemonic in impacting all localities in the same way or to the same degree; rather, globalization exhibits a complex array of global–local, local–global interactions. Choices are explicitly or implicitly taken through locally constituted state, citizen and business relations of power that, while subject to external forces, have different outcomes with regard to linking (or de-linking) with the globalization processes. All of these global–local engagements have consequences for civil society and civic spaces. In broad outline, globalization fosters and is dependent upon accelerating the urban transition and the restructuring of cities into global networks – serving to advance its speed and scale of accumulation. In the case of Pacific Asia, the timelines shown in Figure 2.2 summarize the major global trends in this region from pre-colonial times to today. Part I of Figure 2.2 indicates that the globalization of basic circuits of capital – commodity trade, production, finance (Palloix 1973) – historically occurred at different points in time. The first moment of global commodity trade came with the Western colonization of much of Asia (from the seventeenth to well into the twentieth century) and was based on an international division of labor characterized by urban-industrial exports from the north and natural resource extraction and primary commodity production in the south. Only from approximately the 1970s onward did developing countries in Pacific Asia begin to experience rapid inclusion into the “new international division of labor” (NIDL) (Fröbel et al. 1980). This saw the massive deindustrialization of the Fordist factory system in North America and Europe paralleled by the emergence of “newly industrializing economies” in the region. The rise of the first generation of export-oriented industrializing “Tiger” (a.k.a. “Dragon”) economies of South Korea, Taiwan, Hong Kong and Singapore was subsequently mimicked to a lesser extent by the Association of Southeast Asian Nations (ASEAN) economies of Malaysia, Thailand, Indonesia and the Philippines. By the late 1980s, the “transition economies” of China and Vietnam were also providing export-processing zones in coastal cities in explicit policy attempts to join this process. Accelerated urban-industrial growth in a limited number of Pacific Asia economies began to create an urban middle class of sufficient size and wealth to begin to attract what can be called circuits of consumer franchise capital, which began to saturate cities in Pacific Asia in a surprisingly short space of time. From almost no presence in the 1970s, the magnitude of global franchises is now vast, ranging from fast food restaurants such as McDonald’s, KFC, Lotteria, Mos Burger, and Starbucks to Euro-design
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 33
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
33
clothing stores, “big box” outlets, shopping malls and a host of urban services such as taxis and car rental companies. Figure 2.2 also indicates that another major circuit of capital, namely finance, directly entered into the banking and financial systems of Pacific Asia from the 1990s, coinciding with the second wave of export-oriented industrialization moving into Southeast Asia (ASEAN). In the early 1990s, long-standing pressures from the US and Europe as well as international lenders such as the World Bank and International Monetary Fund (IMF) led to a remarkable opening of banking systems that had previously been closed in Pacific Asia. This allowed for massive influxes of short-term investment chasing high interest rates at fixed exchange rates, setting the stage for the sudden collapse of major economies in the region from late 1997 (Douglass 2001b). As discussed below, the combined linkages of manufacturing, finance and franchise capital have radically transformed cities and civic spaces throughout the region. Tier II in Figure 2.2 presents a generalized overview of political transformations that parallel the globally linked economic changes in Pacific Asia. Following World War II up to approximately the mid-1960s or later, the political stage in Pacific Asia was dominated by independence movements and the establishment of post-colonial national governments. Nation-state building was typically carried out as a reaction to colonialism and was manifested by explicit political distancing (and even closing off) of the newly independent nations from economic intercourse and politicalmilitary pacts with the North. Nonalignment, socialist ideologies, and civil/international war in Korea, China and Vietnam created fractures in the region, some of which continue to limit international political relations among nations in the region as well, notably in Northeast Asia. The first phase of export-oriented industrialization in the late 1960s was accompanied in the region by a new type of state, the “developmental state” (Douglass 1994). The principal aspects of these state regimes were twofold; namely, the (1) selective opening of economies to global economy, (particularly to investment and technology for export-oriented manufacturing2), and (2) regime maintenance through implicit social contract promising high rates of economic growth in exchange for severely curtailed political freedoms of civil society. The mantel of leadership shifted from the postcolonial “father of the nation” to “father of development.” As long as the state could deliver high rates of economic growth, which several did, social discontent over laws prohibiting public assembly and freedom of speech, press or other media such as radio and television remained limited, sporadic and muted. Martial law prevailed as regimes increasingly used police force to hold on to power decade after decade. In contrast to the pro-capitalist rent-seeking regimes that geared national economies for export-oriented manufacturing, a few other nation-states were engaged in grand socialist experiments ostensibly to create alternatives to world capitalism. The suppression of civil society in these countries was not
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 34
34
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 2.2 Global timelines, the city and civic space in Pacific Asia.
done in the name of economic development as such, but rather was actively carried out in the name of anti-imperialism and anti-bourgeois tendencies within society. Levels of urbanization remained low; by the 1980s, the economies of these countries could no longer be sustained. Programs of basic economic reform began in earnest, though political reform was less certain, leading to a re-categorization of these countries as being “transitional” economies on the road toward market based economic systems. As a consequence of freeing the mobility of people to migrate and opening economies to global investment in urban services and industry, by the 1990s rates of urbanization in these countries began to accelerate.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 35
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
35
Whether in developmental or transitional socialist states, urbanization and international intercity networks bringing distant sources of information to Asian cities gave support to a rising tide of political discontent and calls for political reform. By the mid-1990s significant political reform was underway in many places, including Korea, Taiwan, the Philippines, and Thailand. Following the collapse of its economy after the massive flight of global finance capital from the region of 1997, Indonesia joined the process by overthrowing the Suharto regime in 1998 and laying cornerstones for the advent of popularly elected government. The chronology of the global–local transformations in Pacific Asia was simultaneously space-forming and space-contingent. Just as gaining global investment required certain types of infrastructure and urban design, effective action for political reform necessitated command over key sites in cities, which became the insurgent civic spaces of mass mobilization for political reform. The spread of Internet use in the 1990s also proved to be essential in promoting the rise of civil society to effect political change (Lim 2002). In all of these dynamics, instead of simply being a backdrop, the organization of space has been an active part of the activation of civil society (Lefebvre 1991). Tier III of Figure 2.2 focuses on these space-society processes. Over the course of several centuries of history, the now major cities in Pacific Asia were transformed from small fortified imperial centers overseeing local empires and tributary systems in pre-colonial times to the huge, open industrial cities and globally linked service centers of today. Colonialism had a profound impact on reshaping settlements systems. In not a few cases, the major urban-industrial centers that now exist were primarily the creations of colonialism. Jakarta, Rangoon, Penang, Singapore, Saigon, Manila, Hong Kong, to name a few, all came to prominence under European imperialism. Yet it was only at the end of the twentieth century, when the urban transition in Pacific Asia leaped in tempo and magnitude to signal a decisively new era. This leap can be seen in at least five dimensions of urbanization in Pacific Asia: (1) the acceleration of urbanization and spatial polarization; (2) the shift from national civil society–state contestations to civil society– global economy and cultural confrontations; (3) the increasing multicultural make up of metropolitan regions and the impending crisis of citizenship; (4) growing inequalities and social fragmentation; and (5) the search for new forms of urban governance.
Explosive urban growth and spatial polarization Accelerated urbanization and the spatial polarization of national economies is one of the most prominent features of contemporary globalization (Friedmann 2002). In 1950 the urban population of Pacific Asia accounted for only 15 percent of the population, totalling approximately 140 million
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 36
36
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 2.3 Population growth in four Southeast Asia mega urban regions, 1900– 2000.
people; in the year 2000 it was approaching 50 percent of the population with almost one billion people – a sevenfold increase (UN 2001). By 2020 an estimated 54 percent of the total population will be urban, and rural populations will for the first time in history begin a chronic absolute decrease (Dasgupta 2002). Levels of urbanization are now reaching their peak at more than 80 percent in the highly industrialized economies of Korea, Taiwan, Hong Kong, signalling the near completion of their urban transitions. When Korea became a colony of Japan in 1910, Seoul had a population of about 200,000. This increased to slightly fewer than 1.5 million by 1955. Subsequently, the greater Seoul metropolitan region absorbed explosive population increases to reach 19 million and account for 43 percent of the total population of Korea by the early 1990s (Kim and Choe 1996). With slight differences in timing, all other mega-urban regions of open industrializing economies of Pacific Asia have been experiencing this same pattern of explosive, spatially concentrated processes of urbanization. Figure 2.3 shows this pattern for four mega-urban regions – Bangkok, Ho
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 37
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
37
Chi Minh City, Jakarta and Manila – which remained under 1 million until the 1960s but have now reached population sizes from 10 to more than 20 million. All are increasing in population at rates that are higher than national population growth. Currently in Pacific Asia, with the exception of very large countries such as China and Indonesia, they account for one-quarter to nearly half of total national populations (Douglass 2000). They have not only become the “engines” of national economic growth (Dasgupta 2002), they have also become centers of social mobilization and intensive contestations not only over political rights but also over the built environment, collective consumption and the right to the city (Holston 2001). Among the most recent experiences of an accelerated urban transition and spatial polarization is China. From officially very low levels of around 20 percent in the late 1970s, urbanization accelerated along with economic reforms in the 1980s, reaching 36 percent of the population in 2000. Government projections indicate that by 2050 cities will account for 70 percent of the national population, which will involve an increase of more than 600 million people. Most of these new urbanites will live in the mega-urban regions of China’s Pacific – Beijing-Tianjin, Shanghai, Pearl River Delta. Vietnam faces equally daunting prospects of coping with its recent acceleration of urbanization that is spatially polarizing around Ho Chi Minh City (Saigon) and Hanoi (Douglass et al. 2002). In all mega-urban regions in Pacific Asia, as much as half of all their population increase derives from peri-urban areas where rural land uses are being rapidly and often chaotically transformed into urban uses (Webster and Muller 2002). In the case of China, peri-urban settlement highlights the fact that the country is not only in transition from state-led to marketdriven economic growth, but is also promoting a shift from state to private property regimes, leaving community spaces to be provided through ad hoc processes of negotiation. As Leaf and Anderson (this volume) detail in their investigation of China’s peri-urban development, community spaces continue to exist within a larger, but locally fragmented, state property regime, which they call “local corporatist space.” Dongmei Village on the edge of Quanzhou City in Fujian Province and Zhejiang Village on the outskirts of Beijing exist in areas outside of formal urban planning purview, yet residents are nonetheless engaged with and dependent upon local state actors to secure community spaces. By showing the striking contrasts in the experiences of these two communities, Leaf and Anderson underscore the complexity of urban processes, which are locally contingent and open-ended. They also state that in the midst of political transformation, transposing the concept of civil society to the Chinese context remains problematic in a situation in which personalized “clientelist” linkages with state elites remain paramount and in-migration of new residents into peri-urban areas is pronounced. For all societies in Pacific Asia that have become part of a worldwide urban transition, the implications for civil society and civic space are manifold.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 38
38
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
The rise of civil society is itself imbedded in the urbanization processes creating urban working and middle classes that are increasingly aware of their circumstances and able to organize in the closer proximities of the city. The pace of development and vast leap in scale of major cities also necessitates the adoption of mechanisms to release the state from being the principal initiator of urban planning and development. In its stead comes the global corporate economy as the major force restructuring both cities and the access to urban spaces.
Shift from state-driven to global capital-driven urban restructuring Until the 1970s, the planning and development of cities in Pacific Asia, though certainly influenced by global forces, remained largely in the hands of the state and local capital. Boonchuen (2002, this volume), Lim (this volume) and Hee (this volume) provide revealing analyses of the ways in which civic spaces have fared under pre-colonial, colonial, post-colonial and (post) developmentalist regimes over the course of history in Bangkok, Singapore and Jakarta. Boonchuen vividly tells of Thai kings traveling abroad to bring back “city beautiful” ideas leading to the creation of public spaces in Bangkok in the early twentieth century. Lim describes how public parks and plaza were part of the early construction of Jakarta under Islamic kingdoms, a mix of sacred and secular encounters under the watchful eye of the state. Each of these and other public spaces were re-built and re-written in meaning over the ensuing centuries. Unlike other spaces in the city, all the transformations of what Lim (this volume) calls proto-civic spaces continued to have a common thread: their intentional use as sites for symbolic reification of state power. With independence struggles and early post-independence nationalist politics in Singapore, the Padang briefly became a principal site for “symbolic confrontation of the masses with the government” (Hee, this volume). In 1998 in Jakarta, the sites of national identity (Monas) and modernity (the Hotel Indonesia traffic circle) created for regime maintenance in post-independence years suddenly blossomed as insurgent civic spaces for social movements seeking radical political reform. Heng (this volume) provides a similar account of the history of public spaces in China. The shift from walled to open city with the transition from the Tang (618–907) to the Song Dynasty (960–1279) marks an important move from containment and close surveillance of public life to freer cities where “streets, public squares in front of city gates, temple courtyards, restaurants, taverns, and pleasure precincts alike were scenes of popular entertainment” (Heng, this volume). Cities underwent further change with the arrival of European colonialism and the reconstruction of newly designated treaty ports, which brought the idea and construction of the public park to China for the first time – as well as the relative demise of the temple as a public space. As seen in other cities throughout the world, social
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 39
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
39
movements for political reform against colonialists and the post-colonial state in China in the early part of the twentieth century emerged from gatherings of hundreds of thousands of people at well known public spaces, such as Beijing’s public parks, which served as “important open forum for the dissemination of ideas and the mobilization of the urban populace” (Shi 1998; cited in Heng, this volume). In China, public spaces experienced a setback during the Maoist era, which placed neighborhoods and communities under the danwei (work unit) that controlled all resources. Throughout urban China the danwei started walling themselves off from one another under the pretext of security. The postMao years of reform have led to a substantial expansion of potential civic spaces in the form of public squares and the widespread conversion of older shopping areas into immense pedestrianized commercial streets and squares (guangchang) closed off to vehicular traffic.3 However, although open to the public, all such places remain under supervision and surveillance of the state. In the already market-oriented countries of Pacific Asia the civil society– state equation of contestations over urban space had already begun to change rapidly by the 1970s. The historically compressed convergence on Pacific Asia of the new international division of labor, finance capital and global franchise consumerism catapulted cities and civil society into a radically new era. Instead of the city centering on the palace, city hall or military compounds, the new epicentre, dedicated to global accumulation, mushroomed from pristine skyscrapers and office buildings owned by banks and insurance companies. For the major cities in the region that were established hundreds of years ago, this shift eventuated by the local intertwining of all circuits of global capital occurred within an exceptionally compressed time frame of 30 years or less. From visually quaint settlements still complete with pre-colonial and colonial architecture and open spaces up to the 1970s, by the beginning of the twenty-first century, the only major cities that remained on a walkable scale and still centered on (pre-)colonial architecture were those that had yet to fully join the new international division of labor and the enchanted world of finance capital (Lipietz 1983) such as Hanoi, Ho Chi Minh City, Phnom Penh and Rangoon. The others had become automobile oriented metropoles of very noisy streets, heavy environmental pollution, and a visible decline of public and (proto-)civic spaces. At least two major phases of restructuring from the 1970s can be identified in these open, newly industrializing economies. The first was the rebuilding and expansion of cities to accommodate export-oriented assembly and manufacturing – which took the form of export-processing zones, deep water container ports, and other mega-infrastructure such as hub airports and fast trains to effectively link cities with global circuits of trade and production – which under the new international division of labor, created a global factory and assembly system. This phase tended to focus urban restructuring more on transportation systems and production sites.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 40
40
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
In comparison to what would come in the late 1980s, central areas of the city, surprisingly, kept relatively low skylines and many middle class inner-city neighborhoods as well as large slum areas continued to exist in central areas. Suburban housing development, especially for the emerging urban middle class, appeared on a large scale, with the syndrome of long hours of traffic congestion with urban expansion well underway in most cities by the end of the 1970s. A second phase of urban restructuring came in the form of intentional world city formation and global franchise consumption, appearing in Pacific Asia only from around 1985 with Japan’s bubble economy and the opening of Pacific Asia to global finance. Most of the investments of this era were no longer being targeted at manufacturing, but were instead aimed at creating global business zones, shopping malls to accommodate global franchise and chain store outlets, as well as massive upscale housing in peri-urban areas of major cities (Bello 1997). The scales of these urban design adventures were impressive. Cyber-Jaya and the world’s tallest building (Kuala Lumpur), the massive new business-industrial center of Pudong (Shanghai), the completely new city of Shenzhen (Guangdong), which grew from 40,000 to 4 million inhabitants in less than 20 years, the Kuningan “Golden Triangle” of office buildings and new towns such as Bumi Serpong Damai (400,000 residents) ( Jakarta), the failed Muang Thong Thani private city for 700,000 people (Bangkok) all appeared at this time along with hosts of shopping malls and extensive suburban housing construction (NYT 1999).4 The city of the 1960s receded into the shadows of the globalized metropolis of the 1990s. By the economic crisis of the late 1990s, affected cities had experienced among the most intensive period of urban restructuring in their history. Displacement of low and middle-income communities in urban centers saw hundreds of thousands of people compelled to leave the urban core to make way for skyscrapers, world trade centers, international tourist development, and shopping malls. In the case of Bangkok, the building boom saw highrise commercial development displace more than 100,000 people within a ten-mile radius from the center from 1984 to 1988 (Padco-LIF 1990). For just the 1988 Seoul Olympics alone, an estimated 750,000 people were forcibly evicted (Bread Alert! 1998). In Jakarta in the late 1990s, a crackdown on slums and trishaw drivers by the governor intent on ridding the city of the poor caused an estimated 200,000 people to lose their houses and livelihoods (Khouw 2001). Such stories and numbers, though rarely officially documented, have appeared in all major cities in the region that have opened to global investment. All of this heady remaking of cities shows that while much of the mobilization of civil society about urban conditions is still directed toward the state and its institutions, the planning and implementation of major land use changes in cities has decisively shifted from the royal household of the pre-colonial days and the halls of town and country planning of colonial
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 41
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
41
and post-colonial developmental states to the boardrooms of corporate enterprises – often operating from skyscraper headquarters in distant world cities. The commodification of urban spaces, including the privatization and the sale of public land to private interests, is one of the clearest trends of land use in cities throughout the world, and nowhere has this process been occurring more intensively than in the mega-urban regions of Pacific Asia. The impact on public and civic spaces has been pervasive: replacement of traditional open markets with enclosed supermarkets and malls that have no spaces for social encounters outside of noisy food courts; advertisements and commercial signs meeting the eye at every turn; new business districts without public sidewalks or pedestrian right of ways; widened streets to accommodate the growing number of automobiles with high fences and metal barriers to prevent pedestrians from crossing from one side to the other; huge gated and privately owned suburban housing developments with no rights of public access; private police with surveillance cameras in privately owned shopping areas and buildings; the enclosure of the out-of-doors indoor through the complete filling of lots with buildings, leaving no spaces for public benches, greenery or non-commercial activities.5 The recent appearance of transnational “big box” superstores also provides for no amenities other than vast parking lots and is exclusively automobile-oriented. Even after the crisis of 1997 that left major financial institutions and land developers bankrupt, grand development schemes continue to be launched.6 This is all part of the intensification of intercity competition for global investment. In Bangkok, for example, the government with private sector participation has launched such schemes as the Rama III New Financial District seeking to convert 730 hectares of its Port Authority land to a world city district. This is an area (Klong Toey) that is now filled with the city’s largest low-income population (Douglass and Boonchuen 2006). The case of Sanam Luang, the Royal Ground and people’s plaza fronting the King’s Palace in the original center of Bangkok is a revealing example of the ascendance of global economic circuits over urban land use in Pacific Asian cities (Boonchuen, this volume). Interestingly, globalization was involved both in its transformation into a civic space a century ago and in its now proposed remaking into an international tourist site. Inspired by the City Beautiful Movement in the US and his trip abroad, in 1897 King Rama V had it remade from a royal crematorium and royal rice paddy into a tree-lined open green space. When Thailand changed to a constitutional monarchy in 1932, Sanam Luang began to take on civic space characteristics, including its allowance of freedom of speech similar to that of London’s famed Hyde Park. In the coming decades it became one of the most important sites in Bangkok for political rallies and citizen mobilization around political issues. As sacred ground, popular outdoor space, a place for the homeless and underground economy of the night, and site for political activism, it was a heteropia in one of Pacific Asia’s most cosmopolitan cities.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 42
42
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
By the year 2000 globalization came to Sanam Luang in the form of “Bangkok toward a City for Global Tourism”, a planned transformation into a tourism center by, first, establishing a night curfew to get rid of nightfood vendors, homeless people, and other marginalized users of this space. A parking structure to accommodate 282 tourist coach buses and a large shopping mall are slated for the area. Designed without a public hearing, development of the area has been given to a foreign company that asks for a 20-year monopoly over parking and shopping business. Scheduled for demolition is also Tha Thien market, the oldest open market in Bangkok that has been thriving since it was first built with the establishment of Bangkok in the eighteenth century. How each locality is engaged in the current moment of globalization and what will be the outcomes of its engagement will vary. Koh (this volume) explains in the case of Hanoi that the doi moi market-oriented reforms in Vietnam have created potentially new, or at least newly contested, forms of civic space along the sidewalks of the city. Before the reforms, the state, through periodic campaigns and raids, kept sidewalks clear of vending and commerce. Corruption and other deficiencies in state capacity led to worsening situations particularly following economic reforms legitimizing the private economy. More than just vending, sidewalks are increasingly being appropriated by individual households along them for their own use, which in practice means their exclusive use, as pedestrians are compelled to walk into traffic as they try to navigate the city core. What is revealing about this case is the way in which the juxtaposition of two systems, socialist and burgeoning capitalist, creates ambiguities in the status of civic spaces such as sidewalks. Championed by Jane Jacobs (1961) as a principal source of vitality of the city, the public sidewalk as a civic promenade fronting commercial establishments seems to be succumbing to a daunted state and lack of shared public ethic concerning the primacy of access to pedestrian walkways. As the complex structure of police, ward and neighborhood organizations loosen, a new “sidewalk regime” (Koh, this volume) has emerged amidst continued attempts to enforce regulations against sidewalk vending. Beyond these stories of changes in property regimes, Chinese and Vietnamese cities are also being pulled into the type of land development exhibited in other open, industrialized and industrializing economies. The Friendship Stores in Tianjin no longer sell Chinese bric-a-brac but instead sell the latest European fashion straight from the garment factories now in the country. Suburban shopping malls and big box supermarkets are appearing in the outskirts of Ho Chi Minh City. Yet, to paraphrase Carl Sandburg’s (1972) well-known poem about the fog in Chicago, the global corporate and franchise economy quietly comes in on cat’s feet through its ability to obscure the transformations underway, namely, an intensifying commodification and privatization of urban spaces.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 43
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
43
Multicultural cities By the 1990s, major cities throughout the region were becoming decisively more multicultural. During the colonial era multiculturalism was high in Southeast Asia as British, Dutch and French imperialists imported labor from China, India and other colonies into Southeast Asian colonial and semi-colonial (Bangkok) cities. Japan, too, became a major recipient of forced labor from its colonies, though it attempted to repatriate most of these people after its defeat in World War II. From the mid-1980s, a new era of international migration within Asia began as higher income economies (notably Japan, Korea, Taiwan and Singapore) began to experience chronic labor shortages due to a shrinking national labor force and the advent of below replacement fertility among its dominant ethnic population. By the end of the 1990s millions of international migrant workers from other Asian countries had become indispensable to these economies (Douglass 1999; Douglass and Roberts 2003). Major cities are the principal recipients of these migrants, and given the long histories of real and imagined ethnic and racial homogeneity in receiving countries, a crisis of inclusion is occurring that is greatly magnifying issues of access to public and civic spaces. Internal migration is also a source of multiculturalism in most countries, particularly those in Southeast Asia. Whether it is hill tribes from the north, Isan from the Northeast or Islamic Thai from the south moving to Bangkok, all add to the ethnic mix of the city that includes people from all parts of the world. Indonesia’s multi-ethnic archipelago brings a similar richness to Jakarta. Singapore’s Chinese population is now at below replacement fertility and is about to rapidly shrink absolutely and in relation to other ethnic groups residing in this city-state. With these trends civic spaces become more, rather than less, important. With inevitable social fragmentation reflecting an increasing multitude of identities, places in which people of all walks of life feel comfortable to gather without fear of the “other” becomes a crucial antidote to the gated communities, surveillance of private residential and shopping areas, and the criminalization of foreigners by the press. Despite these trends toward multicultural cities, Rushdie (2000) notes that minorities and other marginalized populations are “visible but unseen.” Hee’s (this volume) observations of Orchard Road in Singapore as being a locale for a heterogeneous population of wealthy foreign business elites and domestic maids from the Philippines and Indonesia highlight this pattern. For the latter, the absence of civic spaces in that part of Singapore becomes visible when, on any given Sunday, hundreds of Filipinos sit on narrow guardrails on the edge of streets thick with automobiles and buses. Similar stories can be told in cities throughout the region (Douglass 1999). The multicultural reality of Pacific Asia cities is a more critical issue than it might be in many other parts of the world. The reason is that citizenship
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 44
44
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
in almost all countries is being reserved for a dominant racial or ethnic group. Routines for becoming either resident or citizen are generally highly restricted. Particularly affected are low-wage foreign workers. In some cases, the shares of these people in national populations have become very high. Approximately 20 percent of the labor force of Singapore is noncitizen. Japan, with its plummeting birth rate and below replacement fertility that is forecast to begin in 2006, faces an extraordinary possibility of foreigners climbing from less than 2 percent now to as much as 20 percent of the total population by 2050 if they were to keep Japan’s population constant at its current level (Douglass and Roberts 2003). Whether the cultural diversity coming with new patterns of migration to Pacific Asia’s metropolitan regions can be accomplished in a socially just, inclusive manner is among the most important issues of this century for the immigrant receiving societies. Inequality, social fragmentation The confluence of global economic forces described above is also generating heightening social disparities at all scales in Pacific Asia: among countries, within countries, and within cities (Karliner 1997; Oxfam 2003; UNCTAD 1999). In the 1990s, much of the rising urban inequality revolved around speculative investments in land. The 1997 crash had the effect of hollowing out a previously expanding middle class and some of the nouveau riche, while creating massive unemployment and deepening poverty for lower income households (Douglass 2001b). Shares of national populations living below the poverty line increased sharply everywhere, and in the wake of the crisis new forms of chronic homelessness have appeared even in high-income economies such as Japan and Korea (Birdsal and Haggard 2000). Yet high-end luxury housing for the very rich has continued to sell and upscale shopping malls continue to be built, showing that the crisis did not substantially affect the wealthy.7 In 2002 alone, 20 new shopping malls were built in Jakarta.
The search for new forms of governance Major metropolitan regions have become too immense to imagine that command planning by government has any hope of working to determine or substantially control land uses and urban growth. The growing multicultural composition of major metropolitan regions also suggests the need for new forms of governance that allow different cultural values in urban policy. New forms of governance that include rather than exclude these marginalized populations are needed if the portent of vast ghettos of foreign workers is to be avoided. Yet in many instances, governments continue to try to use control over urban space to dampen the rise of civil society. In her revealing analysis of Jakarta, Lim (this volume) describes
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 45
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
45
how the mobilization of civil society asserting its agenda of political reform by occupying key public spaces has been met by the city government’s redesign of these spaces to effectively prevent access to them by large groups of people. Such redesign of urban architecture is pervasive. The privatization of space into guarded shopping malls, office buildings and gated communities represents a similar trend towards removing civil society from what were once considered to be quintessential public spaces of the open community market and public walkways along streets lined with small shops. Similar attempts to create undemocratic forms of governance at the global scale also involve the control of civic spaces. Corporate interests and global governance have come together in the form of international trade and donor organizations, notably the World Trade Organization (WTO), IMF, and World Bank. New forms of global civic spaces – insurgent spaces of protest and resistance – have emerged around the meetings of these organizations. Two of the most well-known strategies used by these would-be world governments to prevent protestors from voicing their concerns are, first, to use local military-police forces to barricade and occupy substantial areas around meeting sites and, second, to hold meetings in highly inaccessible locations or locations of great cost for protestors to get to, such as Qatar or Okinawa (Boski, this volume). The extent to which local police forces have been activated to close off these spaces is extraordinary, showing the ways in which the national and local state are taking on new forms of enforcement for the sake of global capital. Moreover, cities learn from cities about how to shut down demonstrations, as evidenced by the City of Los Angeles conducting a four-month training program for 70 members of the Genoa police force prior to the Genoa G8 meeting in 2001 where one protestor was killed. Millions of taxpayer dollars are expended to keep these relatively small meetings from having public access.
Conclusions The question raised in this chapter is how the spaces of the city are used to enhance everyday lifeworlds and the inclusion of civil society in public life. The evidence is mixed; certain common trends seem to suggest the paradox is that civil society is rising while access to civic spaces remains low or is even diminishing. From the local to the global scale, existing and potential civic spaces are being turned into enclosed, policed spaces that are typified by surveillance, exclusion, and inhibited public and civic life. A key dimension of stress on civic space and life, especially since the mid-1980s, is the ascendancy of consumerism as the central act of the urban experience. This is being fostered through all types of media directed toward intentionally deflecting cultural and social energies toward global name brand desires and simulacra packaged as freedom of expression (Pine and Gilmore 1999; Douglass 2001a, 2002). Windowless superstores are replacing open markets. Local cultural and sports events that once had local place
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 46
46
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
names now have corporate names and logos. Governments in pursuit of world city status contribute to these trends through their sponsorship of mega-projects to create global business hubs complete with the world’s tallest buildings, international convention centers and mega-shopping malls (Rimmer and Dick 1998; Douglass and Boonchuen 2006; Bangkok Post 2002; Boonchuen, this volume). Through all of these changes the city is out of balance in terms of what Friedmann (1988) calls life space vs. economic space. The conviviality of streets scenes is being lost to traffic and pollution, sidewalks without pedestrian passage, streets in new business districts without sidewalks. Potential civic spaces are being captured for exclusive use by factions of civil society. All of this is taking place in cities in which parks and other public spaces are already extremely limited (Boonchuen 2002). At the same time, democratic reforms have made great strides in Pacific Asia over the past decade. Popularly elected governments now exist in countries that within recent memory were under authoritarian rule. In this context, the studies in this book reveal that civic spaces are being created by communities through self-empowerment and through implicit and explicit negotiation with state and other actors. Whether creating such spaces can become a major instead of marginal dimension of the city is uncertain. As the research cited in here shows, the answer to this question does not simply fall from global timelines, but is also a matter of local political processes in actual urban contexts.
Notes 1 Although Hegel is commonly cited as the originator of the concept of civil society (Friedmann 1998), it can be traced to Aristotle’s concept of a politike koinonia or political community, later translated into Latin as societas civilis, or a civil society (Korten 2001: 2). In contrast to Hegel, who mixed voluntary associations with business and the economy, Gramsci (1971) is generally credited with differentiating civil society from (capitalist) economy (Friedmann’s corporate economy; Habermas’ state, society, economy) and state. Common to all definitions is that civil society is in dynamic relationship with the state. 2 Korea did not rely on foreign investment to drive its export manufacturing economy; yet it was heavily dependent upon licensing of Japanese and US technology and joint ventures. 3 “In the morning, they [guangchang] are ideal places for fitness exercise and taiji. In the day, they become city showrooms for performances, exhibitions, commercial activities and promotions organized by government, social organizations and corporations. Kites are often flown here in the evenings; at night they become popular outdoor dance halls.” (Heng, this volume) 4 From 1993 to 1997 an average of 150,000 new middle class and elite housing units were being constructed per year in the greater Bangkok city region (Sopon 2002). 5 In being privately owned and regulated, malls discourage activities such as free seating in open areas or people gathering in ways that are perceived to diminish land rent from the use of floor space. Free speech is not allowed, and
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 47
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
47
in Bangkok even taking pictures is also forbidden in many shopping malls (Boonchuen 2002). 6 For example, a consortium of Korean, Thai, Hong Kong and Indonesian developers built the large-scale housing complex of Kota Wisata – complete with international themes for every neighborhood – in peri-urban Jakarta. 7 In Bangkok in the 1985–97 period of hyper-economic growth, the number of slums and slum dwellers actually increased while middle and upper income households were enjoying unprecedented increases in income and wealth (Phongpaichit and Sarntisart 2000; Boonchuen 2002). More than one-fifth of the Bangkok population now live in environmentally degraded communities (ACHR 2000; Douglass and Boonchuen 2006).
References ACHR (Asian Coalition for Housing Rights) (2000) The Poor of Bangkok, http://www.achr. net/th_overview.htm Bangkok Post (2002) Tearing down Tha Tien Market, August 18. Barber, B. (1996) Jihad vs. McWorld, New York: Ballantine. Bello, W. (1997) “The End of the Southeast Asian Miracle” in Focus on the Global South (FOCUS) (Bangkok, Thailand) Online. Available HTTP: http:// www.focusweb.org/content/view/340/ (accessed 28 June 2006). Birdsal, N.L. and Haggard, S. (2000) After the Crisis: The Social Contract and the Middle Class in East Asia, Washington, DC: Carnegie Endowment for International Peace. BMA (Bangkok Metropolitan Administration) (2001) Cities 21 Profile, Bangkok. Boonchuen, P. (2002) “Globalisation and Urban Design: Transformations of Civic Space in Bangkok”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 401–18. Bread Alert! (1998) Setting Standards for the Toronto Olympic Bid, Online. Available HTTP: http://www.breadnotcircuses.org/standards_p1.html (accessed 28 June 2006). Castells, M. (1997) The Power of Identity, Cambridge, MA: Blackwell. Castells, M. (2000) The Rise of the Network Society, 2nd edn., New York: Blackwell Publishers. Cho, M.R. (2002) “Civic Spaces in Urban Korea: The Spatial Enrichment of Civil Society”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4) November: 419–32. Dasgupta, A. (2002) Urban Poverty in East Asia; Focus on: Indonesia, the Philippines, and Vietnam, Washington, DC: World Bank, East Asia Urban Sector. de Tocqueville, A. (1969), Democracy in America, New York: Harper and Row. Douglass, M. (1994) “The ‘Developmental State’ and the Asian Newly Industrialized Economies”, Environment and Planning A, 26: 543–66. Douglass, M. (1999) “Unbundling National Identity–Global Migration and the Advent of Multicultural Societies in East Asia”, Asian Perspectives, 23(3): 79–128. Douglass, M. (2000) “Mega-urban Regions and World City Formation: Globalization, the Economic Crisis and Urban Policy Issues in Pacific Asia”, Urban Studies, 17(12): 2317–37. Douglass, M. (2001a) “Inter-City Competition and the Question of Economic Resilience – Globalization and the Asian Crisis”, in A.J. Scott (ed.) Global CityRegions–Trends, Theory, Policy, Oxford: Oxford University Press, pp. 236–62. Douglass, M. (2001b) “Urban and Regional Policy After the Era of Naïve Globalism”, in A. Kumssa and T.G. McGee (eds.) New Regional Development Paradigms (NRDP), Volume 1: Globalization and the New Regional Development, Westport, CT: Greenwood Publishing Group, pp. 33–56.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 48
48
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Douglass, M. (ed.) (2002) International Development Planning Review: Special Issue on Globalisation and Civic Space in Pacific Asia, 24(4). Douglass, M. and Ooi, G.L. (2000) “Industrializing Cities and the Environment in Pacific Asia: Toward a Policy Framework and Agenda for Action,” in David Angel and Michael Rock (eds.) A Clean Revolution in Asia (Sheffield: Greenleaf ), 104–127. Douglass, M. and Roberts, G. (eds.) (2003) Japan and Global Migration: Foreign Workers and the Advent of a Multicultural Society, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Douglass, M. and Boonchuen, P. (2006) “Bangkok: Intentional World City”, in M. Amen, K. Archer and M.M. Bosman (eds.) Relocating Global Cities: From the Center to the Margins, Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers, Inc (Forthcoming). Douglass, M., Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Civic Spaces, Globalization and Pacific Asia Cities”, International Development and Planning Review, 24(4): 345–61. Douglass, M., DiGregorio, M., Pichaya, V., Boonchuen, P., Brunner, M., Bunjamin, W., Foster, D., Handler, S., Komalasari, R. and Taniguchi, K. (2002) The Urban Transition in Vietnam, Fukuoka and Hanoi: UNCHS, UNDP, Government of Vietnam. Evans, S. and Boyte, H. (1986) Free Spaces, New York: Harper and Row. Evans, S. and Boyte, H. (1992) Free Spaces: the Sources of Democratic Change in America, Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. Foucault, M. (1986) “Of Other Spaces”, Diacritics, 16(1): 22–7. Friedmann, J. (1988) Economic Space and Life Space: Essay in Third World Planning, New Brunswick, NJ: Transaction Books. Friedmann, J. (1998) “The New Political Economy of Planning: The Rise of Civil Society”, in M. Douglass and J. Friedmann (eds.) Cities for Citizens: Planning and the Rise of Civil Society in a Global Age, London: John Wiley, pp. 19–35. Friedmann, J. (2002) The Prospect of Cities, Minneapolis, MN; London: University of Minnesota Press. Fröbel, F., Heinrichs, J. and Kreye, O. (1980) The New International Division of Labour, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Goffman, E. (1959) The Presentation of Self in Everyday Life, New York: Anchor Books. Goffman, E. (1961) Asylums, New York: Anchor Books. Goffman, E. (1963) Behaviour in Public Places: Notes on the Social Organization of Gatherings, New York: The Free Press. Gramsci, A. (1971) Selections from the Prison Notebooks, Translated by Quintin Hoare, New York: International Publishers. Habermas (1989) The Structural Transformation of the Public Sphere: An Inquiry into a Category of Bourgeois Society, translated by Thomas Burger with the assistance of Frederick Lawrence, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press. Hegel, G.W.F. (1967) Hegel’s Philosophy of Right (Translated by T.M. Knox) New York: Oxford University Press. Holston, J. (2001) “Urban Citizenship and Globalization”, in A.J. Scott (ed.) Global City-Regions, New York: Oxford University Press, pp. 325–48. Jacobs, J. (1961) The Death and Life of Great American Cities, New York: Random House. Jones, G. and Douglass, M. (eds.) (2007) The Rise of Mega-Urban Regions in Pacific Asia – Urban Dynamics in a Global Era (Singapore: Singapore University Press, 2007). Karliner, Joshua (1997) The Corporate Planet: Ecology and Politics in the Age of Globalization (Sierra Club Books). Keane, J. (1988) Democracy and Civil Society, London: Verso. Khouw, I. (2001) “Are the urban poor marginalized by the city?” The Jakarta Post, Jakarta, June 10, National Scene, 1.
9780415397896_4_002.qxd 07/09/2007 09:09 Page 49
Civil society for itself and in the public sphere
49
Kim, J. and Choe, S.C. (1996) Seoul – the Making of a Metropolis, London: John Wiley. King, B. and Hustedde, R. (1993) “Community Free Spaces”, Journal of Extension, Winter, 31(4). Korten, D. (2001) “The Civil Society: An Unfolding Cultural Struggle”, http:// cyber-journal.org/cj/authors/korten/CivilizingSociety.shtml Lefebvre, H. (1991) The Production of Space, Oxford: Blackwell. Lim, M. (2002) “Cyber-civic Space in Indonesia: From Panopticon to Pandemonium?”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 383–400. Lim, M. (2005) Islamic Radicalism and Anti-Americanism in Indonesia: The Role of the Internet, Washington, DC: East-West Center Washington Policy Studies, No. 18. Lipietz, A. (1983) The Enchanted World–Inflation, Credit and the World Crisis, London: Verso. Migration News (2002) “Southeast Asia” 9(3): 1. Mitchell, Don (2003), The Right to the City: Social Justice and the Fight for Public Space, New York: Guilford Press. NYT (New York Times) (1999) “High-Rise Ghost Town–Muang Thong Thani Rises up above Barren Fields on the Edge of Bangkok”, A10, February 16. Oxfam (2003), Growth with Equity, Online. Available HTTP: http://www.oxfam.org.uk/ what_we_do/issues/debt_aid/growth_equity.htm (accessed 28 June 2006). Padco-LIF (1990) Bangkok Land Market Assessment, Bangkok: NESDB/TDRI. Palloix, C. (1973) “The Internationalization of Capital and the Circuit of Social Capital”, excerpts from Les Firmes Multinationales et le Procès d’internationalisation (Maspero, 1973), pp. 37–63. Phongpaichit, P. and Sarntisart, I. (2000) “Globalization and Inequality: The Case of Thailand”, paper presented at OECD Conference on Poverty and Income Inequality in Developing Countries: A Policy Dialogue on the Effects of Globalization, Paris, 30 November–1 December. Pine, B.J. and Gilmore, J.H. (1999) The Experience Economy, Boston, MA: Harvard Business School Press. Putnam, R. (1993) Making Democracy Work, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Rimmer, P.J. and Dick, H.W. (1998) “Beyond the Third World City: The New Urban Geography in South-east Asia”, Urban Studies, 35(12): 2303. Rushdie, S. (2000) Satanic Verses, New York: Picador. Sandburg, C. (1972) “‘Fog,’ The Complete Poems of Carl Sandburg”, New York: Harcourt, p. 10. Shi, Mingzheng (1998) “From Imperial Gardens to Public Parks: The Transformation of Urban Space in Early Twentieth – Century Beijing”, in Modern China, 24(3): 219–54. Sopon, P. (2002) “Bangkok Housing Market’s Booms and Busts, What Do We Learn?” Paper presented at the PRRES 2002, Christchurch, New Zealand, January 21–23, 2002. UN (United Nations) (2001) “World Urbanization Prospects”, New York: UN Population Division, Department for Economic and Social Information and Policy Analysis. UNCTAD (United Nations Conference on Trade and Development) (1999) Trade and Development Report 1999, New York: UNCTAD. Webster, D. and Muller, L. (2002) “Peri-Urbanization: Zones of Rural – Urban Transition”, Palo Alto, CA: Asia Pacific Research Center, Stanford University. Witteveen, P. (1996) “Understanding Civil Society, Its Ramifications, Its Roots”, Human Mosaic, 30(1): 72–84.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 50
3
Governing cities Civic spaces, civil society and urban politics K.C. Ho
Introduction In our project on civic spaces, we make two major assumptions, first, that for the social, political and economic promises of the rise of civil society to be realized, there must be civic spaces available for its daily practices and collaborative engagement among its various organizations. Second, we maintain that civil society can make useful contributions to the governance of cities if it is given the chance to grow and participate in a myriad of issues that go into the making of livable cities. This paper is an attempt to critically evaluate these assumptions by first locating the concept of civic space within the larger context of urban politics and metropolitan governance, to lay out, as it were, the pieces of the puzzle of which civic spaces represent a crucial element bringing into shape and focus various place-based and segmented interests. This, of course, implies that civic spaces are not “empty” spaces. Other building blocks are needed if the goal is to understand civil society and its promises. This paper represents an attempt to build agency into the concept of civic spaces, an invitation to think through concepts and linkages, accordingly, it will review the forces shaping urban politics and governance. As the focus is on the relationship between civic spaces, civil society and urban politics, its primary emphasis is what Tarrow (1996: 874) refers to as contentious politics: “collective activity . . . relying on noninstitutional forms of interaction with elites, opponents, or the state,” and not on the political apparatus of the city. By shifting the focus to civic spaces and civil society, the paper examines how the political apparatus and work of the city is influenced and shaped by the diverse interests and agencies. The distinction between studying the political machinery of the city and civil society should be noted from the onset. Organized parties are very much part of the urban political fabric of cities, with clear organizational structures and networks developed and strewn across the city. In contrast, civil society is a more elusive phenomenon since this depends on both internal and external forces as well as inputs from different segments of the city, rising and fading over different issues and at different parts of the city. It is useful to remember Tarrow’s phrases
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 51
Governing cities
51
(1996) the “rhythms of contentious events” and “changing seasons of political struggle” to understand this process. This dynamic conception of the ebb and flow of urban politics is necessary to consider the entry of new groups and new issues as well as the processes of claim making, bargaining and negotiation. In this analysis, the interplay between civic spaces and urban politics is essential, namely to examine the capacities of civic spaces to facilitate the organization, mobilization and the sustenance of interest, opinion and collective action; and to examine how the larger context of urban politics and urban governance come to shape such civic spaces. The paper will address the following questions: • •
• •
•
What are the roles of civic spaces (e.g. staging areas, democratic forums) in the organization and performance of civil society? Are civic spaces transitory or do they continue to play an enduring role in the functioning of civil society? In other words, do civic spaces play a role in the formative stages of civil society and lose importance once more permanent structures are in place or do they have an essential role to play in urban politics and governance? If they do play an enduring role, what are the mechanisms by which these spaces sustain themselves (identity, organization, etc.)? Do various civic spaces reinforce each other? How do the lessons from one site transfer on to other sites? Do we see attempts to learn from and network with the types of organizations and associations? What are the roles of non-spatial interests in shaping change?
In specifying the scope of this paper, I am reminded of Joan Nelson’s (1979) comment in the introduction to Access to Power, that her field of study is at best an attempt to bring clarity to a small (but essential) piece of a very large puzzle comprising of a large literature illustrating huge variations between countries. The hope is that the process of urban governance can be better understood by working out the relations between key concepts and by bringing in a number of case studies to illustrate these relations.
Globalization and its influences on urban politics Messy as it already is, urban governance has been complicated by the changes brought by economic globalization, mapping onto an existing local political terrain, with the largest Asian cities being the most directly affected. Two sets of forces derive directly from globalization. The rise in foreign direct investments (FDI) in Asian cities stems from the increasing ability of companies to coordinate production decisions from distant shores, the movement of producer services to support such operations, and the growth of international retail companies as Asian cities have a large middle class. The second trend is the increased international migration of different types
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 52
52
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
of labor, both skilled and unskilled workers who move between cities in search of better job prospects, adding to the diverse urban populations in Asian cities. The World Investment Report 2001 (p. 23) indicated that FDI inflows into Asia reached a record high level of $143 billion in 2000. However this has been uneven, with Northeast Asia (Hong Kong, Korea and Taiwan) getting the lion’s share of the pie. The share of these three economies has increased from 16 percent in the early 1990s to over 55 percent in 2000. China’s FDI inflow has not only increased, but has broadened over time, changing from labour-intensive industries in the 1980s towards more capital-intensive industries in the early 1990s (pp. 23, 26). While inflows into Southeast Asia in 2000 have been hampered by divestments in Indonesia, Malaysia and Singapore continued to remain strong contenders for FDI. This new and growing dependence on and competition over foreign direct investments has shaped the orientation of governments pursuing strategies to attract investments. Olds (1995: 1713, 1719) and Marshall (2003) documented the rise of flagship projects in Pacific Asia as anchors of such urban promotional attempts to attract global capital. Bunnell (1999) examined the mega structure Petronas Twin Towers in Malaysia, while Olds (1997) looked into the new corporate landscape in Pudong, Shanghai. Both mega projects are planned as strategies to attract corporate services. Eisinger (2000) observes that municipal governments are “building the city for the visitor class,” referring to the trend of cities becoming centers of leisure and entertainment. The scale and cost, image making and place marketing potential of such trophy projects – mega office towers, airports, stadiums, convention centers, theme parks – become lightning rods for contention, pitting anti-growth movements and poor people’s movements1 and communities under threat of resettlement against the growth-machine politicians and their backers. International migration represents the second force impacting on Asian cities. Gonzales (1999) makes two important observations about migrant workers in Asia when he argues that there is insufficient attention given to the crucial role international migrant workers play in sustaining the development of high performing Asian economies as well as the role played by government policies (in both sender and receiver countries) in maximizing the contributions of migrant workers in both their host and home countries. However, Kapur and Mchale (2003) observe that remittances sent back by foreign workers have reached significant levels so that governments and policy makers cannot afford to ignore their role in keeping poorer economies afloat. According to their estimates, remittances have increased from 80 billion dollars in 1980, to 30.6 billion in 1990 to nearly 80 billion in 2002. A Newsweek feature story ( January 19, 2004, p. 27) on migrant workers argues that such significant income sources are more reliable than foreign direct investments which are sensitive to economic climates, and help to “alleviate poverty, spur investment and cushion the impact of worldwide recession when private capital dries up.”
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 53
Governing cities
53
Following up the first of Gonzales’ point, the significance of international migrant workers’ terms of their contributions to the economies of host countries means that receiving countries carefully tailor immigration policies to suit the needs of their economies. That migration includes both skilled professional classes as well as low income migrants means that governments often have two policies to regulate such flows. In an analysis of the movement of skilled migrant workers in the Asia Pacific, Iredale (2000) observed that such workers have not been a contentious issue compared to contract labour migration. In a similar vein, Young (2004) points out that skilled workers have had few problems moving in response to new market opportunities while unskilled and semi-skilled workers remain tightly regulated. Holston and Appadurai (1999) argued that government policies are such that they exempt the international professional class from civic duties and they deny rights to the migrant working class. The internationally mobile, courted by competing urban governments for the skills and capital they bring, end up with an absence of moral commitment of place, while the migrant working class become resentful of their marginal status in society. Three case studies generally bear out these observations. Fuess’ (2003) analysis of migrants in Japan indicated that skilled workers are entering into Japan in larger numbers in spite of its strict policies primarily because of their perceived contribution to the Japanese economy. Pillai’s (1999) and Gurowitz’s (2000) analyses of the Malaysian government’s response to contract and illegal migrants has been largely to see them as costs to society and to regulate them rather than to ensure their rights against various types of abuses by employers. However, globalization has also meant that local special interests and human rights groups have increasingly an internationalized network of support. The role of international agencies in supporting local efforts is well documented. Albrow (1996: 142) describes the formation of globalist movements which operate through symbolic acts of protest, networking informally rather than through authority structures. For example, the Scalarbrini missionaries, founded in 1887 in Italy, have developed a growing international network helping migrants exert their rights in host countries. Through Catholicism, the Scalabrinians have been particularly successful in working with Filippino migrants and have established a presence in the Philippines since 1982. Another example is provided by Boski (this volume) who examines networks organizing within insurgent spaces working against trade practices of powerful nations. Brecher and Costello (1994) provide more examples of networking in areas of environment, labor rights and jobs, trade, small business, through networking develop a realization or identification of local issues and self interests with a broader problem and set of common interests. Globalization may invoke different responses from local communities and governments. Machimura (1998: 189, 192) points to the tendency in Asia for globalization to be perceived of as Westernization. Thus, unlike Europe
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 54
54
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
where the resistance is largely at the economic front, at least in the case of Japan, local authorities and communities have been reluctant to incorporate foreign populations and have resisted elements of foreign culture. A similar point may be made for Islamic countries.
The local context of urban politics A key variable influencing the formation of civil society efforts is the degree and strength of vertical hierarchical ties as opposed to horizontal linkages organized at a local or regional scale. One example of strong local organization is the presence of pro-growth factions pushing for predominately development programs for the city. In reviewing this phenomenon, Jessop, Peck and Tickell (1999: 145) citing Vicari and Molotch (1990) point out that such features are likely to emerge where local governments have taxation powers, weak integration between various tiers of government, weak party organization and no political party that is anti-growth. A variety of situations confront Asian cities. Ruland (1996: 14–15, 19) points out that local governments are weak and central governments are in control of the cities and various infrastructural projects. The stronger Asian central governments also reinforce the urban primacy of several Asian capital cities – Jakarta, Bangkok, Seoul, and Manila.2 This has the effect of strengthening the already disproportionate share of resources going to the capital city as these are favored by central governments for the symbolic roles as showcases of the nation’s economic, political and cultural achievements. These have the effect of creating mega urban regions. As pointed out by Ruland (1996: 12) and Schmidt (2001: 134) the size of these mega urban regions also means that these are the main economic centers of economic activity for Southeast Asian countries. Medhi Krongkaew’s (1996: 303) data indicated that 67.8 percent of all foreign direct investments stayed within the Bangkok Metropolitan region. Firman (1998: 233) estimates that half of foreign direct investments end up in the Jakarta Metropolitan region. Reviving a point made by Norton Ginsburg in 1976, Korff (1996: 291) also notes that primate cities have a monopoly on the institutions of modernization and observes that this is valid for the capitals of Southeast Asia and suggests that this role is reinforced by the concentration of elites in such cities. This important point is repeated again in a more recent work with Evers (Evers and Korff 2000 17), that: “the city becomes a symbol of the state ideology when urbanism is one factor for access to positions of power and when the state’s organizations is based on the city.” Urban primacy has two implications for local governance efforts. The first is the distortion of efforts in favor of the capital city at the expense of other secondary cities. We refer here to the agglomeration of social service organizations as well as the distribution of funds. Second, the importance of the capital city means that central governments are especially keen on keeping this “jewel” away from intervention and control by other groups.3
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 55
Governing cities
55
The recent economic history of state-led development in Asia is also significant. Rodan (1999: 6) calls the state the “mid-wife of industrialization” in Asia, with the effect of strengthening the legitimacy of central governments. States which have accumulated such legitimacy go on to develop projects with little objection from various population segments. Thus, Pow (2002) and Boey (2002) show with examples from Singapore and Kuala Lumpur, the image-making projects that governments – the use of world famous architects and design teams (Cesar Pelli for the Petronas Twin Towers and I.M. Pei for Suntec City) to build “trophy buildings,” hallmark events such as the 1996 WTO inaugural ministers meeting in Suntec City, and the creation of “superlative” monuments, the world’s tallest building, the world’s largest convention center, fountain, etc. – convey with varying degrees the economic and symbolic aspirations of central governments. Such efforts have met with little resistance from civil society. Given that state capacity is uneven in Pacific Asia, decreasing capacities of government agencies to deliver services have also resulted in the rise of non-government agencies mobilized to deal with escalating problems (Porio 1997). Thus, the role of such agencies in working with local communities may, in fact, create the necessary structures that make for effective urban governance. However, NGO–community relations are also uneven. Korff’s (1996) review of neighborhood organizations in Bangkok, Manila and Jakarta, reveals the tendency for existing political structures to influence the development of local networks, for instance on how patronage extends below and affects the development of horizontal ties, and how a more democratic climate may allow more room for local organizations to maneuver. It is also important to understand the social organization of local relationships in Asian cities. As Guinness (2003) points out in Southeast Asian cities, beneath the veneer of class divisions and social relations defined by the capitalist economy, lurks a bedrock of primordial social relations established out of an older social structure, a structure ordered by patron–client relations.
Nature of claim-making The cities of Southeast Asia are also at a different stage of development from their American and European cousins. Southeast Asian cities continue to be sites for rural–urban migration even as they are magnets of regional and international migratory labor flows. The coming together of the various groups creates a wide spectrum of politics and unrest. The older politics is of squatters and the urban poor and their concerns for housing rights, education and other urban amenities. Grassroot politics of this nature involve failures of provision and extension of rights. International migratory flows create two different situations. The middle class and the internationally mobile professionals disengage from local involvement and “gate” themselves against the urban poor. There is increasing resentment expressed by the
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 56
56
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
middle class against expatriate professionals. The politics of the middle class in Asian cities involves protection of rights, as common interests emerge out of needs to ensure security and existing ways of life. This remains an issue for empirical verification, but in the Pacific-Asian context, the location of planners in urban society differs from that of their counterparts in the west. The vast state metropolitan bureaucracies and the prevailing developmentalist state ideology along with the absence of any local alternative planning tradition have meant that the planning profession find employment in government and in the thick of developmental planning, rather than as advocates for civic rights. Planners in the west are often mediators between state and society, helping local communities to achieve their goals through their planning expertise and ability to at navigate through the bureaucracy.4 In Pacific Asia, by their location and affiliation with class and segment interests, planners tend to be key instruments in advancing state and real estate interests.
Formation of civic spaces The community basis of civic spaces The previous section provided in very broad strokes a conceptual universe of factors shaping urban politics and highlighted how the Asian context may throw up new factors which moderate the influence suggested by ideas developed in other contexts. The next section brings these factors into focus in relation to civic spaces. In other words, the key question is where do civic spaces5 stand within this array of influences on urban governance? There are four mechanisms influencing social organization and solidarity. We begin with place and leap to space. Places have social histories that are the outcomes of habitation. A crucial aspect of the social history of places is highlighted by Walter Firey in a 1945 article. Firey (1945) argued that sentiment and symbolism are important variables shaping the development of places through their abilities to attract similar activities, retain existing ones and resist dissimilar activities. Not all places create strong collective sentiments. The examples Firey chose, Beacon Hill and Boston Commons, have long and rich social histories that provide strong place sentiments. Firey also highlighted immigrant ghettos and slum districts as examples of the identification of ethnicity with place as another type of place sentiment. Suttles (1972) points out that the experience of a common “fate” may actually strengthen such feelings among residents and lead to defended neighborhoods. A more recent study by Godfrey (1988) of ethnic and nonconformist neighborhoods in San Francisco’s inner city suggests that such neighborhoods are created out of a detachment from mainstream culture, an inward-looking solidarity and the resultant joint tendency to cluster geographically. In other words, subcultures and alternate cultures have a tendency to coalesce spatially.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 57
Governing cities
57
Such place sentiments may be missing for many other neighborhoods’ experiences. The experiences residents have with places may not be similar and, if similar, are quite easily dissipated through high residential mobility, and neighborhood change. Sentiments may also be weakened by other stronger affiliations at different spatial scales. The collective experience of residents may, over time, take root in terms of a set of place sentiments. Symbols are outcomes of such sentiments as locals attribute meaning to various place elements: buildings, streets, sidewalks, parks, etc. or monuments are constructed to represent heroic deeds and significant events. Symbols then work alongside sentiments and these two attributes reinforce each other. Through the functions of attraction and retention (of similar activities) as well as resistance (of dissimilar activities), places become landscapes that have some degree of integration and coherence. And through sentiment and symbolism, these landscapes become signifiers of meanings and acquire reputations. Locals understand this and visitors are socialized to appreciate or fear such places. In such cases, civic spaces evolve out of the shared meanings and shared representational physical elements of such communities. Boonchuan’s (this volume) discussion of the Sanam Luang in Bangkok as emerging civic spaces is an excellent example of how, over time, certain sites have the ability to acquire and retain certain meanings in the hearts and minds of the Thais. Within the city, some places have the good fortune of developing into places of informal association, sites of unplanned social meetings, places to meet and talk. Termed third places (after home and work) by Oldenburg (1991), such places have the ability to allow patrons from different backgrounds to meet and converse and, in the process, create agreements on social and community issues, thus acting as focal points for community formation. Sirat’s (this volume) discussion of the mosque and its capacity for interaction among the visitors to such sites fits the description of third places. However, the extent to which mosques can contribute to the development of civil society is more uncertain in that one is not clear whether such sites create communal spaces or civic spaces. To the extent that social participation goes beyond a narrow definition of one’s religious status, then mosques and indeed other religious sites have the ability to become civic spaces. Studies of neighborhood mobilization have also indicated that collective experiences may be shaped within a very short time span as responses to external threats such as eviction. The process of mounting a defense also sharpens leadership and hierarchy, organization and alliances. In such cases, civic spaces are created out of a heightening of communal interests resulting in an organizational structure and an emerging network of collaborations, as the case of the Klongtoey Slums illustrates (Niyom 1997). Korff (1996) also points out how community leadership may strengthen over time as a new generation, with better education and local ties, take over the reins of leadership.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 58
58
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
As mentioned earlier, these elements may not be in place in any one community if the residential population is in constant change or when the diversity of interests works against the development of a collective sentiment. Leaf and Anderson (this volume) show how even within the rapidly urbanizing context of China’s peri-urban villages characterized by large migrant flows, the capacity for sociable places to develop exists. However the ability of these elements to form over time and once formed, the capacities of such elements to galvanize action should be noted. Civic spaces within the context of the neighborhood thus become one foundation of urban civil society since these allow for the governance at the neighborhood level. Given the inherent difficulties of collective action at the community level, spaces for civic participation may be formed through overt government action. The motives for such action are varied. In the Brazilian context, Abers (2000: 14), for example, argues that politicians and political parties may create development forums for local communities to participate, in an effort to secure legitimacy and political survival. In the European context of welfarist states, Schmid (2001: 28–29) points out that such structures are also attempts by governments to scale back on their responsibilities by only providing funding while leaving community councils with the task of managing community services. While the creation of state-sponsored civic arenas raises the issue of the nature and degree of meaningful participation that can come from this type of state-sponsored structure (to be discussed in the subsequent sections), the potential of such spaces for participation ought to be noted. Abers (2000) studied the Brazilian regional development forums which allow neighborhood associations to participate in developing local initiatives that compete for funding at the regional development forum. Her study not only demonstrated the ability of local communities to organize in order to tap into a resource pool, but also highlighted the tendencies of communities to build alliances with other communities. Such state initiated efforts demonstrate a potential for a deliberate formation of civic spaces as opposed to the slower evolution or an event-triggered creation of civic spaces.
The role of civic spaces in shaping civil society and urban governance Will the presence of such civic spaces guarantee popular participation and governance? For civic spaces to contribute to the shaping of civil society and urban governance, three essential conditions must be fulfilled: • • •
the ability to mobilize and for participation to be sustained; the possibility of developing a support base beyond the local community; and the necessity of government taking such efforts seriously.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 59
Governing cities
59
Both types of civic spaces introduced in the previous section may evolve a series of characteristics that preserves their ability to act collectively. At the community level, there are at least four elements that build a propensity for collective action. At the most fundamental level, places can become magnets for sociability through elements such as playgrounds, pubs and restaurants. The collective effect of such elements is to strengthen associational life. To the extent that these are successful and bring together the community, these are sociable places helping to prevent the isolation of residents by allowing interactivity and the circulation of information. This capability may be further enhanced when residents are long term and/or homogenous in terms of their social status. Places can also become crucibles of opinion, allowing for the formation of a common set of attitudes which characterize the community. Other factors may aid in this process of formation. For example, Janowitz (1967) points to the role of community newspapers as a focal point for news, opinion formation and social networks. Such opinions may also be shaped in response to eternal threats, where the possibility of evictions, or the imposition of negative externalities such as garbage dumpsites by the federal government may mobilize communities into action. Other place elements can also contribute to an amplification for action and, through this, a consolidation of the communal interests (Kuper 1972). The community paper performs such functions, but so too do features such as public squares, and the town hall as sites for organization and protests. These have the potential to amplify action through the ability to generate greater interest both internally and external to the community. Lastly, places act as repositories of memory through monuments, rituals and festivals. While many of such symbols originate from a nation’s history and a culture’s roots, part of a community’s history may be deposited in the form of memorials that allow for a new generation to be socialized to local heroes. In some cases, such elements act as symbolic anchors or markers of territorial ideological currents (Cox 1999: 21). Added to these elements are the material interests of the city. In Davis’ (1991: 9–11; 311–312) reading of Logan and Molotch, two sets of material interests define the city, the pursuit of exchange values (the realization of profit from land sales, etc. by growth coalitions) and the maximization of use values by residents (quality of life issues). Such “landed” interests shaped localized contestations (as in examples of land use conflicts which pit residents against developers) but also create possibilities for collaboration (as in the provision of amenities which create both use and exchange values). Collectively, these four functions along with entrenched material interests, form the basis for collective action through their ability to develop an identity and to bring into focus the sentiments of the community: through interaction, opinion formation, the channeling of action, and the ability to preserve the memory of past victories and the contributions of local leaders. We should however be cautious about assuming that once started mobilization and participation has a problem-free upward trajectory. Schmid
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 60
60
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
(2001: 128–129) observes in the cases he has studied that the rate of participation in neighborhood organization board elections is low and residents can be indifferent to the process, adding that many local officials are not qualified and are in a difficult position to check abuses of power at the local level. Abers (2000: 146, 171) also observes that mobilization and interest levels may well dissipate after basic needs are met and local communities slide into passivity. Even when this happens, the ability of communities and local groups to remobilize need to be acknowledged. Collective identity, mobilization and the episodes of past efforts, successes or even failures, can be thought of in terms of what Hirschman (1984: 42–57, quoted by Abers [2000: 174]) calls “social energy,” capable of being conserved for a long time during which actors may not be involved in collective action. In particular, identity and memory are resources which can lay dormant for a long time without resort to episodes of mobilization. In thinking about civic spaces and participation, we also need to recognize the contribution of various social groups, professionals and classes whose interests transcend the boundaries of local communities. Such groups have in them ideologies, values and orientations which predispose them to wider societal interests involving the protection of basic rights. It is such interests which can insert themselves in local communities and spark the mobilization process. Thus, Ho’s (2000) case study of Hong Kong protest movements involving housing for the elderly showed the involvement of social workers in articulating the elderly housing issue when local leaders were absent. An early study by Suksamran (1981) showed the importance of the Sangha (Buddhist monks) in community development. Other specific cases of successful mobilization show the importance of various agencies and actors. Eckstein (1990) documents the case of how the local media played an important role in publicizing the plight of a local squatter community in Mexico city, making this into a public issue and, in the process, getting the support of the middle class. In Taipei, the role of student activists from National Taiwan University was largely responsible for saving another squatter colony at Baozangyan (Hsia 2002; fieldnotes, Jan 2003). A similar story of successful alliances saved the Klongtoey slum area from forced government evictions and enabled the development of various development schemes (Niyom 1997). However, such efforts, if successful, tend to focus on single issues, such as the saving of historic buildings, or the prevention of squatter evictions. For some permanence to be achieved, there must be an alignment of local interests with a wider collective vision. Abers (2000) recognized this for a regional governance structure to emerge, while Brecher and Costello (1994) saw this as an essential condition for the formation of international alliances. Such alignments are the first steps in building a structure capable of sustaining civil society. Under what conditions can local groups have a say in the decision making process? What instruments do local groups have in influencing local
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 61
Governing cities
61
governments? In 1969, Sherry Arnstein wrote “A ladder of citizen participation,” detailing eight rungs of participation. The ladder is an appropriate metaphor to describe the possibilities of participation. It suggests an uphill climb in terms of societal efforts to influence state actions6 as well as point out the fakes from the real things (only three of the eight are genuine). To accomplish this, local groups must advance through a variety of tactics and strategies. If the objective is with governance, than the concern is not so much with power but with participation and the focus is not just on the state7 but also with capital8. Case studies inform us that protest as well as negotiation are necessary not just to defend but also to advance claims. When civic rights are poorly defined9 and strong constraints prevent the exercise of such rights, it is important to recognize “weapons of the weak,” a famous term coined by Scott. As Ockey (1997) shows, even the elderly, disabled, children and women, played an important role when a Bangkok slum was threatened with eviction. In this endeavor, it is just as important to confront as it is to build alliances and advance collaborative practices. Longer term measures must extend beyond episodic actions of protest (although these are important and necessary in and of itself when authorities are unreasonable and unwilling) to incorporate the creation of new organizational structures involving access and decision making, and also the passage of laws which mandate evaluation (as for example in environmental impact assessments) and guarantees protection (as in the case of consumer rights). Equally important are measures which can reduce inter-group conflict and promote an enlarged solidarity of interests. Davis (1991: 313–314), with 15 years experience as a community organizer and neighborhood planner suggests four strategies to eliminate conflict: through the reduction of interest group diversity, the building of issues over common external threats, the building of consensus over common attributes like ethnicity and religion, and the strategy of improving public goods through the upgrading of amenities. The role of civic spaces in this struggle to govern the city is to provide the impetus for identity formation, collective action and decision making. Cho’s essay (this volume) shows how different types of civic spaces in Seoul work to reinforce relationships and advance debate and actions on different fronts. In other words, civic spaces are the nutrient beds from which the flowers of civic participation bloom. While the process of ensuring effective urban governance may be stalled by indifference, blocked by constraints, sidetracked by competing interests and marred by failures, the promise of such a struggle is something we can aspire towards: In the ideal democratic city, the walls have fallen. Across the divides of difference, people connect; they agree to differ . . . The vision is one of tolerance and diversity, shared values and complexity – not all for one, but many for the all. Where collective life and differences mutually
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 62
62
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia coexist, democracy reigns. A full citizenship flourishes as the city’s residents actively engage each other in a civil society that nurtures robust cultures and establishes the foundations for political engagement (Walzer 1991). Socioeconomic polarities are minimized, and injustice, oppression and exploitation are muffled. In this imagined city, frictions are not dispelled, failures are frequent, and disagreements are impassioned. The city of our imagination is not utopia. (Body-Gendrot and Beauregard 1999: 14–15)
Notes 1 According to Mayer (1999: 215) there are two types of movements at the bottom end of the income ladder, anti-growth movements which organize against specific developments and in defense of threatened communities and poor people’s movements organized around welfare rights. 2 The exceptions are China and Vietnam, where the largest cities are not the capital cities, and Malaysia and Japan where there has been more balanced developments among the largest cities. 3 Taipei is one exception, being controlled by an opposition party. 4 See Sandercock (1998) for an account of the alternative conceptions of the planner’s role, values, identity and location in the state-society divide. 5 A reminder of the distinction between place and space is useful here. Space has both an absolute and relative property. As the Oxford Dictionary of Geography points out, absolute space refers to distinctive, real and objective space while relative space is perceived and refers to the relationship between events and aspects of events. Thus the term civic space has both absolute dimensions referring to real places and relative dimensions referring to what is perceived by individuals and communities as the amount or degree of civic participation in any given community or society. 6 On a different note, Migdal (1988) also points to many cases where strong societies have checked the effectiveness of the state. 7 We must resist the danger of using undifferentiated categories. In understanding the role of civil society in state-society relations, it is helpful to differentiate between the two halves of civil society as Chua (2000) suggests. The portion of civil society (charities, welfare agencies, etc.) which works to improve the material conditions of society find little basis for conflict with the state. It is that portion which affirms rights and challenges existing practices where the potential for conflict arises. 8 Here again, it is erroneous to assume capital is an undifferentiated category pursuing a capitalist logic that is always antagonistic with community interests. Timothy William Faithful (2000), the CEO of Shell Canada, argues quite convincingly of why companies exercise good corporate citizenship in issues of health, safety and the environment. His point is that a company’s reputation and the potential lost of goodwill and profits through socially irresponsible behavior are important motivations. However, this argument only holds water if corporate reputations are an important strategic resource, if the industry as a whole supports ethical behavior, and if companies are monitored in their actions and when there are few exit options for corporations which behave irresponsibly or when exit options are costly. 9 A strong civil society and weak state is an insufficient condition to guarantee an effective governance structure. As the Philippines case illustrates, a weak state and a well-developed civil society in itself is not sufficient guarantee of effective
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 63
Governing cities
63
governance, if the presence of strong localized elite interests block civil society interests (Porio 1997: 33).
References Abers, R.N. (2000) Inventing Local Democracy, London: Lynne Rienner. Albrow, M. (1996) The Global Age, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Arnstein, S. (1969) “A Ladder of Citizenship Participation”, reproduced in R.T. LeGates and F. Stout (eds.), The City Reader, London: Routledge, 2nd edition (2000). Body-Gendrot, S. and Beauregard, R.A. (1999) “Imagined Cities, Engaged Citizens”, in R.A. Beauregard and S. Body-Gendrot (eds.) The Urban Moment, Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Boey, M. (2002) “(Trans)national Realities and Imaginations: The Business and Politics of Malaysia’s Multimedia Supercorridor”, Asian Journal of Social Science, 30(1): 28–52. Brecher, J. and Costello, T. (1994) Global Village or Global Pillage, Boston, MA: South End Press. Bunnell T. (1999) “Views from Above and Below: The Petronas Twin Towers and/ in Contesting Visions of Development in Contemporary Malaysia”, Singapore Journal of Tropical Geography, 20(1): 1–23. Chua, B.H. (2000) “The Relative Autonomies of State and Civil Society in Singapore”, in G. Koh and G.L. Ooi (eds.), State-Society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: IPS and Oxford University Press. Cox, K.R. (1999) “Ideology and the Growth Coalition”, in A.E.G. Jonas and D. Wilson (eds.), The Urban Growth Machine: Critical Perspectives Two Decades Later, Albany, NY: SUNY Press. Davis, E.J. (1991) Contested Ground: Collective Action and the Urban Neighborhood, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Eckstein, S. (1990) “Poor People versus the State and Capital: Anatomy of a Successful Mobilization for Housing in Mexico City”, International Journal for Urban and Regional Research, 14(2): 274–96. Eisinger, P. (2000) “The Politics of Bread and Circuses: Building the City for the Visitor Class”, Urban Affairs Review, 35(3): 316–33. Evers, M. and Korff, R. (2000) Southeast Asian Urbanism: The Meaning and Power of Social Space, New York: St. Martins Press. Faithful, T.W. (2000) Corporate Citizenship and Civil Society’, in G. Koh and G.L. Ooi (eds.), State-Society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: IPS and Oxford University Press. Firey, W. (1945) “Sentiment and Symbolism as Ecological Variables”, American Sociological Review, 10: 140– 48. Firman, T. (1998) “The Restructuring of Jakarta Metropolitan Area”, Cities, 15(4): 229–43. Fuess, S. (2003) “Immigration Policy and Highly Skilled Workers: The Case of Japan”, Contemporary Economic Policy, 21(2): 243–57. Godfrey, B.J. (1988) Neighborhoods in Transition: The Making of San Francisco’s Ethnic and Nonconformist Communities, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Gonzales, L. (1999) “The Miracle Turned Crises in the East Asian Region: Implications for Policies Affecting Transnational Migrants”, Sojourn, 14(1): 140–58.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 64
64
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Guinness, P. (2003) “Contested Imaginations of the City” in G. Bridge and S. Watson (eds.) A Companion to the City, London: Blackwell. Gurowitz, A. (2000) “Migrant Rights and Activism in Malaysia: Opportunities and Constraints”, Journal of Asian Studies, 59(4): 863–88. Hirschman, A.O. (1984) Getting Ahead Collectively: Grassroot Experiences in Latin America, New York: Pergamon Press. Ho, D.K.L. (2000) Polite Politics: A Sociological Analysis of Urban Protest in Hong Kong, Aldershot: Ashgate. Holston, J. and Appadurai, A. (1999) “Cities and Citizenship”, in J. Holston (ed.), Cities and Citizenship, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Hsia, C.J. (2002) “Contesting Cultural Landscapes in Globalizing Taipei: Historical Forms, Political Processes and Urban Identities”, draft of paper submitted for the workshop on Globalizing Taipei, National Taipei University, 21 December 2002. Iredale, R. (2000) “Migration policies for the highly skilled in the Asia-Pacific region”, International Migration Review, 34(3): 882–906. Janowitz, M. (1967) The Community Press in an Urban Setting: The Social Elements of Urbanism, Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. Jessop, B., Peck, J. and Tickell, A. (1999) “Retooling the Machine: Economic Crisis, State Restructuring and Urban Politics”, in A.E.G. Jonas and D. Wilson (eds.), The Urban Growth Machine: Critical Perspectives Two Decades Later, Albany, NY: SUNY Press. Kapur, D. and Mchale, J. (2003) “Migration’s New Payoff”, Foreign Policy, 139: 49–57. Korff, R. (1996) “Global and Local Spheres: The Diversity of Southeast Asian Urbanism”, Sojourn, 11(2): 288–313. Krongkaew, M. (1996) “The Changing Urban System in a Fast-growing City and Economy: The Case of Bangkok and Thailand”, in F.C. Lo and Y.M. Yeung (eds.) Emerging World Cities in Pacific Asia, Tokyo: United Nations University Press. Kuper, H. (1972) “The Language of Sites in the Politics of Space”, American Anthropologist, 74: 411–25. Machimura, T. (1998) “Symbolic Use of Globalization in Urban Politics in Tokyo”, International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 22(4): 183–94. Marshall, R. (2003) Emerging Urbanity: Global Urban Projects in the Asia Pacific Rim, New York: Spon Press. Mayer, M. (1999) “Urban Movements and Urban Theory in the Late 20th Century”, in S. Body-Gendrot and R.A. Beauregard (eds.), The Urban Moment: Cosmopolitan Essays on the Late 20 th Century City, Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Migdal, J. (1988) Strong Societies Weak States: State-society Relations and State Capabilities in the Third World, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Nelson, J.M. (1979) Access to Power: Politics and the Urban Poor in Developing Nations, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Newsweek ( January 19, 2004) “The Migration Economy” by S. Johnson and J. Contreras, pp. 24– 8. Niyom, P. (1997) “Critical Partnerships in Governance and Poverty Alleviation”, in E. Porio (ed.), Urban Governance and Poverty Alleviation in Southeast Asia, Manila: Ateneo De Manila University. Ockey, J. (1997) “Weapons of the Urban Weak: Democracy and Resistance to Eviction in Bangkok Slum Communities”, Sojourn, 12(1): 1–25. Oldenburg, R. (1991) The Great Good Place, New York: Paragon House.
9780415397896_4_003.qxd 07/09/2007 09:08 Page 65
Governing cities
65
Olds, K. (1995) “Globalization and the Production of New Urban Spaces: Pacific Rim Megaprojects in the Late 20th Century”, Environment and Planning A, 27: 1713– 43. Olds, K. (1997) “Globalizing Shanghai: the ‘Global Intelligence Corps’ and the Building of Pudong”, Cities, 14(2): 109–23. Pillai, P. (1999) The Malaysian State’s Response to Migration, Sojourn, 14(1): 178–97. Porio, E. (1997) “State, Civil Society and Urban Governance in Southeast Asia” in E. Porio (ed.), Urban Governance and Poverty Alleviation in Southeast Asia, Manila: Ateneo De Manila University. Pow, C.P. (2002) “Urban Entrepreneurialism, Global Business Elites and Urban Mega Development: The Case of Suntec City”, Asian Journal of Social Science, 30(1): 53–72. Rodan, G. (1996) “Theorising Political Opposition in East and Southeast Asia”, in G. Rodan (ed.), Political Opposition in Industrialising Asia, London: Routledge. Ruland, J. (1996) “The Dynamics of Metropolitan Management in Southeast Asia: An Introductory Note”, in J. Ruland (ed.), The Dynamics of Metropolitan Management in Southeast Asia, Singapore: ISEAS. Sandercock, L. (1998) “The Death of Modernist Planning: Radical Praxis for a Postmodern Age”, in M. Douglass and J. Friedmann (eds.), Cities for Citizens, Chichester: John Wiley and Sons. Schmid, H. (2001) Neighborhood Self-Management: Experiments in Civil Society, New York: Kluwer. Schmidt, J.S. (1998) “Globalization and Inequality in Urban South-east Asia”, Third-World Planning Review, 20(2): 127–45. Suksamran, S. (1981) “Religion, Politics and Development: The Thai Sangha’s Role in National Development and Integration”, Southeast Asian Journal of Social Science, 9(1–2): 54–73. Suttles, G. (1972) The Social Construction of Communities, Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. Tarrow, S. (1996) “Social Movements in Contentious Politics: A Review Article”, American Political Science Review, 90(4): 874–83. United Nations Conference on Trade and Development (2001) World Investment Report 2001, Online. Available HTTP: http://www.unctad.org/Templates/ webflyer.asp?docid=1485&intItemID=2110&lang=1&mode=toc (accessed 6 October 2004). Vicari, S. and Molotch, H.L. (1990) “Building Milan: Alternative machines of growth”, International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 14: 602–24. Young, K. (2004) “Globalization and the Changing Management of Service Workers in the Asia Pacific”, Journal of Contemporary Asia, 34(3): 287–303.
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 66
4
State-society relations, the city and civic space Giok Ling Ooi
The nature of state-society relations and hence the role which civil society contributes to public policy decision-making, can be generally assumed to have a considerable impact not only on the production of urban form but also on spatial changes within the city. Such political logic; however, contends for space in an age of economic globalization in which there has been an increasing concern about the displacement of the political by economic logic and the extension of the lore of the market sphere (Autes 1997; Moulaert and Scott 1997). Certainly examples of competition as well as competitiveness among cities abound in the global network of investment flows, which have been reflected in the so-called mega-urban projects designed to attract the attention of international investors and business firms (Olds 1995; Bunnell 2002). This global competition among cities has not only been paralleled by state intervention at both the national and local levels, but also its participation in real entrepreneurial strategies (Hall and Hubbard 1998). The developmental state that had in the 1980s and 1990s driven the rapid transformation and growth of many Southeast and East Asian economies ( Johnson 2001; Castells 1992) appears to have been translated at the local, that is, urban level into entrepreneurialism driven by the local state. The strongest examples of the developmental state have been those which have succeeded in integrating their economies with the global economy at the fastest rate. These include Singapore and, more recently, Thailand, Malaysia and China. Urban landscapes that are the outcome of such entrepreneurial aspirations in cities include the ubiquitous waterfront developments, theme parks and high-rise office towers or the “blandscapes” of the ambitions of city governments vying for global capital investments (Short 1989). Few of these mega-development projects extend to the levels of daily life where they have meaning and social significance for citizens (Thomas 2000). Indeed, the homogenizing effects of global processes are most evident in the development of cities that, to put it rather crudely, are up for sale around the world. Yet, there is also growing evidence that activism is developing to contest the impact of such homogenization and the negative implications of globalization in cities. The latter includes issues such as social
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 67
State-society relations, the city and civic space 67 fragmentation and the marginalization or exclusion of sectors of the citizenry from the benefits of urban economic growth. This activism has not been confined to urban social issues arising from globalization, but has assumed an international scale, with the anti-globalization demonstrations that have haunted World Trade Organization conferences and other international economic cooperation gatherings from Seattle to Davos (Boski 2002). Another representation of the responses that are gathering against the maelstrom unleashed by globalization forces is the Jihad vs. McWorld argument posed by Barber (1996). Such representation does not look as implausible, given the September 11 terrorist attack on the World Trade Center in New York. In its aftermath, there has been discovery of a global network of terrorist cells with links apparently to Al-Qaeda, the group that has been accused of the September 11 attack (Ministry of Home Affairs, Singapore 2003). The shifting of the focus of city governments from political logic and public policy to solely the economic and the logic of the market has, as Autes (1997) has argued, reduced urban political life to merely a management dimension. While the citizens in cities feel the tension between economic and political logics, at the level of daily political life, the emphasis on the economic has tended to create among urban residents a sense of helplessness toward public action. There is a growing concern about the restitution of democracy at the local or urban level and for people in cities to exert power over their future. Such claims appear to depend or are contingent on the access to and participation in the discourse on the provision of civic spaces in cities. However, such claims ultimately rely on the status of state-society relations and the role of civil society in the political life of the cities. In the following discussion, focus is first placed on an understanding of the state-society relations and development of civil society in Asia and, more specifically, in Singapore. An understanding of state-society relations and the development of civil society provides the context for a discussion of the regulatory environment, against which varying forms of civic engagement evolve, with civic spaces contributing differing roles. This paper argues that the nature of state-society relations needs to be unpacked and comprehended in order to explain the political and social significance of civic spaces in the globalizing cities of developing countries.
State-society relations and civil society – Western and Asian perspectives Civil society and it follows, state-society relations, are represented in two ways in the Asian context (Hill and Lian 1995). The “classic western liberal” position on civil society generally refers to “an open society in which such institutions as political parties, trade unions, independent industrial enterprises, social movements, free churches, liberal professionals and
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 68
68
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
autonomous universities, all operate on the assumption that no one group possesses an infallible social blueprint and hence, provides a check on the scope of the state” (Hill and Lian 1995: 224). The second way, which is seen to be more resonant with Asian political structures, represents the state as the legitimate site of political expertise and thus, the arbiter of peace and social order, continuing to delimit the role of civil society activism as well as define appropriate spheres of competence for non-political “interest groups.” Indeed, “the rise of Asia and the debate over ‘Asian democracy’ pose an important challenge to the influential modernization paradigm that upholds a view of history as progressing from traditional towards modernity, characterized by the establishment of a capitalist market and liberal democracy. The once sacrosanct principle of liberal democracy as the yardstick of modernity and human rights is being questioned as representing no more than the imposition of western values and standards over developing nations” (Antlöv and Ngo 2000: 3). The “third sector” which refers to the civil society sector or non-profit sector, so Anheier and Seibel (1990: 8) argue, gained prominence in the West at a time when the role of the state was being rolled back and sized down. There is an assumption in the discussion on civil society in the West and particularly in the developed countries, that where the government and market sectors once performed important roles in the distribution of resources in society, the need has arisen to assess the advantages and disadvantages of the third sector in relation to the other two sectors (Bauer 1990: 272). The situation in developing countries varies considerably since the resource–distribution function of both markets and state sectors have proven to be wholly inadequate without considering the civil society sector in the first place. Indeed, it has been the ineffectiveness of both government and market sectors in meeting basic needs that has more often than not led to the rise of civil society in many developing countries. Hence, care should be taken in comparing state-society relations or the nature of civil society developments between developed countries in the West and developing countries. The assumption that the nature of civil society can be compared cross-culturally is essentially flawed, if the notion of the role of civil society vis-à-vis the other two sectors is assumed to be similar across the world. Colonial history in Singapore has tended to be linked to a civil society sector with greater vitality (Singam 2000; Koh 2000) although there are dissenting views that see such civil society activities as essentially primordialist, organized as they were largely around ethnicity and ethnic group interests (Cheng 1985; Jamann 1994). Civil society and forms of civic engagement might have thrived in colonial Singapore mainly because of the laissez-faire approach that the British colonial administration took towards internal affairs. The flourishing of clan organizations or self-help programs, as well as welfare providers, obviated the need for social policy provision or welfare support by the colonial state (Ooi 1993). Indeed, such a perspective
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 69
State-society relations, the city and civic space 69 on the part of the colonial regime was consistent with its general “divide and rule” strategy of keeping peace not only among the different ethnic groups but also cross ethnic interests in social issues. Yet civil society development during the British colonial regime did not appear to have been linked to well-developed civic spaces that were accessible to the Asian migrant community in Singapore. The civic spaces of the colonial port city were those showcasing the might of empire as well as the need to segregate the European sectors of the city from those where the Asians were to be found (King 1976). The Asian people and households settled in quarters of the city that had been assigned to them in the Raffles’ Plan. Yet rapid population growth soon led to the congestion that meant considerable spilling over into each other’s allotted area of the city. Street and public life became not only necessary but extremely important as a way of coping with the congestion (Kaye 1959). In a way, the vitality of associational life might have been encouraged by the importance of public spaces because of the lack of comfortable and adequate private space (Hee and Ooi 2003). The massive public housing program upon which the independent citystate embarked in 1960 led to the en masse resettlement of the majority of the population then concentrated in and around the city center. New towns and public housing estates were developed that provided every family with a private home and a fair degree of self-containment since it was supplied with piped water supply and electricity. The provision of modern homes was paralleled by the effort to plan for more open space and parks that would be accessible to all residents. These were to become the array of public spaces that are provided for in planning standards alongside those others that are inevitable with the high-rise and high-density type of housing being developed under the public housing program. Such public spaces include the void decks meant historically to provide space for observing the different social functions within the community – weddings and religious festivals involving gatherings among the residents, funerals and other such events. Traditional leadership structures aligned along ethnic lines were gradually replaced by the ruling party’s institutional plan for its own grassroots organizations and leadership. These organizations are now struggling with leadership renewal and a meaningful role as they try to make such leadership more ethnically and also demographically representative of the citizenry (Thamilselvan 2003). These are mainly the groups, however, that have been officially allocated spaces to carry out their activities in the public housing and other neighborhoods. Other groups that have also been officially allocated space in public housing estates tend to be voluntary welfare groups. These are welfare service providers who fill the gaps in the provision of social welfare services by the state. Indeed, the state has consistently averted the assumption of direct responsibility for the provision of welfare assistance services, preferring instead
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 70
70
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
to work through charities and voluntary welfare organizations. In this way, state-society relations in contemporary Singapore might not be that different from those prevailing in the colonial period, at least in terms of the state’s relative loose control of welfare groups (Koh and Ooi 2000). Singapore’s state-society relations have been variously labeled. Illiberal democracy and “soft authoritarianism” are but some of the terms that have been used to describe the combination of capitalist economy with a paternalistic authoritarianism that persuades rather than coerces (Roy 1994: 231). Singapore is also described as “Disneyland with the death sentence” (Gibson 1993). Furthermore, the Singapore political leadership has been highly articulate about the West not being a good political model for Asia and rejects the view that there are universal civil and political rights that must be adhered to in all conditions (Haas 1999: 50). The political leadership emphasizes the importance of economic development which has to take precedence over such rights and that discipline and conformity to group values are more desirable social goals than freedom and individualism. According to former Senior Minister and now Minister Mentor, Lee Kuan Yew, “The expansion of the right of the individual to behave or misbehave as he pleases has come at the expense of orderly society. In the East the main object is to have a well-ordered society so that everybody can have maximum enjoyment of his freedoms. This freedom can only exist in an ordered state and not in a natural state of contention and anarchy” (Zakaria 1994: 111). Not surprisingly, Singapore has been the most ardent advocate of Asian values (Han 1999). These values are defined as a paternalistic state, government guidance and protection of private enterprises, a communitarian outlook and communalistic practices and an emphasis on social order, harmony and discipline (Han 1999: 4). While such values were held up as accounting for the extraordinary growth in the economies of several East and Southeast Asian countries, following on the East Asian crisis, these values have been found to be rather at odds with a globalizing age. This is an age seen to require transparency, accountability, global competitiveness, a universalistic outlook and universal practices, emphasis on private initiatives and the independence of the private sector. Indeed these are values associated more with the developed and liberal democratic West than the Asian countries. Societies in Asia are seen to under-emphasize these values even if they had not been found antithetical to Asian values in the first place (Han 1999, p. 4).
Globalization, the city and society With globalization of the economy, cities are seen as being the platforms for social adjustment between the forces representing the market and the changes required of society (Autes 1997). While it is argued that the role of cities has been pivotal between economy and politics, the understanding
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 71
State-society relations, the city and civic space 71 is also that the increase in exchange, flows, movements and information which globalization brings about also challenges territorial identities based on political institutions. In brief, globalization implies cities are being reconstructed according to an economic logic and the territorial extension of the market is seen as a force related to the geographical fragmentation of power. This is a decentralizing force that has seen the rise of cities as political actors and new places for public decision-making, particularly regarding local economic development. Yet, the role of cities as the pivot between politics and economy implies they can be expected, in the process, to create new political spaces as well as new legitimization of public action, because cities are also being brought into competition with other political actors animating and organizing urban and regional territories (Autes 1997: 231). These political actors include civil society and citizens’ groups. The extent to which these groups are engaging with the state sector in cities provides the context for the discussion of civic spaces and the role they contribute to public life and public decision-making at the local level.
Recoding the civil and the civic The transformation of Singapore into a modern city-state and economy in the last four decades or so has been driven largely by the state and its planning agencies. Planning has been highly centralized and, until only recently, involved relatively little participation by civil society or the public (Ooi 2004). Land-use development and the allocation of urban space have been strictly controlled and managed by state agencies. This means that there was little public consultation involved in the massive resettlement of a majority of the population from the central area of the city to new public housing estates as well as the major infrastructural development projects that were implemented. One of the then political leaders of the 1960s, had declared that “Modernization requires a certain measure of hard work, sacrifice and discipline [and] we must make radical changes to our economic, social and political institutions and accept ideas and developmental attitudes necessary for the process of modernization” (Chan and Obaid ul Haq 1985: 247). In the planning process, there has been a trend of recoding civic space as public space. This, in many ways, parallels the process or effort that has been made to recode the civil with civic society (Yeo 1991). In a keynote speech, the then Minister for Information and the Arts, Mr George Yeo, argued for a non-political variant of the concept of civil society regarded as more containable within the dominant political culture (Hill and Lian 1995: 225–6). This notion of civic life and civic society is the more acceptable form of civic engagement to the political leadership “to anchor Singaporeans, as individuals and as families, to the country” (Yeo 1991: 81). If civil society usually implies the active, egalitarian participation of citizens
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 72
72
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
in the social and political life of their communities – a public realm in which people are free to debate, contest and challenge the issues that affect them and their lives (Nair 1993), then the preference of the government in Singapore is for a civic society where individuals and groups spring up from the grassroots to undertake self-help work and projects which will benefit the community (Chan 1995; Koh and Ooi 2000). In short, the state sector has effectively shaped the boundaries, both spatial and political, within which civil society actors are expected to operate. Far from the openness seen as essential for the civil society groups and organizations to contribute freely to issues affecting the lives of citizens, there has been careful regulation of the space allocated to these groups for their work among the public (Tay 2000). The Speakers’ Corner that was introduced with considerable fanfare in 2000 is located in the city center where only a small proportion of the citizens live. Indeed, there tends to be more expatriates in the city center than in most other parts of Singapore. At any rate at least nine in ten people in Singapore live in public housing estates and new towns that are located outside of the city center. Ironically, therefore, while the Speakers’ Corner may be located in the central area of the city, it is far from being the center of where most people in Singapore live. Furthermore, while the Speakers’ Corner is intended to allow people to speak freely, speakers have to register and live with several rules, including not using audio-visual aids like a loud hailer. Location-wise, the Speakers’ Corner is sited behind a police station at the junction of one of the busiest thoroughfares in the city center. Few can recall the civic role of the public space and tumultuous political events that have actually taken place in the park where the Speakers’ Corner is now located. Political rallies during the elections were staged in the park until the 1970s because a larger number of the voters were still living in the neighborhood. In the process of urban development and change, historical land-uses have been erased, including the homes, shops and associations of the people then living in congested settlements around the parks. With the erasure of these land-uses, the collective memory of the political rallies and assemblies that used to take place in the park has also been erased. The imposition of rules on the use of the Speakers’ Corner reflects the standard government practice towards the use of public spaces provided in Singapore, particularly those developed in the public housing estates where a majority of the people live. Ubiquitous public spaces like the void decks or ground-floor flats of most high-rise residential blocks in public housing estates serve mainly as throughways and breezeways for residents, since most activities like bicycling and ball games are prohibited, among other activities (Ooi and Hee 2002). Indeed, research has shown that many public spaces in public housing estates serve as little more than passageways to elsewhere for residents moving from one place to another as they go about their daily routines (ibid).
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 73
State-society relations, the city and civic space 73 The way in which public spaces have evolved and the problem seen in the use of such spaces as civic spaces through which citizens can engage with public life and in civic activities aimed at participating in and debating issues affecting them, have paralleled the growing regulation and management of the civil society sector in Singapore. Use of public spaces for civic purposes, such as the mobilization of public support for agendas that are not the state’s, is subject to approval by the police to which an application for a public entertainment license has to be made. The rise in the dominance of the state has been matched by the undermining of the role of civil society that had emerged largely during the laissez-faire colonial state and the spaces in the city in which civil society activities can freely take place. Most telling, however, is the planning and provision of public spaces for the larger developmental purposes of the state and in the aesthetics required in urban design. Public or open spaces in the city serve more as relief from high-density and high-rise residential developments or as one dimension in the implementation of the garden city framework employed in the allocation of land for different land-uses (Ooi 1992).
Reclaiming the civic and the civil The problems with locating civic spaces in the city might have driven associational life in part on to the Internet. In 2001, a cyber group comprising Malay Muslims surfaced and came to public notice because of the conflict over the insistence by four Muslim families that their daughters attend their first year at primary school in a tudung, or head-dress (Koh and Ooi 2000). This group calling itself Fateha appeared to have mobilized largely through the Internet via a website called www.fateha.com, and announced it had gathered some 3,300 signatures for a petition to be submitted to the Prime Minister’s Office (Today 24 October 2001). At a press conference in October 2001, the group had announced that it was petitioning the government to allow Muslim students to cover their aurat 1 in school. The group has since disbanded, having come under intense pressure from both the government and the mainstream Malay-Muslim leadership. However, the mainstream Malay-Muslim leadership had been challenged earlier in 2000 by a group of Muslim professionals who suggested the institution of an independent, non-partisan and collective leadership for the Malay-Muslim community (Association of Muslim Professionals 2000). While not necessarily related, the call for such a leadership in preference to the representation of the community provided by the ruling party’s MalayMuslim Ministers of Parliament culminated an eventful year for the MalayMuslim community as it negotiated the retention of its religious schools, or madrasahs, in the face of the government’s demand for the schools to introduce the teaching of modern mathematics and science to its students. Detractors took exception to the government position that the madrasahs represented less of an education system than the national education
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 74
74
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
system, arguing that the madrasah system was integral to the life of the community that did not always define itself by the same secular, materialistic values that the rest of the national community might (Koh and Ooi 2002: 257). A compromise was finally reached whereby individual madrasahs would be recognized if their students could meet a minimum standard of achievement in a national curriculum – a move that some groups such as the Alternative Joint Committee of Madrasah might have seen as a compromise of the religious educational system itself. There have been other groups that have been initiated through the Internet. A long established group is Sintercom, or Singapore’s Internet Community, which can be loosely termed a political commentary group. The control of the media by the state has been challenged briefly by the electronic form of civil society in the new Information Age. The Singapore Internet Community (Sintercom) was one of the many Internet-based portals that were created to discuss Singapore politics in what was a relatively free-wheeling and no-holds-barred fashion. The attempt that the portal made to register in Singapore revealed the difficulties that the regulators had with the new medium, since the standard format for registration required information about the place of business, names of office-holders and membership listing. These do not apply with a cyber community comprised of contributors from around the world, and much less a hierarchy of officeholders. Not surprisingly, the application was rejected. Well into its eighth year of operation, Sintercom ran into legislation barriers that were imposed on freedom of expression, by way of rules for broadcasting on the Internet. In July 2001, the Singapore Broadcasting Authority made it known that Sintercom had to register as a political website subject to the rules being implemented for broadcasting. Such conditions would impose a form of control and a regulatory environment that would make the website very difficult to operate since it would be selfdefeating for members to require censorship for an effort that had been initiated on the premise of allowing contributors to speak their minds freely. State-society relations in Singapore, following the end of colonial rule, have therefore tended to be characterized by the state’s imposition of controls and procedures calculated to keep civil society in arenas that best suit the prevailing political order – the provision of welfare services and selfhelp, as well as grassroots work in support of the ruling party’s initiatives. Such management and control, which reflect the nature of state-society relations, have been extended to public spaces and, hence, they function as civic spaces for the mobilization of public support for public causes and wider societal interests. Indeed, even the sole authority for the allocation of the use of public spaces is the state and its agencies. Instead of civil society acting to contest the scope of the state, it is the reverse that occurs. Such state-society relations are not, however, without their tensions. These have not only been manifested in the contestation of over real space (e.g. issues of heritage conservation in the city) – but also over cyberspace.
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 75
State-society relations, the city and civic space 75
Participatory democracy and civic spaces In posing the question “Just whose city is it?” Sassen (1999) highlighted a key issue in cities that are as globalized as Singapore. There is a question of identity and the extent to which the citizenry identifies with the national identity and nationalism that should, in the long term, serve the agenda of the exclusive group of elites and intellectuals who support them, rather than the interests of the society. Globalization has tended to fragment society at the local level, leading to a re-configuration of identities and alliances. Many citizens must necessarily evolve multiple identities that include the national identity, which then becomes but one of the many ways in which the individual defines herself. Reclamation of the civic or the civil, which is somehow being recoded by the government sector, as seen in the activism of Fateha, has been a point of contestation between what can be viewed as a group’s right to cultural and religious expression, versus its responsibility and obligations to the national community or the national scheme of things (Koh and Ooi 2002: 261). The political leadership appears to be recognizing the importance of a sense of ownership and place identification in order to more effectively root its citizenry to the nation-state. Yet, the oft-drawn observation about how rapidly the landscape is transformed in Singapore encapsulates much of that which many citizens identify with spaces and places. Ordinary Singaporeans regularly see places where they have spent their childhood removed to make way for new developments (George 2000). Participatory processes that have been institutionalized include the Town Councils but here the decision is politically motivated (Ooi 1990). Voter accountability – rather than the aim of including greater public participation – appears to be the motivation behind the introduction of the town councils. Since the polls have not provided much evidence of the importance of participation or otherwise to voters, these councils have generally not emphasized greater involvement of the residents with the planning of public spaces or even the upgrading of older estates. The following quote expresses the frustration associated with the state’s project of introducing greater self-determination at the grassroots level: The Housing Board has its new towns, and the Urban Redevelopment Authority its land-use zones and planning districts. Singapore is also divided into town councils, community development council districts and electoral divisions. Tugged by so many agencies and agendas, most places in Singapore have had their identities muddled, mixed or massacred by changes to names and boundaries. As a result of changes before and after the 1997 general election, for example, the residents of Bedok HDB estate, who used to be served by the Bedok town council, found themselves having to pay their conservancy charges to East Coast town council instead. Residents of Jurong had their town
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 76
76
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia council changed from Jurong to Bukit Timah. Many estates are split between different town councils. At Bukit Batok East Avenue 6, for example, Block 230 is looked after by Bukit Timah Town Council, while Block 231 across the road comes under Hong Kah Town Council. (George 2000: 191)
A major problem has been the lack of public participation in the planning process. Little institutionalization of processes that will allow for public participation has been introduced. Efforts, such as the development guide planning process, have been reduced to the mere staging of exhibitions of plans. With the view of incorporating public feedback, these efforts are supposedly firmed up, but there is usually no repeat exhibition organized to inform the public or citizens who have provided feedback exactly how it has been incorporated. It is evident that civil society remains severely circumscribed in its scope for activism, judging from the state’s control and management of the use of public spaces by civil society groups and actors. There are strict limits on the use of public spaces as civic spaces as the state seeks to construct the boundaries and nature of the civil society sector. The tussle for civic space between the state and civil society represents the social process in which civil society actors are engaged as they struggle for greater political freedoms and channels of representation. This would involve more effective representations of civil society sector interests that have been somewhat sidelined by the state in its focus on a globalization agenda and economic growth. A denial of real, physical space for more active mobilization in terms of public participation for civil society can be seen as the reflection of the limitations and constraints imposed on the development of a more equal footing in state-society relations for all sectors.
Notes 1 Aurat refers to parts of the body that need covering – these are stipulated for both males and females according to Islamic law.
References Anheier, H.K. and Seibel, W. (eds.) (1990) The Third Sector: Comparative Studies of Nonprofit Organizations, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Antlöv, H. and Ngo, T.W. (2000) “Politics, Culture and Democracy in Asia”, in H. Antlöv and T.W. Ngo (eds.) The Cultural Construction of Politics in Asia, Richmond: Curzon Press. Association of Muslim Professionals (AMP) (2000), “Position Statement, AMP’s Response to Issues of Leadership and Nation-Building”, 16 December. Autes, M. (1997) “Public action, local democracy and the challenge of economic globalization”, in F. Moulaert and A.J. Scott (eds.) Cities, Enterprises and Society on the eve of the 21st Century, London: Pinter.
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 77
State-society relations, the city and civic space 77 Barber, B.R. (1996) Jihad vs Mc World: How Globalism and Tribalism are Re-shaping the World, New York: Ballantine Books. Bauer, R. (1990) “Nonprofit Organizations in International Perspective”, in K. Helmut Anheier and W. Seibel (eds.) The Third Sector: Comparative Studies of Nonprofit Organizations, Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Boski, J. (2002) “Responses by State Actors to Insurgent Civic Spaces since the WTO Meetings at Seattle”, International Development Review, 24(4): 363–82. Bunnell, T. (2002) “Multimedia Utopia? A Geographical Critique of High-Tech Development in Malaysia’s Multimedia Super Corridor”, Antipode, 34(2): 265–95. Castells, M. (1992) “Four Asian Tigers with a Dragon Head”, in R.P. Appelbaum and J. Henderson (eds.) States and Development in the Asian Pacific Rim, Newbury Park, CA and London: Sage Publications. Chan, H.C. and Obaid ul Haq (eds.) (1985) The Prophetic and the Political: Selected Speeches and Writings of S. Rajaratnam, Singapore: Graham Brash. Chan, T.C. (1995) “Non-government organizations in Singapore”, in T. Yamamoto (ed.) Emerging Civil Society in the Asia Pacific Community, Singapore: Japan Center for International Exchange and Institute of Southeast Asian Studies. Cheng, L.K. (1985) Social Change and the Chinese in Singapore – A Socio-economic Geography with Special Reference to Bang Structure, Singapore: Singapore University Press. George, C. (2000) The Air-Conditioned Nation, Singapore: Landmark Books. Gibson, W. (1993) “Disney Land with the Death Penalty”. Online. Available HTTP: http://www.eff.org/Misc/Publications/William_Gibson/gibson_disney_death.article (accessed 28 June 2006). Haas, M. (ed.) (1999) The Singapore Puzzle, Westport, CT: Praeger. Hall, T. and Hubbard, P. (eds.) (1998) The Entrepreneurial City – Geographies of Politics, Regime and Representation, Chichester: John Wiley and Sons. Han, S.J. (ed.) (1999) Changing Values in Asia, Tokyo: Japan Center for International Exchange. Hee, L.M. and Ooi, G.L. ( January 2003) “The Politics of Planning – Public Space in Singapore”, Planning Perspectives, 18, 79–103. Hill, M. and Lian, K.F. (1995) The Politics of Nation Building and Citizenship in Singapore, London: Routledge. Jamann, W. (1994) Chinese Traders in Singapore – Business Practices and Organizational Dynamics, Saarbrücken: Verlag für Entwicklungspolitik Breitenbach. Johnson, C. (2001) “MITI and the Japanese Miracle”, in C.J. Milhaupt, J.M. Ramseyer and M.K. Young (eds.) Japanese Law in Context: Readings in Society, the Economy, and Politics, Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center. Kaye, B. (1959) Upper Nankin Street, Singapore: University of Malaya Press. King, A.D. (1976) Colonial Urban Development: Culture, Social Power and Environment, London: Routledge & Kegan Paul. Koh, T. (2000) “Epilogue – Reflections on Civil Society”, in G. Koh and G.L. Ooi (eds.) State-society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Oxford University Press. Koh, G. and Ooi, G.L. (eds.) (2000), State-society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Oxford University Press. Koh, G. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Singapore: A Home, A Nation?” Southeast Asian Affairs 2002, Singapore: Institute of Southeast Asian Studies. Ministry of Home Affairs (2003) White Paper – The Jemaah Islamiyah Arrests and the Threat of Terrorism, Singapore: Ministry of Home Affairs.
9780415397896_4_004.qxd 07/09/2007 09:07 Page 78
78
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Moulaert, F. and Scott, A.J. (1997) “Globalization, Economic Restructuring and Urban Society”, in F. Moulaert and A.J. Scott (eds.) Cities, Enterprises and Society on the Eve of the 21st Century, London: Pinter. Nair, S. (1993) Political Society, Commentary: Civil Society, 11(1): 15–9. Olds, K. (1995) “Globalization and the Production of New Urban Spaces: Pacific Rim Megaprojects in the Late 20th Century”, Environment and Planning A, 27: 1713– 43. Ooi, G.L. (1990) “Town Councils – Self-Determination of Public Housing Estates in Singapore”, Institute of Policy Studies Occasional Paper No. 4, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Times Academic Press. Ooi, G.L. (1992) “Public policy and park development in Singapore”, Land-use Policy, January, pp. 64–7. Ooi, G.L. (1993) “Health Care Development and Ethnic Medicine in Malaysia”, Third World Planning Review, 15(3): 273–86. Ooi, G.L. (2004) Future of Space – Planning, Space and the City, Singapore: Eastern Universities Press. Ooi, G.L. and Hee, L.M. (2002) “Public Space and the Developmental State in Singapore”, International Development Review, 24(4): 433–47. Roy, D. (1994) “Singapore, China and the Soft Authoritarian Challenge”, Asian Survey, XXXIV, p. 231. Sassen, S. (1999) “Whose City is It? Globalization and the Formation of New Claims”, in A.F. Foo and B. Yuen (eds.) Sustainable Cities in the 21st Century, Singapore: Singapore University Press. Short, J. (1989) The Humane City: Cities as if People Matter, Oxford: Blackwell. Singam, C. (2000) “Civic traditions in Singapore: A Feminist Perspective”, in G. Koh and G.L. Ooi (eds.) (2000), State-society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Oxford University Press. Tay, S. (2000) “Civil Society and the Law: Three Dimensions for Change in the 21st Century”, in G. Koh and G.L. Ooi (eds.) State-society Relations in Singapore, Singapore: Institute of Policy Studies and Oxford University Press. Thamilselvan, A. (2003) “Participation of Minorities in Grassroots Organizations: Old and New Issues Revisited”, Journal on Active Community, 3: 25–9. Thomas, H. (2000) Race and Planning – The UK Experience, London and New York: UCL Press. Today (2001) “Timing of Petition by Civil Rights Group Questioned”, 24 October. Yamamoto, T. (ed.) (1995) Emerging Civil Society in the Asia Pacific Community, Singapore: Japan Center for International Exchange and Institute of Southeast Asian Studies. Yeo, G. (1991) “Civic Society – Between the Family and the State”, Inaugural NUSS Lecture, 20 June, World Trade Center Auditorium, Singapore. Zakaria, F. (1994), “Culture is Destiny: A Conversation with Lee Kuan Yew”, Foreign Affairs 73(2) Online. Available HTTP: www.fareedzakaria.com/articles/other/ culture.html (accessed 27 June 2006).
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 79
5
Chinese public space A brief account Heng Chye Kiang
To the east and on the northern side of the street is the wine shop of Pan Tower, and below it a market gathers every day from the fifth watch (3–5 a.m.), where they buy and sell clothes, calligraphy and paintings, precious baubles, rhinoceros horn and jade. When it comes level light of dawn, then such items as sheep’s head, tripe and lung, red and white kidneys, udders, tripe, quails, rabbits, doves, wild game, crabs and clams have disappeared. Then the various handy men come to market to buy and sell miscellaneous small items that are used in provisions.1 (Meng Yuanlao, Dongjing menghua lu [Record of a Dream of Splendor in the Eastern Capital], preface dated 1147) Until the nineteenth century or even the early twentieth century, Chinese cities were very different from their Western counterparts. The quintessential public space – the public square that constitutes the jewel and core of most European cities – was conspicuously absent in traditional Chinese cities, at least not in the form we know of in the West. The prevalent public square in which the cultural and political life of the European urban polities is enacted was not necessary for, nor desired by, the Chinese ruling agency to have in its cities, since the power was centralized in a highly autocratic state, not to be shared with any secular group or religious order. When it existed in the form of an imperial or palace square before the Imperial City, it was a very different urban space, with its own rules and rhythm of use. Instead, until late imperial times, the quintessential public space in Chinese cities was the street/street-market as described in the quote above, taken from a popular record of Kaifeng written in the early twelfth century. It was predominantly in and along these linear channels that public life was conducted. And even this was a hard won battle that took several hundred years of urban development and popular contestation before its role was accepted and entrenched. However, this does not mean that Chinese cities did not have other forms of public space. During its long history, other urban elements began to play increasingly important roles as the loci for public activities. Foremost amongst them are the market, temple courtyards and to a lesser extent, gardens.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 80
80
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
This paper begins by examining the birth of a ubiquitous form of public space – the transition from the enclosed market compound to the commercial street – and outlines the development of others in history. Given the geographical and historical scope, it is difficult to characterize public space in Chinese cities in a single paper. Rather, the purpose of this paper is to sketch the changing nature of public space during the major phases of Chinese city development and provide a basis for its development before concluding with the recent development of a new form of public space – the guangchang, or square.
From market to street In the article “The historical development of Chinese urban morphology,” Wu Jin divided the long development of Chinese cities into four phases: the walled city (770 BC–AD 906), the open city (618–1840), the colonial city (1840–1949) and the socialist city (1949–85) (Wu Jin 1993). While one may take issue with the periodization, the terminology and even the specific dates concerned, the general categorization into four periods is useful as a framework for studying the development of public spaces in Chinese cities.2 Important cities in imperial China were mainly administrative in nature. At the lowest level, these were county seats chosen at convenient locations well served by the local communication network. This was vital not only because the county town was also the market center for the region but also because local taxes largely collected in kind had to be channeled to the town and forwarded to the prefecture and subsequently to the central government.3 Their small size precluded them from playing significant political roles. Prefectural/provincial seats were administrative centers first and foremost. Sited at pivotal locations, they were well connected to their counties and linked to the national network of trunk roads and waterways (Peterson 1973). Capital cities in China were usually established for political, administrative and military reasons rather than for economic purposes although these cities were at times busy commercial centers before they became capitals. Even if they were not to begin with, they would quickly become important commercial hubs soon after being named capital. Unlike the more organic layout of commercial townships, administrative centers, by virtue of the fact that they were seats of government, demanded the physical intimations of imperial presence. They were typically orthogonal and axially symmetrical walled cities, at the center of which was a walled administrative compound (Figure 5.1). In the case of the capital, this walled compound comprised the imperial and palace cities. The city was usually ordered by a grid-iron network of streets oriented north–south. In the case of the Sui (581–618) and early Tang (618–906) cities of the so-called “walled city” or “closed city” period, the instrument of authority was very clear. The central authority had absolute control, at least until
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 81
Chinese public space 81
Figure 5.1 Map of Wangcheng in Kaogongji showing a walled city with an orthogonal grid of streets and a walled administration compound in the center.
the An Lushan rebellion (755–63), over the production of space. The Sui and the early Tang administrations adopted and refined the institutions of the earlier sinicized non-Han Northern Dynasties concerned with the functional hierarchical organization of society (Gernet 1982). The strong, autocratic grip that the Sui and early Tang emperors had over their cities produced an equally strict urban order of walled monofunctional wards separated by wide, policed streets, confining citizens to easily controllable quarters. Early Tang cities were strictly zoned into functional areas such as administrative precincts, residential wards (fang) and market compounds (shi) (Figure 5.2). Each of these entities was surrounded by walls provided with a limited number of gates for easy control and supervision. These walls
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 82
82
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 5.2 Detail from a map of Chang’an engraved on a stone stele in 1080 showing walled residential wards provided with gates on two or four sides of the wards.
were as much for the protection as for the control of the inhabitants of the wards, guarding the city against popular unrest (Heng 1999). Wide avenues separated these walled enclosures. These walls made it easy for the police to ensure the city’s security. They facilitated the arrest of criminals by confining them within the ward where the crime was committed or providing them with no nooks and corners to hide if they were outside. A strict curfew system further limited the movement and activities of inhabitants both spatially and temporally. In fact, early Tang cities, especially capitals Chang’an and Luoyang, may be regarded not only as cities but as something more ambiguous, perhaps as a fortified collection
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 83
Chinese public space 83 of semi-autonomous, closely guarded towns or camps separated by wide expanses of policed avenues. In such regulated cities, the movement of its inhabitants was stringently controlled. In the Tang capitals for instance, barring severe corporal punishment, inhabitants were not allowed to leave their walled residential wards before dawn and after dusk, much less hold assemblies in public places. These rules were suspended only three days a year, on the 14th, 15th, and 16th day of the first lunar month – permitting city folks to stroll the streets at night in order to enjoy the New Year Lantern Festival (Heng 1999). The large palace square in front of the imperial and palace cities was more for the purposes of parade and security than for public assembly and recreation.
Markets Despite severe controls, Tang cities such as Chang’an and Luoyang did have their public spaces. The market was perhaps the most important public space during this period. The government’s disdain for commercial activities and merchants alike relegated them to closely supervised enclosed markets. As opposed to the easily accountable land-bound peasantry that provided the foundation from which corvee labor and soldiers could be easily conscripted, the geographically mobile merchant and his trading activities were seen as non-productive. Furthermore, the merchant was also seen as a disturbing factor that could upset the established social order by providing an alternative means of social advancement through wealth. Besides, many uprisings throughout Chinese history were in one way or another linked to the market – hence the necessity of strict control over merchants and their activities (Lu 1996). Tang Chang’an had at least two markets, each occupying an area of about a square kilometer and surrounded by tall thick walls. In these fortified enclosures were thousands of shops and warehouses, served by a network of streets and alleys. Although open for business only from noon till dusk, these markets also served as places of entertainment for the populace (Figure 5.3). Numerous restaurants, wineshops and brothels set up business here offering an entire range of amusements from wine and song to prostitution (Heng 1999). Occasionally, music competitions were also staged. Even public executions too were conducted in these markets and the heads of executed criminals were displayed there as a public deterrence to crime. A temple was found in each of the two markets as well. In the later half of the Tang period, certain of the residential wards too became areas to which inhabitants gravitated for recreation. With a weakened central authority, an expanding economy and the emergence of a prosperous urban class, the strict urban structure was gradually being eroded. In particular residential wards began to appear shops, restaurants and even brothels. These quarters were popular “night spots,” which pulsated with activity until late into the night (Heng 1994).
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 84
84
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 5.3 Relief tile from the Han period showing what might be Chengdu’s market surrounded by thick walls and filled with rows of shops.
This phenomenon became even more prevalent towards the end of the Tang period. This was further aided by the half-century long interregnum after the fall of Tang, which decimated much of the aristocracy and the gentry, brought an end to the “apogee of the power of the great aristocratic clans” and paved the way for a new social order (Wright and Twitchett 1973). Under the more pluralistic Song society, commercial activities, once considered a necessary evil and kept to a minimum, blossomed. The imperial coffers that depended mainly on agricultural taxes now derived a large income from commercial taxes. Shops once confined to fortified market enclosures spilled into the streets. The walls that used to define the avenues gave way to shop fronts. Even officials and gentry, attracted by profit, participated in commercial ventures that were once regarded with contempt. In fact, many of the rental properties that encroached on the public roadways were built and owned by high officials themselves. Once confined to the walled enclosure of the Tang markets, the commercial street was finally liberated in the open city.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 85
Chinese public space 85
Streets The birth of the commercial street was as important a development for Chinese urban morphology as it was for Chinese public space and activities. With the breakdown of both the ward walls and curfew system, commercial activities could take place almost anywhere and throughout the day and night if necessary. Whereas at the morphological level, Chinese cities transitioned from the status-sensitive walled wards of a highly hierarchicized society to pluralistic street-centered neighborhoods, public space. Hence, public life once confined to walled enclosures during certain times of the day now pervaded the city round the clock (Heng 1994). The open city was significantly more popular than the closed city of the previous era. There was, at one level, a gradual political loosening that slowly rendered the city and its constituents more accessible to its inhabitants. Streets, public squares in front of city gates, temple courtyards, restaurants, taverns, and pleasure precincts alike were scenes of popular entertainment, differing only in intensity and regularity (Figure 5.4). Imperial relatives, scholarofficials, and the common people frequented the same establishments, limited more by their financial ability than by their hereditary social status. The activities of the open city now appear to be organized along streets. The mental map of the city was also similarly structured. The primary structure of the Northern Song capital Kaifeng, for instance, was constituted by three major commercial streets together with four imperial avenues, to which the other secondary and tertiary streets and alleys were attached to form a closely knit road network (Figure 5.5). Unlike the wide, featureless, policed thoroughfares of Chang’an, the major streets and avenues of Kaifeng were very different socially, visually and psychologically. Along a 2.5 km stretch of one of the city’s three major commercial arteries, for instance, were many government installations including the Imperial Army, Medical Relief West Bureau, West Government Hostelry and the Capital City Defensive Arsenal; at least a Zoroastrian temple, two Buddhist monasteries, a Taoist temple, an imperial shrine and numerous other religious buildings, businesses – including eateries, fanciful restaurants such as Clear Wind Loft and Yichenglou, hotels, numerous drugstores – and peddlers of all sorts. Along it was also found the urn market where public executions were conducted, and large popular entertainment precincts, or wazi. Here, too, the houses of the common folks and the vast mansions of the rich and powerful were found. This major commercial artery is only one of seven, lined with establishments of all kinds, including shops, taverns, restaurants, ateliers, entertainment facilities, religious institutions, government edifices and residences, which criss-crossed the city. Not only were the streets of the city made available to the urban dwellers at all times of the day and night, businesses were conducted in them round the clock. Henceforth, the street had become the most important of all public spaces in China.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 86
86
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 5.4 Detail of Qingming shanghe tu showing a street lined with shops and a drugstore owned by a minor functionary.
Temple fairs, gardens and squares Other than the street, the expanded economy, pervasive commercialization and consumption that accompanied urban living during the Song dynasties and the open-city period gave rise to new forms of public spaces as well. Foremost on the list were monastery/temple courtyards. Although privately owned, these courtyards were entirely opened to the public during certain days of the week or month when temple fairs were held. Temple
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 87
Chinese public space 87
Figure 5.5 Schematic reconstruction of Kaifeng showing streets lined with diverse activities.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 88
88
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 5.6 Trade and popular entertainment in a contemporary temple fair in Beijing.
courtyards were already, to a certain extent, public spaces in the previous eras, particularly during temple celebrations and fairs. However, it was after the increased commercialization of farm goods and the rapid expansion of population and urban centers that such temple fairs took on the new dimension of important markets where trade and popular entertainment involving the masses took place (Figure 5.6). During temple festivals, stages, if not already present, were set up for popular performances and were open to the general public. Descriptions of the bustling scenes of temple fairs from the open city period abound. Xiangguo monastery, an important Buddhist sanctuary in Song Kaifeng became a popular fair ground five times a month: Inside the courtyard were set out parti-colored canopies [over the] booths and public shops; here were sold mats made of fine bamboo and rush, screen curtains, laundry items, saddles and bits, bows and swords, fruits in season, dried meats and the like . . . The two cloister corridors [sheltered] the temple nuns, selling embroidered collars and girdles, flowers, pearl and jade, head ornaments, washed gold artificial flowers in life-like colors, kerchief caps, (women’s) hats to hold up the hair, ribbons, and the like. Back of the hall and in front of the Zisheng Pavilion was where all books, curios, and pictures were sold, and where the various ex-provincial officials had such things as regional specialties, incense and medicine for sale. The rear corridor was all fortune tellers, conjurors, portrait artists and the like.4
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 89
Chinese public space 89 Table 5.1 Sizes of some temple squares Name
Size (ha)
1 2 3 4 5
0.5 0.26 0.13 0.04 0.06
Nanking-Confucius Temple Square Anhui-Jiuhua Mountain-Huachen Temple Square Tianjin-Tianhou Gong Square Shanghai-City God Temple Square Hefei-City God Temple Square
Source: Figures are taken from Wang, Yan (2002). Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore.
In short, the monastery courtyard became a vast market where goods of all sorts from around the country were sold. Xiangguo monastery was not unique. In other great monasteries such as Kaibao and Jingde, fairs were also held, music lofts were also erected and music performed. In smaller market towns, miaoshi, or “temple markets,” usually crowded with people, were also commonly held together with theatrical performances (Quan 1934). During major celebrations “they greeted the deity with hundreds of plays” (Heng 1999). Similarly, Bao’en monastery, perhaps the largest Buddhist monastery in Ming period Nanjing, was not only a place of pilgrimage but also an important venue for popular entertainment and where city folks went to catch some fresh air on hot summer nights. The political loosening that was slowly rendering the city more open not only happened at the places usually associated with the populace but also at installations typically out of bounds to the common people. Imperial gardens aside, even the Golden Bright Pool in Song Kaifeng, where the imperial troops practiced naval battles, was opened to the citizens for all kinds of activities 40 days a year (Figure 5.7). On the day of Lichun, which marked the beginning of spring on the tenth day of the first month, commercial activities went on even in the open space in front of the Song capital’s two metropolitan county bureaus. During the first 15 days of the New Year, even the palace square before the Imperial City became a sea of celebration for many days and nights. The palace even provided entertainers to perform for one and all in the elaborately decorated and lit imperial square. On certain days during these celebrations, one could even see the emperor and his officials atop the Gate of Displayed Virtue amidst curtains and canopies, enjoying the performances and granting occasional pardon and amnesty to the sentenced and banished. The public space had, in this case, been used by the emperor as “setting for acts of legitimization, as well as for the public display of justice,” once again reinforcing his position as the ultimate source of power.5
Western influence, reforms and parks Until late imperial times when foreign incursions and their aftermath brought another wave of drastic changes to certain Chinese cities, the structure of
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 90
90
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 5.7 Song period painting of Golden Bright Pond, Liaoning Museum.
cities and of daily life did not change very much, if at all. It was rather a question of intensity. China’s population had grown from about 85 million in 1080 to about 300 million by 1800. The major public spaces as constituted by the streets, temples and their courtyards, open spaces at bridgeheads, in front of city gates and so on, continued to provide the venue for public activities, social, cultural and civic life. These were supplemented by other quasi-public spaces such as merchant associations and especially the ubiquitous tea houses. In his article “Street Culture: Public Space and Urban Commoners in Late Qing Chengdu,” Wang painted the street life, activities and culture during the decades prior to 1911 (Wang 1998). Even the description of the public space that was the street in the inland city of Chengdu at the turn of the twentieth century had strong resemblance with that of its counterpart in Kaifeng or Hangzhou some seven or eight hundred years
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 91
Chinese public space 91 earlier. The difference was that Chengdu, as well as many other major Chinese cities, were in the middle of important transformations. This was precipitated by the harassment and presence of Western forces, the semicolonial state of some Chinese cities and the self realization that reforms were necessary to lift the nation out of the tragic state into which it had sunk during the nineteenth century. The setting up of foreign concessions at treaty ports, the grafting of Western urban orders to indigenous urban centers and the introduction of “western” public amenities in these territories of so-called “dual cities” brought about a new consciousness of public space as an instrument of reform ( Johnson 1995). The return of Chinese students and intellectuals who had studied or spent time in America, Europe and Japan further fanned the enthusiasm for reform. What ensued was not only a reform of almost every aspect of the government (beginning with the collapse of the Qing Dynasty) and economic system, but also of society. The social reformers saw the transformation of the physical urban environment as a means to promote social and cultural change and to shape the “values and habits of the lower classes” to create a new Chinese citizen (Wang 1998). Besides other civil works and new amenities, new public open spaces such as parks and squares appeared in many Chinese cities as part of its modernization agenda. Just as the Chinese park began partly as an instrument of social reform, the newly created civic space “provided an arena for the city people to participate in modern China’s transformation” and “heightened city people’s demand for a political voice in national policy making and demonstrated their strong commitment to the idea of democracy in a sovereign republic” (Shi 1998). In the last decade of the nineteenth century, Victoria Park was opened in the British concession in Tianjin. Other parks also appeared in Tianjin’s French, Italian and Japanese concessions. However, until the late 1920s, admission to these parks in foreign concessions was forbidden to the Chinese (Liu 1997). In Chengdu, a public park called the Smaller City Park (Shaocheng gongyuan) was opened in the late Qing. The land had previously been used as practice grounds for archery and riding by bannermen of Shaocheng but was gradually converted to agricultural use with the bannermen’s decline (Wang 1998). With the addition of pavilions, teahouses, stores and a theater, the park became a fashionable place for city dwellers to spend their leisure time. In 1913, an exhibition hall and a library were built in the park. When the warlord Yang Sen occupied Chengdu from February 1924 for 16 months, he further added a large piece of land to the park for use as public exercise ground. He also added the Popular Education Institute (Tongsu Jiaoyuyuan) to the park (Stapleton 2000). The city folks, however, did not share the reformer’s love of physical exercise but frequented instead the four teahouses set in natural beautiful scenery under the shade of trees to such an extent that a contemporary observed that “the teahouse is crowded, but the playground is empty”(Wang et al. 1999).
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 92
92
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Shanghai, too, had its public gardens. Between 1893 and 1909, Zhangyuan was its biggest and most important public space. The private garden was open to the public for free in 1885. With its Western style landscape, restaurant, teahouse, theater, billiard hall, storytelling ground, playground and exhibition hall, it offered the city dwellers a cosmopolitan style of leisure. Many scholars, journalists, officials and business elites too frequented the park. It quickly became the city’s civic space for assemblies and speeches on topical issues such as the frontier crisis, student strikes and the like. However, Zhangyuan’s attraction declined after 1909 when indoor entertainment centers such as Xinshijie (The New World) and Dashijie (The Big World) appeared and gained popularity, leading finally to its closure in 1918. It was, however, in early-twentieth-century Beijing that the impact of parks “on the political, economic and social life of the city people and on the emergence of a modern urban culture” was perhaps most apparent (Shi 1998). Political activists began to hold mass rallies in the parks: at the Central Park in 1915, more than 300,000 Beijing citizens protested the Twenty-One Demands of the Japanese and the compromise by the Beiyang government; in 1925, an estimate of 700,000 people mourned the death of Sun Yat-Sen (Shi 1998). Beijing’s public parks were also used as important open forums for the dissemination of ideas and the mobilization of the urban populace. Although the zoological garden set up in 1906 and officially opened to the public in 1908 by Empress Dowager Cixi could be considered the first public park in Beijing, it was not until the early republican era that the creation of large public parks took place. These were converted from imperial gardens, ceremonial sites and even the Forbidden City itself. Thanks to Zhu Qiqian, then Minister of the Interior as well as President of the Municipal Council, the Qing’s Altar of Earth and Grain became Central Park and was officially opened on 10 October 1914, the National Day of the Republic (Dong 2000; Shi 1998). Other than converting existing halls in the compound to reading rooms of the Ministry of Education and the sanitation exhibition rooms of the Ministry of the Interior, several new buildings were added to house, among other functions, a restaurant, a teahouse, a gymnasium and a flower greenroom. The park had something for everyone and each found their favorite spots, although the commercial establishments attracted the biggest crowds. Following Central Park, a few other parks were opened: South City Park in 1917, the Altar of Heaven in 1918, Beihai Park (Figure 5.8) and Jingzhao Park in 1925, and later the Summer Palace as well as the residential quarters of the Forbidden City. Jingzhao Park, later renamed Shimin Gongyuan, or Citizen’s Park, had the city’s first athletic field, a public library and a “World Garden” featuring a “world map” constructed with rocks, grass and flowers (Figure 5.9). It was a park dedicated to the education of the ordinary people through public entertainment despite the fact that it never succeeded in attracting many people.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 93
Chinese public space 93
Figure 5.8 Beijing’s Beihai Park opened to public in 1925.
Figure 5.9 Shimin gongyuan (Citizenship Park) in Beijing.
Danwei society and the decline of public space Concomitant with the ascent of the public park was the decline of the temple as a public space, brought about by a combination of factors. Just like the temple fairs, the Chinese park had become a venue combining cultural, social, recreational and commercial activities and gradually eclipsed the temple fairs in popularity. The appearance of modern departmental stores,
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 94
94
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Western-style theaters and other modern amenities also contributed to the decline of temple fairs although they did not entirely disappear. While the parks and new public amenities attracted the upper and middle classes, the temple fairs were still preferred by the common city folks, much to the consternation of the reform-minded officials and elites. As early as in 1903 the elite showed their disdain for traditional rites and activities when an article in the daily Dagong Bao said that attending temple fairs, or miao hui, was a blind or uncultured activity.6 In 1924, Chen Weixin, a zealous urban reformer who had been trained as a YMCA organizer in Shanghai, listed among the most urgent tasks facing Chengdu’s administrations the need to “turn temple grounds into small public parks throughout the city so children are not obliged to play in the streets.”7 Here, as in the rise of early modern Europe was the “gradual withdrawal of elites from participation in popular culture.”8 However, the decline, if not demise, of the temple fairs was only definitive when drastic changes were brought about by the new socialist regime to life in general in China. The most prevalent public space that was the street, and for that matter, all other forms of public spaces, saw the decline of their roles as public spaces during the socialist period, during which time fundamental changes took place in all areas. The new Chinese socialism invented its own socio-spatial configurations. The work unit, or danwei, became the basic building block of society. The Chinese cities were organized into a “danwei society”. Be it governmental, public service or enterprise, these work units were all state-owned, state-administered, supported by a unitary collective welfare and insurance system and controlled by administrative agencies centered on the Chinese Communist Party committees (Yang 2002). According to Yang, in danwei society, authentic citizen participation could not take place because of the lack of at least three factors: the need of citizen participation (public sphere), organization for citizen participation, and competence and willingness of citizens to participate . . . In the danwei society, Danwei controlled all social resources, making it impossible for communities to develop autonomously . . . In a word, danwei society does not allow the existence of public sphere, independent civil organizations, and authentic citizenship. Not only was the Danwei society and public sphere mutually exclusive, the cityscape started to evolve in a manner that began to reflect this reality. All aspects of an individual’s life – housing, welfare, pension, medical insurance, kindergarten, school and commuting service – were supported and controlled by his or her work unit. For a variety of reasons, this fundamentally self-sufficient entity began to circumscribe itself with walls in the mid-1960s. Although the building of walls was strictly controlled by the municipal government, most work units cited security as the reason for which it was
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 95
Chinese public space 95
Figure 5.10 “Da-Sai et le modèle rural”.
necessary to erect walls. By the 1960s, the danwei was practically synonymous with a walled autonomous compound (Figure 5.10). Each had its refectory, bathhouse and grocer; the larger ones even had schools and clinics, not to mention cinemas and swimming pools, all hidden behind walls. Reminiscent of the Tang ward and city, the danwei was very much like an autonomous walled town; the city became a collection of such walled compounds. With the exception of the central commercial area, the other streets, once lined with shops, were now bounded with walls provided with occasional gates. The Chinese city and its public space had come full circle.
Market reform and new public spaces Since 1978, the new policies of Four Modernizations (of agriculture, industry, technology, and defense) put in place by Deng Xiaoping have led to an economic boom sustained over the last quarter of the previous century. The country opened up, courted foreign investments, encouraged joint ventures, and once again sent its students to Europe, the US and Japan. The dizzying speed at which some coastal cities grew transformed their cityscape literally overnight. Even major inland cities saw their urban fabric change drastically. Accompanying this rapid economic growth are new social aspirations, political visions and practices which once again impacted significantly on the cities’ public spaces. Of particular interest is the recent popularity of the buxing (shangye) jie, or pedestrianized (commercial) street, and the flurry of building extensive public space broadly called guangchang. Every major city has at least a pedestrianized commercial street that is thronged with locals and visitors
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 96
96
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Table 5.2 Size of some civic/citizen guangchang Name
Size (m) (W–E × N–S)
Jinan-Spring City Guangchang Jilin-Century Guangchang Beijing-Tiananmen Guangchang Shanghai-People Guangchang Chongqin-People Guangchang Taiyuan-Wuyi Guangchang Nanchang-Bayi Guangchang Shenyang-Civic Guangchang Chengdu-Tianfu Guangchang Jiangyin-Civic Guangchang
780 200 500 600 300 250 160 185 570 350
× × × × × × × × × ×
230 900 800 300 150 180 285 322 380 120
Source: Figures are taken from Wang, Yan (2002). Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore.
alike. Suzhou has its Guanqian jie; Shanghai its Nanjing donglu; Wuhan its Jianghan lu; and Beijing its Wang Fujing (Figure 5.11). The list goes on. These are usually converted from already vibrant shopping streets and need comparatively little effort to bring about. More are continuously being added to the list. Increasing levels of disposable income, the profusion of consumer goods of every conceivable kind, the pervasive commercialization and consumption have led once again, as was the case earlier in the Song period, to the rebirth of the popular pedestrian mall. On the other hand, the building of large-scale guangchang or public square takes much more political will, resolve and financial muscle since it is usually created by clearing an extensive area of all buildings. Of course, having squares in Chinese cities is not new. During imperial times, forecourts before temples served as squares for religious, social and economic activities to a certain extent. Usually defined by the temple gate, a screen wall and a pair of pailou, such squares were relatively small, taking up anything from a tenth to half a hectare of land.9 Much larger were the imperial squares before the palace and imperial cities such as that in Tang Chang’an, Song Kaifeng, Jin Zhongdu or finally the Qianbu Lang in front of Beijing’s Forbidden City (Wu 1988). The imperial square in Kaifeng measured some 200 meters by 300 meters or 6 hectares of land. Even in the 1950s, many provincial capital cities had planned and built civic guangchang at their city centers. Notable examples are Beijing’s Tiananmen Square (Figure 5.12) as well as the People’s Squares in Shanghai, Chongqing, Chengdu and Nanchang, which were used mainly for assembly and parade. They did not serve the same functions as their western counterparts. Beijing’s Tiananmen Square, at 40 hectares, was the nation’s showcase to the world, especially during national day parades and ceremonies.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 97
Chinese public space 97
Figure 5.11 Night scene of Beijing’s Wangfujin pedestrian mall.
Figure 5.12 Tian’an men guangchang in Beijing.
However, the situation has changed, especially in the last decade after the lead taken by Shanghai. In 1994, Shanghai redesigned its People’s Square. This was followed shortly by many other provincial cities and their city center guangchang : People’s Square in Chongqing, Tianfu Square in Chengdu,
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 98
98
Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Table 5.3 Civic/citizen guangchangs in provincial capital cities Name
Size (ha)
Beijing-Tiananmen Guangchang Shanghai-People Guangchang Chongqing-People Guangchang Shenyang-Civic Guangchang Jinan-Spring City Guangchang Zhengzhou-Green City Guangchang Taiyuan-Wuyi Guangchang Nanchang-Bayi Guangchang Nanking-Shangxi Road Guangchang Fuzhou-1st May Guangchang Wuhan-Hongshan Guangchang Chengdu-Tianfu Guangchang
44 13 4 6.14 16.7 11 6.3 4.6 9 7~8 10.8 20
Source: Figures are taken from Wang, Yan (2002). Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore.
Dragon City Square in Shenzhen, Green City Square in Zhengzhou, Spring City Square in Jinan and Bell and Drum Tower Square in Xi’an. Usually located in front of the government center, the city center guangchang plays a significant symbolic role, much like a provincial version of Tian’an men Square in Beijing. Even the formal and typically axial symmetrical disposition suggests its importance. This new city center square is not the human-scale public square that we are accustomed to seeing in the West. In fact the term “square,” or guangchang, is a poor description of the new form of public space that is created in these cities. Combining softscape and hardscape – turf, trees, fountains, monumental sculptures and extensive paved surfaces – these very large open spaces are a hybrid of park and square, sometimes more of one than the other. A comparison with Venice’s iconic St Mark’s Square will provide an idea of the extent of these guangchang. Chongqing’s People’s Square, at 4.5 hectares, is about three times the size of St Mark’s Square, while Shanghai’s People’s Square and Jinan’s Spring City Square both at around 18 hectares are more than 12 times its size and Chengdu’s Tianfu Square, at 21.7 hectares, is almost 14.5 times the size of the Venetian square (Wang 2002). For reasons ranging from urban renewal and instilling a new urban order to creating a symbol of economic health and administrative achievement, the fever of building guangchang also spread rapidly to non-provincial capital cities (Yu 2001). City officials had also hoped that an improved urban image could help the city compete more favorably for foreign investments. One after another, medium and small cities built their city center guangchang. Shangdong’s Dezhou has its Central Square; Liaoning’s Dalian, its Xinhai Square (Figure 5.13); Jiangsu’s Jiangyin, its Civic Square;
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 99
Chinese public space 99
Figure 5.13 Xinhai guangchang in Dalian.
Guangxi’s Fangchenggang, its Peach Bay Square – just to name a few. In most cases however, these squares are smaller in size, concomitant with the hierarchy of the cities concerned (Wang 2002). Detractors of such immense expanse of paved and turfed surfaces criticize the agenda behind such creations, the cost of maintaining the lawn, the environmentally unsound nature of such enterprises, the lack of use of these spaces of superhuman scale with little or no shade and see these as shortcuts to providing the requisite per capita open/green space. Sympathizers, on the other hand, counter that regardless of the impetus for the creation of these large-scale urban open spaces or their sizes, they provide the city with veritable public spaces open round the clock for all city dwellers. In the morning, they are ideal places for fitness exercise and taiji. In the day, they become city showrooms for performances, exhibitions, commercial activities and promotions organized by the government, social organizations and corporations. Kites are often flown here in the evenings; at night they become popular outdoor dance halls. This trend of building guangchang has not abated in any way. New plans of cities include them as a matter of fact and entries for urban design competitions continue to feature them prominently. In Beijing, ten projects of guangchang and green areas commenced in 2001; Shanghai has plans to rebuild its People’s Square; Nanjing will be enlarging its Drum Tower Square from 3.3 to 45.4 hectares; and Wuxi has embarked on the construction of a 60 hectare guangchang next to Tai Lake (Wang 2002).
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 100
100 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Table 5.4 Civic/citizen guangchang in non-provincial capital cities Name Satellite city
Size (ha) Shanghai-Songjiang New City-Civic Guangchang Shengzhen-Shajin town-Civic Guangchang Shengzheng-Longgang District-Dragon City Guangchang
7 6 15
Jiangsu Province
Jiangying-Civic Guangchang
4.2
Jiangxi Province
Nanking-Civic Guangchang Yichang-Wuyi Guangchang
5.3 4.85
Guangdong Province
Huiyang-Civic Guangchang Sihui Xiamen-Egret Continent Guangchang Taizhou-Civic Guangchang
13 23 10 22.84
Guangxi Province
Fang Chenggang City Guangchang
16.8
Source: Figures are taken from Wang, Yan (2002). Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore.
Table 5.5 Guangchang at district level Name Jinan
Dalian
Nanking
Shengyan
Size (ha) Spring City Guangchang (guangchang at municipal level) Hero Hill Guangchang Li Xia Guangchang Pagoda Tree Umbrage Guangchang Rosy Clouds Guangchang Hong Lou Guangchang
16.7
People Guangchang (guangchang at municipal level) Xinhai Guangchang Zhongshan Guangchang Olympic Guangchang
12.5
Shangxi Road Guangchang (guangchang at municipal level) Confucius Temple Guangchang Chaotian Gong Guangchang Hangzhong Gate Guangchang Drum Tower Guangchang
9
Civic Guangchang Exhibition Hall Guangchang Station Guangchang
6.14 2.9 2.45
5.3 2.1 3.2 2.73 2.24
4.5 2.2 2.3
0.5 1.2 2.2 3.3
Source: Figures are taken from Wang, Yan (2002). Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 101
Chinese public space 101 Indeed, with rapid economic development, new socio-cultural outlook, better education and exposure of decision-makers, planning/design professionals and citizens to international practices, the range and variety of public spaces will no doubt expand, and so will the use and practice of these spaces by its citizens be increasingly varied. However, be it in China or other societies, now or in history, the ruling agencies have always attempted to manage the creation of public spaces and to regulate their use (Boski 2002; Ooi 2003). Whether it is the outright display of symbols of government and the presence of police officers in Beijing’s Tiananmen Square or the more subtle surveillance by ubiquitous close circuit cameras in London, New York or Washington,10 the object is to dominate the space and regulate behavior within it (Kostof 1992). In the end, the presence and control of significant urban public space in China has invariably been linked to the will of the prevailing regime. The potential of such a space to be subverted by certain groups and to be charged with meanings other than those intended or tolerated made it the object of careful surveillance throughout Chinese history and the lessons of Tiananmen Square will not be easily forgotten.11
Notes 1 Meng Yuanlao, Dongjing menghua lu [Record of a Dream of Splendor in the Eastern Capital], preface dated 1147, henceforth abbreviated as DJMHL (Beijing: Commercial Press, 1982, p. 15). In this edition, DJMHL is bound with four other works henceforth abbreviated as W4. This translation is based largely on that of the passage found in Wilt Idema and Stephen West’s, Chinese Theater 1100–1450: A Source Book (Wiesbaden: Franz Steiner Verlag GMBH, 1982, pp. 14–5). The Taoist temple – Temple of Precious Scriptures – was built in 1115 by Emperor Huizong who was a devout Taoist. The meaning of helou is obscure. 2 The overlap in dates for the “walled city” and “open city” periods are not explained in the article. If this is a suggestion that both kinds of cities existed at the same time from 618 to 906, the overlap should be much smaller, at most during the late Tang period; in any case, after the 750s. Furthermore, “closed city” is a more appropriate term than “walled city” as even during the “open city” period, cities were still walled. In this article, I hence used the term “closed city,” which is more suggestive of administrative system than the physical attributes of walls (see Heng 1999). 3 During the middle of the Tang period 742–56, there were 1573 such counties with populations ranging from a few thousand to even 50,000 or more. During the same period, there were 331 prefectural seats. 4 See Deng Zhicheng, Dongjing menghualu zhu [Record of a Dream of Splendor in the Eastern Capital Annotated] (Beijing: Commercial Press, 1959, p. 67). The translation is rendered by Soper in “Hsiang-kuo-ssu, an Imperial Temple of Northern Sung” in Journal of the American Oriental Society, vol. 68, no. 1 ( Jan–Mar 1948) p. 26, with slight modifications here. See also Xu Yinong, 2000, in which he discussed the courtyard of renowned Taoist temple Xuanmiao Guan as an urban public space. 5 See Spiro Kostof, The City Assembled: The Elements of Urban Form Through History, London: Thames and Hudson Ltd., 1992, p. 124, in which he discusses the life and control of the public in public places.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 102
102 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia 6 Dagong Bao, 1903/04/02. 7 Guomin Gongbao, April 2–10, 1924. 8 J.W. Konvitz, Urban Millennium, Carbondale, 1985, p. 30 quoted in Kostof, 1992, p. 125. 9 Pailou is a ceremonial/commemorative gateway. Tianjin’s Tianhua Temple Square took up about 0.13 ha, Anhui’s Jiuhuashan Huachen Temple Square about 0.26 ha and Nanjing’s Confucius Temple Square around 0.5 ha (See Wang Yan 2002). 10 There are more than one million close circuit TV cameras in operation in London, one for every 60 citizens with the average Londoner caught on film about 300 times a day. Times Square in New York has as many as 200 surveillance cameras “observing every move you make” See http://www.cbsnews.com/ stories/2002/04/19/sunday/main506739.shtml 11 What began as a mild parade in April 1989 developed through the month of May into a massive rally for democracy by students gathered in Tiananmen Square. They were supported by Beijing residents, workers and farmers, thus further threatening China’s power structure. A bloody suppression took place on June 4 with the help of tanks and armored vehicles, ending the students’ occupation of the foremost public space in China and reclaiming for the establishment an important symbol of the state.
References Boski, J. (2002) “Responses by State Actors to Insurgent Civic Spaces since the WTO Meetings at Seattle”, International Development Review, 24(4): 363–82. Dong, M.Y. (2000) “Defining Beiping – Urban Reconstruction and National Identity, 1928–1936”, in J.W. Esherick (ed.) Remaking the Chinese City: Modernity and National Identity, 1900–1950, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Dong, Y. (1999) “Juggling Bits: Tianqiao as Republican Beijing’s Recycling Center”, Modern China, 25(3): 303–42. Gernet, J. (1962) Daily Life in China on the Eve of the Mongol Invasion, 1250–1276, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Gernet, J. (1982) A History of Chinese Civilization, trans. by J.R. Foster, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. He, Y.J. (1996) The Planning History of Ancient Chinese Cities, Beijing: Zhongguo Jianzhu Gongye Chubanshe, [Shanghai Construction Press]. Heng, C.K. (1994) “Kaifeng and Yangzhou: the Birth of the Commercial Street”, in Z. Çelik, D. Favro and R. Ingersoll, Streets: Critical Perspectives on Public Space, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Heng, C.K. (1996) “A Contest of Wills in the T’ang Market”, Journal of Southeast Asian Architecture, 1: 92–104. Heng, C.K. (1999) Cities of Aristocrats and Bureaucrats: The Development of Medieval Chinese Cityscapes, Singapore: Singapore University Press. Johnson, L.C. (1995) Shanghai: from Market Town to Treaty Port, 1074–1858, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Kostof, S. (1992) The City Assembled: The Elements of Urban Form Through History, London: Thames and Hudson. Li, D.H. (2001) Urban Planning Theory, Shanghai Jianzhu Gongye Chubanshe, [Shanghai Construction Press]. Liu, H.Y. (1997) “Foreign Concessions and the Transformation of Tianjin’s Urban Space”, Chengshi Yanjiushi [Urban History Research], 13–14: 109–23.
9780415397896_4_005.qxd 07/09/2007 09:06 Page 103
Chinese public space 103 Lu, W. (1996) Shijing wenhua [The Culture of Markets], Shenyang: Liaoning Educational Press. Peterson, C.A. (1973) “Hsien-Tsung and the Provinces”, in A. Wright and D. Twitchett (eds.) Perspectives on the T’ang, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Quan, H.S. (1934) “Zhongguo miaoshi zhishi de kaocha” [Study of the History of Temple Markets], in Sihuo, 1(2): 28–33. Shi, M.Z. (1998) “From Imperial Gardens to Public Parks: the Transformation of Urban Space in Early 20th Century Beijing”, Modern China, 24(3): 219–54. Stapleton, K. (2000) “Yang Sen in Chengdu: Urban Planning in the Interior”, in J.W. Esherick (ed.) Remaking the Chinese City: Modernity and National Identity, 1900–1950, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Twitchett, D. (1956) “Monastic Estates in T’ang China”, Asia Major, 5(2): 123–46. Twitchett, D. (1961) Land Tenure and the Social Order in T’ang and Sung China, London: School of Oriental and African Studies. Twitchett, D. (1966) “Chinese Social History from the 7th to the 10th Century: the Tunhuang Documents and their Implications”, Past and Present, 35: 28–53. Wang, D. (1998) “Street Culture: Public Space and Urban Commoners in LateQing Chengdu”, Modern China, 24(1): 34–72. —— (1999) Street Culture: Public Space, Urban Commoners, and Local Politics in Chengdu, 1875–1928, Thesis (Ph.D.), Johns Hopkins University. Wang, K., Xia, J. and Yang, X.H. (1999) City Square Design, Nanjing: Southeast University Press. Wang, Y. (2002) Design Rationale of Guangchang in Contemporary Chinese Cities, MA(UD) Dissertation, The National University of Singapore. Wright, A. and Twitchett, D. (1973) Perspectives on the Tang, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Wu, J. (1993) “The Historical Development of Chinese Urban Morphology”, Planning Perspective, 8: 20–52. Wu, L.Y. (1988) Selected Essays on Urban Planning and Design, Beijing: Yanshan Press. Xu, Y.N. (2000) The Chinese City in Space and Time, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Yan, Z., Zhang, J.M. and Cui, D.X. (2001) “Control on the Size and Land Use Structure of Guangchang”, Chengshi Guihua Huikan [Collected Papers on Urban Planning], 134: 25–9, April 2001. Yang, K.F. (2002) “From ‘Danwei’ Society to New Community Building: Opportunities and Challenges for Citizen Participation in Chinese Cities”, Chinese Public Administration Review, 1(1): 65–82. Yu, K.J. (2001) “Be Cautious to the ‘City Beautiful Movement’ in Contemporary Chinese Cities”, Zhongguo Jianshe Bao [China Construction Newspaper], 16 April 2001. Zhang, J. and Huo, X.W. (2002) “Human Scale in the Planning and Design of Ancient Beijing”, World Architecture, 2: 66–71.
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 104
6
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times A case study of globalizing Kuala Lumpur1 Morshidi Sirat and Atikullah Hj. Abdullah
In this global era, and within the context of the “centrality of cities” (Sassen 1994), one would expect that modern cities and their civic spaces would be the seedbed for the development of a civil society, which would in the medium to longer term contribute to the goals and objectives of sustainable communities. Historically, religious institutions, in particular mosques, have played an important role in societal development. Arguably, societal development has led to the emergence of some rudimentary form of a “civil society” within the context of the Islamic nation entity. It is important to note that, the idea of a progressive civil society that is ethnically and culturally integrated has already been embedded in an Islamic ethical framework, which is increasingly marginalized for political expediency, among other reasons (see Derichs 2001: 6). In the contemporary context, however, Friedmann (1998 cited in Douglass 2003: 3) notes that “most of the daily engagement through associations are indicative of civil society for itself, i.e. people engaging with each other for social, cultural, religious or other voluntary association away from state or corporate economy institutions.” It can be said, therefore, civil society normally carries out activities within the confinement of civic spaces. In the present context, “civic spaces” are defined as “socially inclusive spaces in which people of different origins and walks of life can mingle without overt control by government, commercial or other private interests, or de facto dominance by one group over another” (Douglass 2003; Douglass, Ho and Ooi 2002). While it is acknowledged that “not all civil society spaces are civic spaces,” based on the abovementioned definition, this chapter will proceed to hypothesize that, in the specific case of the city of Kuala Lumpur, mosques are indeed important civic spaces for its citizens. Moving on from the above hypothesis, this chapter is an attempt to explicate to what extent mosques are civic spaces in the context of the development of a civil society in the increasingly globalized city of Kuala Lumpur. In this connection, this chapter will seek to answer several questions pertaining to the above objective. First, is it appropriate to consider mosques as civic spaces in the context of current thought and conceptualization on civic spaces and city development? Second, in terms of the historical development of mosques, what
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 105
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
105
are the specificities or singularities that justify their position as civic spaces in the context of city development? Third, to what extent are the establishment of mosques as civic spaces and subsequent role inextricably related to the changing socio-economic and political characteristics of city inhabitants? Fourth, what is the future of mosques as civic spaces in Malaysia’s major cities?
Civil society and civic space Hefney (1998) has noted the importance of pluralism and democracy in the emergence of civil society in his literature. Yamamoto (1995), for instance, has alluded to the characteristics of a civil society in the Asia Pacific community. In the field of urban planning, the emergence of civil society in cities would enable cities to function better as a place to live in and exist (see Douglass and Friedmann 1998). Echoing the views of other writers on civil society, Hefney considers this “civic space,” or “associational sphere,” as “the place where citizens learn habits of free assembly, dialogue, and social initiatives.” Admittedly, in the above context, the concept of civil society “evokes images of freedom to speak and associate without fear.” More importantly, the concept “conjures up images of a public life in which the words and actions of ordinary citizens would be duly acknowledged by the state.” Hefney concludes, “if managed properly, civil society can also help to bring about the delicate balance of private interests and public concern vital for a vibrant democracy.” It is argued, therefore that civic spaces are necessary for the proper functioning of the community within the context of a burgeoning civil society as noted above (see Goodsell 1988; Kearne 1998; Hedman 2001). Project for Public Spaces (2002) notes that “civic spaces are an extension of the community; when they work well, they serve as a stage for our public lives.” Indeed, it is conceived that these spaces would act as settings where celebrations are held, where exchanges both social and economic take place, where friends run into each other, and where cultures mix. Following the same vein of thought from Project for Public Spaces (2002), and in the context of city development, civic spaces could be regarded as anchors for downtowns and communities, acting as focal points for definition and foundations for healthy growth. Civic spaces are therefore important assets, providing opportunity for people to relax and enjoy themselves, giving a new meaning to greater community livability. In other words, these spaces are important to communities, which ultimately make up cities. From the above discussion, there are several viewpoints as far as civil society and civic space are concerned. In the context of this chapter, there are “a number of defining characteristics of civic spaces” (Douglass 2003: 4) and it is therefore important at the outset to define civil society and civic spaces. Following Douglass (2003), “civil society exists mostly for
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 106
106 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia itself ” with people engaging with each other for social, cultural, religious or other voluntary association in “spaces away from overt involvement in the public sphere, state or economic control.” Based on the above definition, it appears that religious institutions in general may not be accepted as civic spaces. However, our assertion is that, on closer examination, there are specific cases and instances whereby religious institutions (such as mosques) could be considered as civic spaces, for they exhibit some of the defining characteristics of such spaces as outlined by Douglass (2003).
Civic space, religious institutions and the city: setting the context In the context of civil society – civic spaces – city development nexus noted above, it is argued here that the role of religious institutions must be seen in the right perspective. Many of the arguments for considering religious institutions as important civic spaces in cities are provided by Ramsay (2000) and, to some extent, the many writings of Alexis de Tocqueville, which formed the thrust of this chapter. According to Ramsay, religious institutions are the most vital and enduring of all institutions engaged in civic activities and community organization. Arguably, in many cities of the western world, and particularly in the American context, faith-based community organizing and development provide contemporary examples of faith-inspired political action in cities. Alexis de Tocqueville notes that, in the United States of America “religions established a common base of morality, which prevented majoritarian rule from descending into tyranny and served as an independent voice of authority interposed between the individual and the state.” More recently, the depth of this argument has been furthered by western intellectuals and scholars, for whom the preservation of freedom depends on the strongly-felt presence of an autonomous religious institution that will not allow itself to be used or co-opted for political purposes (Ramsay 2000). However, the above observations, with respect to the role of religious institutions in providing civic spaces for activities in the city need an empirical boost for basic information about faith-based activities in cities is grossly lacking, making it difficult to perceive the sector or gauge its scope or role accurately in city development (Ramsay 2000). Ramsay’s observation is particularly true of the role of mosques in Malaysia, where conjectures have overtaken reality. Once again, Ramsay (2000) provides most of the logical underpinning and reasoning for considering religious institutions as important civic spaces in cities. Ramsay argues for a guiding paradigm, which can be briefly interpreted as follows: “Human life before God is not the life of isolated, utilitarian individualists but life in community.” Arguably, Ramsay’s city development process within the context of a religious perspective is
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 107
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
107
clearly critical of the secular culture’s “issue-related approach to urban life in which particular problems are typically related to particular groups or neighborhoods and may not be viewed as problems of the city as such.” Ramsay considers single-issue agendas, which is inherent in issue-related approach, as harmful to city development effort. This is so because issues such as violence, urban economics, unemployment, and drug addiction are interrelated and quick fixes are inappropriate. In this situation, a faithful presence and long-term commitments are needed, which, in today’s development vocabulary, is referred to as “sustainable approach.” In the context of Western society, the church usually “improvises metropolitan and ecumenical forms, directly opposing the centrifugal forces associated with economic restructuring” (Ramsay 2000). Cisneros (1996) has provided similar arguments regarding the important role of religious institutions in community building and development at the level of the city. Shipps (not dated) has alluded to the idea that chapels, churches, synagogues, mosques and temples are religion’s most visible physical manifestations of their influence in the city. Admittedly, as Shipps (not dated) noted, the amount and kind of strength these institutions have also decides how much real (or potential) political, economic, and cultural influence is (or may be) wielded by both secular and clerical leaders, of the various religious communities in a city. The preceding discussion has presented in general terms how one could conceptualize religious institutions as important civic spaces in the context of city development. The following discussion will examine in detail the arguments for considering mosques as a critical element in societal development, acting as a type of civic space for organizing community activities at the level of the city. More importantly, Derichs (2001: 4) observes that “about the only place where a fruitful, pluralist political debate can take place are the mosques . . . For those who want to discuss and want to be informed but do not have access to non-mainstream media, let alone the Internet, the mosque is the place to go.”
Mosques – a type of civic space? Historically, the mosque was never meant to be simply a place of worship (for prayers could be performed anywhere) with little or no participation by Muslims (or indeed non Muslims) in it beyond that (Abdul Malik Mujahid 2003; Talha 2001, Al-Faruki and Al-Faruki 1996). In view of its multifunctions and roles, historically, the architectural design of mosques would normally include a main prayer hall and a courtyard. While the prayer hall was meant for the conduct of prayers among the believers, the courtyard that adjoins the mosque was clearly a communal civic space, where civic activities were normally conducted and attended by all sectors of the local community. There is no overt restriction to other sectors of the population in terms of participation.
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 108
108 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Traditionally, mosques were the venues of political debates (where the public and the rulers were of equal standing and there were opportunities to express views freely), of autonomous learning institutions, and of institutions that collect and distribute donations (Darsh 1996). Debates and other community-wide activities were normally inclusive in nature and conducted in the courtyards. Thus, from a historical perspective, mosques played a very important role in community organization and development – it was an important institution that united local communities through its programs and activities. In other words, this religious institution was the locus of the community. Comparing the present situation with that of the past, Abdul Malik Mujahid (2003) notes that there was a dynamism and activity that is absent from many of the mosques of the Muslim world today. Realizing the importance of this institution in community organizing and development, the first International Islamic Conference held in Mecca in 1975 was of the opinion that steps must be taken to revive the multifunctional role mosques used to play. This conference recommended that, among other things, mosques must be the center of social life. In spatial planning terms, it meant that mosques should be built in the heart of the city or the community. Apart from being a prayer center, it is also recommended that mosques should be planned with a view to serving the surrounding community. As such, mosques located within a community should have a library, reading room, lecture hall, social function hall, a playing ground, a small clinic for emergency treatment, accommodation facilities for guests and so on. Many emergent Muslim countries have welcomed these recommendations and grand mosques were built in the heart of their modern cities and residential suburbs. For a while mosques functioned not only as prayer centers but were planned with ample space for gatherings and meetings. Muslims and non-Muslims congregated to discuss and debate issues of concern within the surroundings of mosques (or courtyards), giving hope to the rise of civil society in many emergent Muslim societies. However, mosque architecture and design in the Muslim world today have made the spaces thus created more of an exclusive rather than an inclusive civic space, thus deviating from the very spirit of mosque architecture. In Malaysia, for instance, there are five main factors which govern the architectural styles of mosques, namely: ethnic culture, climatic conditions, colonialism, technology utilization and the political environment (Ghafar 1999: 6). It is interesting to note that the political environment is also regarded as an important influencing factor. Evidently, in times of turbulent political environment, spaces within new mosques are designed in such a way as to prevent these spaces from being taken over by large gatherings. It is noteworthy that, in the context of the emergence of a “civil society,” governmental scrutiny and surveillance of mosques was first recorded during the Abbasid era, whereby the all encompassing function of the mosque was severely curtailed. Restrictions were imposed upon the office of the imam, depriving him of community leadership and reducing his
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 109
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
109
influence to just that of a man that led in prayer. Since then, we have seen the gradual erosion of the influence of mosques but the enduring existence of mosques as civic spaces, where issues pertaining to politics and socioeconomy are still being debated. From the above, it is important to realize that the role and functions of mosques have changed significantly since the Abbasid era. In modern times, a majority of mosques have been designed without a courtyard; as such, it can be assumed that without such an element, a mosque could not possibly provide communal civic space for the local community. It follows that the absence of such an important element in mosque design plus other controls and restrictions made it almost impossible for it to function as an inclusive space (Douglass 2003). Generally, therefore, mosques could not be regarded as a type of civic space, according to the defining characteristics noted earlier on in this chapter. However, interestingly a cursory glance at the situation in Malaysia, in particular the city of Kuala Lumpur, indicates that even in the absence of a formal courtyard, there are indications of the existence of a type of “civic space” in religious institutions such as mosques. Furthermore, lately it was felt that modern mosques should be designed to enable its function as civic spaces (Mohamad Tajuddin 1998). This chapter will proceed to look at this space to ascertain its nature and subsequently determine whether it qualifies as a type of civic space, according to our conceptualization.
Civil society and civic space in Malaysia: an overview In view of the multi-ethnic society in Malaysia, Anwar Ibrahim, during his term as Deputy Prime Minister, introduced a model of civil society (masyarakat madani), which was fully devoted to the acceptance of the diversity of religious traditions (Derichs 2001: 6). Derichs further elaborates that: The core arguments of Anwar’s vision of the masyarakat madani are embedded in a secularist and democratic framework that will provide for a responsible and accountable civil society – a civil society that is also responsive to the state’s agenda. (Derichs 2001:6) More recently, however, “civil society” was conceived and articulated in the context of national development aspirations. It is argued that the growth of a civil society is the social and political basis for attaining Malaysia’s goal of becoming a “developed country” by the year 2020 (Abdullah et al. 1996: 6). Dr Mahathir (1991) has outlined nine challenges that need to be met if Malaysia were to become a “developed country” by the year 2020, and according to Abdullah et al. (1996: 6) seven of these pertain to the development of a civil society.2 The seven challenges that could underpin such a society are as follows:
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 110
110 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia • • • • • • •
National integration and the development of a “Bangsa Malaysia,” or “Malaysian nation” Creating a psychologically liberated and secure Malaysian society Developing a mature and democratic society based on communitarian democracy Establishing a matured, liberal and tolerant society Establishing a caring society and caring culture Ensuring an economically just society Establishing a moral and ethical society
Until now, scant attention has been paid to the challenges noted above, which relate to the creation of a civil society in Malaysia (Abdullah et al. 1996: 6) and the role of civic spaces through which the above could be realized. While it would be a great challenge to translate all of the above seven ingredients for a civil society in this turbulent period it would be a great achievement indeed if Malaysian cities such as Kuala Lumpur (and their civic spaces) emerged as the seedbed for the development of a civil society. In the context of the civil society movement in Malaysia, civic space would be interpreted as “a setting in which people can meet for public talk and actively contribute to solving public problems.” In Malaysia, the city of Kuala Lumpur is a good candidate to explore the theme of “civic spaces in a globalizing city” within the context of a turbulent period and the increasing multi-ethnic nature of its population.
Mosques in Kuala Lumpur as civic space: methodological aspects The research reported in this chapter has tackled the abovementioned questions through empirical investigation of four sub-areas within the city of Kuala Lumpur – the city center (mixed uses for commercial, business and residential), high-income residential suburb, middle-income housing area, and low-income high-rise flats. The identification and delimitations of these sub-areas as either high income or low income were made based on proxy data and information such as housing types and cost. The book, Kuala Lumpur Structure Plan 2020 – A World Class City, provided good indications of housing types and cost in the city, which could be translated as indicators of income levels. It is not possible to delimitate areas within the city or any other city in Malaysia based on income data, for that matter, as this data is not available. The primary foci are the local communities (Muslims and nonMuslims), the mosques’ committees and key officers of relevant regulatory agencies. Data was gathered through loosely structured in-depth interviews with key informants among mosques’ officials and key officers of government departments such as the Department of Islamic Development of the Prime Minister’s Department. Other important sources of data were
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 111
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
111
newspaper articles and interviews with civil societies in Kuala Lumpur. Qualitative data analysis was subsequently undertaken to address the pertinent questions of the civic space–city development theme, primarily to ascertain whether mosques in Kuala Lumpur could be considered as a type of civic space. At the outset, it is important to contextualize the discussion with respondents around developmental issues and from which we need to determine whether discussions and debates that were conducted within the mosque compound (but outside the main prayer hall) were “exclusive” or “inclusive” in nature. Based on their responses we could then determine to what extent mosques under investigation meet our defining characteristics of what a civic space is.
Spatial Distribution of Mosques in Kuala Lumpur At the end of 2002 there were no less than 43 mosques in Kuala Lumpur and by 2006, that is, the end of the Eight Malaysia Plan period, there would be 62 mosques in the city. Although there are mosques in all the strategic zones in Kuala Lumpur as defined by the Kuala Lumpur plan, these are not evenly distributed according to population distribution (City Hall of Kuala Lumpur 2005). For instance, middle- to high-income zones such as Wangsa Maju-Maluri, City Center and Bukit Jalil-Seputeh have the highest number of mosques. Sentul-Menjalara zone, which is a high-income zone with substantial low-income households, comes second; followed by Bandar Tun Razak-Sg. Besi, which is mainly a low- to middle-income area with substantial high-income households, comes third; Damansara-Penchala, which is a high-income zone, comes last (see Figure 6.1).
Mosques in Kuala Lumpur – a type of civic space? Based on the evidence collected from both primary and secondary sources it appears that the majority of mosques under investigation do not qualify to be considered as civic spaces, according to our definition. Like many other religious institutions, they form “exclusive spaces,” or rather, “sacred spaces.” Furthermore, there is limited opportunity to engage in political discourse or action in these spaces. Even if there are opportunities for such engagement, these would normally be conducted among specific groups only; the exception being two important mosques located in the city center: the National Mosque (Figure 6.2) with ample spaces (both planned and unplanned) for informal discussion and debate within its compound, and the Kampung Baru Mosque at the fringe of the business and entertainment enclave of Kuala Lumpur (known popularly as the Golden Triangle Area). Based on information provided by interviewees, the “civic space” for the purpose of political discourse and debate in the Kampung Baru Mosque normally spills over to the footpath and adjacent hawker stalls (gerai ) (Figure 6.3).
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 112
112 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 6.1 Spatial distribution of mosques in Kuala Lumpur.
The National Mosque was built as a symbol of unity, and ethnic and religious tolerance in Malaysia (Malaysia, not dated); the Kampung Baru Mosque, on the other hand, was a typical mosque in a primarily Malay “urban village.” While the National Mosque was consciously built with the aim of
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 113
Figure 6.2 The National Mosque: the most preferred site for popular protests and demonstration in Kuala Lumpur.
Figure 6.3 The Kampung Baru Mosque: discussions and debates normally spill over to nearby food stalls.
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 114
114 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia “bridging” the various ethnic and religious communities (and as a tourist attraction), the latter was not. The Kampung Baru Mosque, however, is a good example of how a mosque in a predominantly Malay-Muslim community was generally seen as an arena to publicize issues pertaining to other non-Muslim communities too (and these are mainly political in nature). The “bridging” role of this mosque comes naturally then. In fact, a common thread between these two mosques is the fact that those interviewed emphasized the “bridging” role of their respective mosques cutting across socio-economic divides. It is primarily because of this, that protestors and demonstrators in the city tend to choose the National Mosque and the Kampung Baru Mosque as their centers of political action. To protestors and demonstrators, these spaces symbolized solidarity and multi-ethnic co-operation; they would normally command maximum coverage from the print and electronic media. In the preceding discussion, the importance of these two civic spaces will become evident through a discussion on political protests and demonstrations in Kuala Lumpur in the late 1970s and late 1990s. It also demonstrates the difficulty of late of separating political spaces from civic spaces in the city of Kuala Lumpur.
Turbulent times in Kuala Lumpur In September 1998, the multi-ethnic but Malay-Muslim dominated Reformasi (reformation) movement was unleashed after the deputy prime minister’s ouster (Asia Times Online Co. Ltd. 2002). It joined forces with civil society groups in calling for a broad range of democratic reforms (Asia Times Online Co. Ltd. 2002). The Reformasi movement and other civil society groups held assemblies and demonstrations at various strategic places in Kuala Lumpur, particularly at the National Mosque compound. In October 1998, the Kampung Baru Mosque was chosen as the site for several multi-ethnic demonstrations led by the reformation movement. These demonstrations were multi-ethnic and multi-religious in nature, which prompted the Malaysian Islamic Development Department’s directorgeneral to issue a statement in the New Straits Times that “it was wrong for a non-Muslim to make speeches at a mosque as this would cause misunderstanding” (21 September 1999). Another article in the same paper reported that Muslim religious leaders “warned the people not to use the mosque for political purposes and said that the presence of non-Muslims during a demonstration at the National Mosque had affected the sanctity of the place of worship” (21 September 1999). On 12 August 2000 the New Straits Times reported that 300 people, believed to be supporters of Datuk Seri Anwar Ibrahim, held an illegal gathering at the compound of the National Mosque to condemn the High Court’s guilty verdict in the former deputy prime minister’s sodomy case. The above-mentioned events were not the first time mosque compounds were transformed into some semblance of “insurgent spaces” in the city of
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 115
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
115
Kuala Lumpur. Demonstrations held by university students at the National Mosque compound in the mid-1970s were recorded as important events in the radical student movement in Malaysia. However, since 1998, the government has gravely regarded the fact that civil society groups were using mosques and its compounds as spaces for voicing anti-government or anti-establishment speeches. Interestingly, civic conversation and debates in mosques were no longer tied to the immediate community or associated with a particular group only. Evidently, mosques in Kuala Lumpur, in particular those located in the lower to middle-income residential areas, drew congregants from outside of the neighborhood. Formal and informal meetings or gatherings were periodically held within the compounds of these mosques and such activities have attracted the government’s monitoring and surveillance machinery (ABC 2002). Incidents such as these have led Camilleri (2000: 400) to note that state controls had left civil society less room for maneuvering. The government has introduced various acts and measures that were “expressively designed to limit the space for communication within and among civil society organizations and the government’s approach was to limit consultative processes to NGOs which espoused acceptable attitudes and policies” (Camilleri 2000: 400). In response to continuous threats from institutions such as mosques “the government removed a number of imams from state mosques and attempted to co-opt others” who are more sympathetic to the government’s position (Camilleri 2000: 402). While the government had already put in place legislation to govern mosque administration before the late 1990s, there was little or no attempt made to enforce this legislation at the local level. In the late 1990s and particularly between 2000 and 2003, however, there was a dramatic shift in the government’s approach and this could be attributed to the Anwar Ibrahim case, and other events that have threatened internal political instability. Seen within the wider context of a much more turbulent time, the traditional role of mosques as civic spaces has indeed eroded to a great extent, particularly in cities such as Kuala Lumpur. At this juncture, it has to be noted that since Dato’ Seri Abdullah Ahmad Badawi took office as the fifth Prime Minister of Malaysia on 31 October 2003, reports of government surveillance of mosques and imams were infrequent. The open and transparent style of his current leadership may have contributed to the present situation. However, one may also assume that the previous government under Dr Mahathir Mohamad has successfully replaced anti-establishment and pro-opposition imams with non-partisan individuals such that most mosques are now being administered like government departments, creating fewer problems for the current leadership.
Crackdown on Mosques as civic spaces: some observations in Kuala Lumpur Traditionally, mosques were excellent sites for open and informal discussions on matters relating to community development, inevitably including
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 116
116 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia discussions and debates on government policy. This being so, arguably mosques are important civic spaces within the community. However, the likelihood of other mosques in the city being considered as civic spaces, as conceptualized by Douglass (2003) is very remote indeed. This is so, for a majority of mosques in Kuala Lumpur are severely restricted in terms of administration and design to effectively function as a type of inclusive civic space. Since the late 1950s, state enactments were introduced that laid out the terms and conditions for the appointments of mosque committee members and other matters pertaining to mosque administration.3 While every mosque has its elected official to oversee the daily operation of this institution, other members of the community were not normally prevented from using mosques as venues for conducting their civic activities. However, since 1987, the appointment of mosque officials was controlled by the state religious department, making it difficult for community members to engage in a meaningful associational life. Since the late 1990s, the administrative structure and procedural structure of mosques in Kuala Lumpur resemble that of any government department in the territory. Thus, mosques and their compounds have been transformed as spaces where the community could conduct civic activities and hold gatherings within the guidelines as laid out by the government. Open debates and discourses pertaining to government policy are strictly prohibited. Such prohibitions have gradually reduced civic activities and gatherings in mosques.4 Arguably, mosque congregants from outside the local community were greatly reduced. However, this does not mean that such activities have ceased – they merely moved to other locations outside the mosques and outside government surveillance. With respect to civic activities and community organization, mosques located in the high- and middle-income residential areas and under the management of committees comprising of people from the corporate sector and other professionals, continue to be active venues for civic activities. Evidently, these mosques continue to function as important “civic spaces” for the community and surprisingly surveillance activities are minimal and less visible. On the surface, there is a sense of openness to interfaith camaraderie, particularly in the high-income residential areas, which occasionally are translated into a common agenda and civic responsibility for the areas concerned. However, apparently the production and reproduction of practices of social cooperation, and problem solving according to Putnam (1993), was largely selective and exclusive in character. Nonetheless, mosques’ congregants in these areas are drawn from the local community and they talk as residents of the neighborhood. Arguably, the effectiveness of these groups as civic organizations (and using mosques as spaces for civic activities) lies in their ability to control both local and national political resources, their capability to cooperate, coordinate and form coalitions with other civic associations in dealing with the state. Evidently,
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 117
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
117
the establishment and subsequent role of mosques as a type of civic space (albeit in a very restricted manner) is inextricably related to the socioeconomic and political characteristics of city inhabitants. It is important to note that mosques could become socially inclusive spaces for the local community in the future if these positive elements are sustained in the medium to longer terms.
Discussion and conclusion Camilleri (2000) observes that the use of mosques as a platform for criticism of government policy was very common in the immediate past. Interestingly, though, this situation continues in the present day. For this reason, even though great mosques are being built in Malaysian cities, in particular Kuala Lumpur, these institutions are under great stress. In view of this, mosques cannot perform their multi-functional roles satisfactorily. While mosques were important spaces for community organizing activities in cities of the past, their role in this sphere in these turbulent times has severely been curtailed. However, it appears that such curtailment varies from mosque to mosque and according to location. While the same enactments or legislation pertaining to community organizing activities and associational life are applicable to all mosques, in Kuala Lumpur, mosques located in the higher-income residential areas are subject to lesser scrutiny and surveillance. While there is, at present, overt control of these important institutions by the government, it is important to note that, generally, there is nothing subversive in the nature of issues that are generally discussed in mosques in the high-income residential areas. Noraini (2001) has highlighted the fact that historically, Islamic civilizations have developed their own conceptions or understanding of religious tolerance, civility and civil society, which are obviously very different from the West. One can deduce that, under the independence of Muslim communities (umma) from the state, under the spiritual leadership of the ulema, the rule of law to protect personal life and property, religious and ethnic pluralism, consultative and consensus methods of decision-making are developed under strict Islamic tenets. These tenets are alien to the West’s conceptual and philosophical construction of what is civil society. In this sense, the Muslim umma has developed its brand of civil society. Admittedly, while it is not possible to evoke the grandeur past of Islamic civilization and civil society, there is always a future for mosques (as civic spaces) in modern and globalizing cities in Malaysia, as long as they operate within the guidelines set by the government. In other words, for mosques to function as important civic spaces in cities, this institution must show less leaning towards oppositional politics. Looking towards the future, the provision of civic spaces such as these should meet the needs of multi-cultural and multi-ethnic societies for vibrant associational life and shared civic culture. This is so because there is no legislation that prohibits non-Muslims to partake in civic activities
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 118
118 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia in the compound of a mosque. Arguably, restrictions and barriers are imaginary rather than real. In most instances, these are self-imposed. This chapter began with an assertion that in this global era, and within the context of the “centrality of cities,” one would expect that modern cities (and their civic spaces) would be the seedbed for the development of a civil society. This has indeed been reflected in the context of many cities in the developed world. In the context of the Muslim world, while historically mosques have played important roles in societal development, these roles have not automatically qualified them as important civic spaces for the citizens. Arguably, it is inappropriate to consider all mosques in Kuala Lumpur as civic spaces in the context of current thinking. Admittedly, mosques generally are indeed exclusive spaces for they are not open to a broad spectrum of civil society, with every person having the right of access and the right to initiate contact with each other. The case of the National Mosque and the Kampung Baru Mosque are unique in the sense that they have fulfilled the very definition of civic spaces, that is: civic spaces are “inclusive spaces.” Interestingly, of late, it appears that mosques as civic spaces are increasingly under great stress and under intense scrutiny, for these civic spaces are increasingly becoming “insurgent spaces” (Boski, this volume), which is notably a central essence of civic spaces as noted in current conceptualization. This unwarranted scrutiny and surveillance has undermined the emergence of a civil society based upon the institution of mosques. This chapter has unraveled, in the context of the globalizing city of Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia, the nature of the scrutiny and the related legal instruments for the purpose of surveillance and control. It has been shown that the role of the Kampung Baru Mosque as a type of civic space is inextricably related to the changing socio-economic and political development within the city and beyond. An emerging question from all of the above relates to a proposition that the preservation of freedom depends on the strongly felt presence of an autonomous religious institution that will not allow itself to be used or co-opted for political purposes, which is to be examined in the context of a globalizing city such as Kuala Lumpur.
Notes 1 The authors acknowledge the research grant provided by Universiti Sains Malaysia, Penang and the TODA Institute, which has resulted in this chapter. 2 Dr Mahathir Mohamad and his then heir apparent, Anwar Ibrahim, initiated the idea and public discussion of constructing a civil society through an Islamic modernity in the mid-1990s. See Noraini (2001). 3 For a detailed discussion of the various enactments and how these have affected mosques in Kuala Lumpur in terms of their ability to conduct open discourses on various topics ranging from community development to government policy, see Morshidi and Atikullah (2003), “Masyarakat madani dan ruang sivik dalam Kuala Lumpur yang semakin global: Memahami peranan dan kedudukan masjid dalam pembangunan bandar”, National Geography Conference, Society, Space
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 119
Mosques as a type of civic space in turbulent times
119
and Environment in a Globalised World: Prospects and Challenges, City Bayview Hotel, Penang, 29–30 April. 4 Derichs’s (2001) observation that “Censorship is hardly extendable into the mosques” was proven not true in Kuala Lumpur.
References ABC (2002) “Surveillance in Malaysia’s Mosques”, The Religion Report, 13 November. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Abdul Malik Mujahid (2003) “Rethinking the Masjid in America”. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 1 December 2005). Abdullah, J.S., Anuar, M.K. and Pillay, S.S. (1996) Caring Civil Society – Final Report, Intensification of Research in Priority Areas, Kuala Lumpur: Ministry of Science, Technology and Environment. Al-Faruki, I.R. and Al-Faruki, L.L. (1996) Cultural Atlas of Islam, New York: Macmillan. Asia Times Online Co., Ltd. (2002) “Malaysia’s lopsided policies”. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Camilleri, J.A. (2000) “States, Markets and Civil Society in Asia Pacific”, in The Political Economy of the Asia-Pacific Region, vol. I, Cheltenham and Northampton, MA: Edward Elgar. Cisneros, H.G. (1996) “Higher Ground: Faith Communities and Community Building”, Washington, DC: Department of Housing and Urban Development. City Hall of Kuala Lumpur (2005) “Structure Plan Kuala Lumpur 2020”, A World Class City, City Hall Kuala Lumpur: Kuala Lumpur. Darsh, S.M. (1996) “The Mosque as a Community Center”, in S.M. Darsh (ed.) The Role of Mosque in Islam, Saudi Arabia: Darussalam. de Tocqueville, A. (1996) Democracy in America, New York: Harper and Row. Derichs, C. (2001) “Politics and Islamization in Malaysia”. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 1 December 2005). Douglass, M. (2003) “Civil Society for Itself and in the Public Sphere: Comparative Research on Globalization, Cities and Civic Space in Pacific Asia”, IPS-NUS workshop on Globalization, Cities and Civic Spaces in the Asia Pacific, Institute of Policy Studies, Singapore, 11 August. Douglass, M. and Friedman, J. (eds.) (1998) Cities for Citizens: Planning and the Rise of Civil Society in a Global Age, New York: John Wiley. Douglass, M., Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Civic Spaces, Globalization and Pacific Asia Cities”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 345–61. Friedmann, J. (1998) Economic Space and Life Space: Essays in Third World Planning, New Brunswick, NJ: Transaction Books. Ghafar, A.A. (1999) “The Architectural Styles of Mosques in Malaysia: from Vernacular to Modern Structures”. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Goodsell, C.T. (1988) The Social Meaning of Civic Space, Lawrence, KA: University Press of Kansas.
9780415397896_4_006.qxd 07/09/2007 09:05 Page 120
120 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Hedman, E.L. (2001) “Contesting State and Civil Society: Southeast Asian Trajectories”, Modern Asian Studies, 35(4): 921–51. Hefney, R.W. (1998) “Civil society and democracy”, Journal, May–June, issues 2 and 3. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Kearne, J. (1998) Civil Society: Old Images, New Visions, Cambridge: Polity Press. Mahathir Mohamad (1991) “Malaysia: the way forward”, speech delivered at the Inaugural Meeting of the Malaysian Business Council, Kuala Lumpur, 29 February. Malaysia (not dated) Selamat Datang ke Masjid Negara. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Mohamad Tajuddin Mohamad Rasdi (1998) The Mosque as A Community Development Center: Programme and Architectural Design Guidelines for Contemporary Muslim Societies, Skudai, Johor: Universiti Teknologi Malaysia. Morshidi, S. and Atikullah, A. (2003) “Masyarakat madani dan ruang sivik dalam Kuala Lumpur yang semakin global: Memahami peranan dan kedudukan masjid dalam pembangunan Bandar”, National Geography Conference, Space and Environment in a Globalized World: Prospects and Challenges, City Bayview Hotel, Penang, 29–30 April. New Straits Times (1999) “Do not use mosque for politics”, 21 September. http:// archives.emedia.com.my Noraini Othman (2001) “Islam and civil society in Southeast Asia (with particular reference to Malaysia and Indonesia)”, The Institute of Ismaili Studies. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 1 December 2005). Project for Public Spaces (2002) What is a Great Civic Space? Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 27 April 2004). Putnam, R. (1993) Making Democracy Work, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Ramsay, M. (2000) “Redeeming the City. Exploring the Relationship between Church and Metropolis”, New England Journal of Public Policy, 16(1): 7–31. Sassen, S. (1994) Cities in a World Economy, Thousand Oaks, CA: Fine Forge Press. Shipps, J. (not dated) “See You in Church? Religion and Culture in Urban America”. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 1 December 2005). Talha, G.H. (2001) “Whither the Social Network of Islam”, Muslim World, 91(3/4): 311–9. Yamamoto, T. (ed.) (1995) Emerging Civil Society in the Asia Pacific Community, Singapore/Tokyo: Institute of Southeast Asian Studies/Japan Center for International Exchange.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 121
7
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages Michael Leaf and Samantha Anderson
It is not our intention in this paper to provide a systematic or comprehensive treatment of civic spaces in Chinese cities, as such an undertaking would be beyond the scope of a single paper; instead we will look specifically at the concept of civic space in the context of current rapid urbanization in Chinese peri-urban villages. We see Chinese peri-urbanization to be of great and growing significance not only because of the geographical extent of this phenomenon during the current accelerated phase of China’s urban transition, but also because of the challenges this form of grassroots urbanization poses for thinking about the evolving roles of state and society in the creation and maintenance of urban space. By choosing to focus on one particular phenomenon in current Chinese urbanization in this exploration of civic space – the urbanization of periurban villages – we must necessarily draw upon two dimensions, or two sets of meanings regarding urban space and its societal implications. The first is with regard to the nature of Chinese urbanism, particularly its structure and administration, as this is necessary for addressing questions of civic space, civic culture, and by extension, civil society in urban China today. But it should also be remembered that China is now in the midst of a critical historic transition, a shift from a predominantly rural society to one which will soon (i.e. within decades) be defined as fundamentally urban. The second set of meanings to consider here is therefore with regard to the nature of peri-urban settlements, particularly those seen as having developed “informally” or without official sanction, a situation for which there is much comparative experience and theoretical analysis to draw upon from societies elsewhere in the world, societies which have been undergoing their own urban transitions. In other words, it is not just the essentially Chinese aspects of this phenomenon that concern us here, but its “transitional” character as well – that is, with respect to the critical dimensions of China’s own urban transition. The basic approach which has been put forward for this comparative inquiry of civic spaces across the Pacific Asia region is that of a typological study, an approach which is well established in the tradition of comparative urban studies, particularly in regard to the analysis of urban spatial
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 122
122 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia structures. In the case of thinking about civic space, however, such typologizing is complicated by the fact that the typology concerns not just the physical nature of the spaces but, perhaps more importantly, their societal use as well, use which is highly conditioned by the cultural and political particularities of the specific localities. In the case of the Chinese city, we put forth the argument here that instead of civic space being conceived of as a space for non-state civil society, that is, unencumbered by the constraining actions of the state, it is more accurate to portray Chinese civic spaces in intermediary terms, as spaces regulated jurisdictionally through lower order components of the state. Building upon current interpretations of the local state in China, we have adopted the term “local corporatist space” to convey the essence of this type of civic space. The degree to which such corporatist spaces exhibit or allow for socially (or even politically) autonomous functions will be determined not only by the relationships between residents and local administrative units, but also by the powers of local units to represent local interests to higher level components of the state, whether through formal channels, or perhaps more commonly, through continuing and continuously re-invented personalistic ties. By emphasizing the local corporatist nature of spatial regulation in the Chinese city (in this case with reference to peri-urban villages, although the case could be advanced more generally), we are attempting to separate out notions of civic space from concepts of civil society, in recognition of the ambiguities surrounding the articulation of civil society in China today. The paper is broken down into two main parts, followed by a brief conclusion. In the following section, we examine the current state of thinking around the critical issues of civil society, local governance and civic space in Chinese contexts, as we feel it is necessary to challenge the assumptions implicit in each of these concepts before applying them to the analysis of Chinese peri-urban development. Following this, we give brief portrayals of two peri-urban villages, which have been transformed into lively urban places during China’s ongoing post-Mao reform period – a period of tremendous social and economic change, which is manifested in spatial terms through the historically unprecedented expansion of China’s cities.1 In conclusion, we make the case for linking the analysis of this form of “informal” development with a broader, global understanding of the formation of informal settlements, which have come to characterize urban transitions elsewhere in the world. The question of urban informality presents challenges for thinking about socio-spatial regulation and planning in the cities of the future, challenges which can only be addressed through a more careful understanding of the intricate interactions between state and society and, in particular, how these are manifested at local levels.
Civic space and civil society in Chinese contexts The basic assumptions upon which this inquiry rests are straightforward and somewhat self-evident: that the continuing urbanization of Pacific Asia
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 123
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 123 implies an expansion of civil society or at least of civic life, due to the increased capacity for social interaction and associational life that urbanization brings. This implies as well a spatial correlate – civic space, or the space within which such interactions occur – which is something different from, though overlapping with, more traditional notions of public space. The distinction here lies in the nature of state control over public space: the degree to which regulatory control is a constraint on free association determines whether a particular public space is properly also considered a civic space. Stated this way, this line of inquiry raises particular questions regarding notions of the state, not only because of the state’s regulatory role visà-vis urban space, but because of competing conceptualizations of the role of the state with respect to civil society. In this section, we therefore briefly review current interpretations of civil society and state-society interaction in the Chinese context as a basis for further examination of Chinese civic spaces.
Civil society in China (?) Is there a universal definition of civil society which can help guide this inquiry? In recent years, the rise of the discussion of civil society in China, if not, the rise of civil society itself, has been premised in part on liberal notions of civil society, perforce equating civil society with a non-state realm. This view sees civil society to be a counterweight to or a restraint on the state, in that it can provide pathways for the articulation of societal needs beyond those which are envisioned by the state, or, in other words, pluralistic notions of the public good. The links here to developmentalist perspectives on political change are obvious, driven by the idea that the ongoing economic liberalization that has characterized China’s current reform era opens space for alternative political expression or pluralism by creating new interest groups and changing the basic relations between political and economic actors in Chinese society. This “search for civil society” (White 1996a) as a means for gauging democratization in China has clearly been influenced by recent developments in the post-socialist societies of Eastern Europe and by China’s own democracy movement in the late 1980s (Brook and Frolic 1997), as well as by the long tradition of western sociopolitical thought originating from De Tocqueville, which links associational life to political liberalization.2 One relevant aspect of the debate around this has been with regard to whether the elements which comprise civil society are necessarily overtly political in their nature, or, stated another way, whether non-political associational forms of civil society hold potential for shaping progressive social change (White 1996b). This “associational life” view of civil society, with it implying that associational structures, both formal and informal, need not have an expressed political purpose in order to constitute elements of a civil society, has the added virtue of allowing for a deeper historical perspective in that it provides points of comparison to societal forms in China’s pre-communist past. A central question here is whether associational life
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 124
124 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia now, as it has been quickly building in the reform era (He 1997), is necessarily a direct reaction to the recent Maoist period in which the state held complete hegemony over society, or a broader attempt at the revival of associational forms from China’s past.3 One characteristic worth noting is that of elite leadership despite the apparent popular basis for such associations both now and in the past, which in the late Imperial and Republican periods included such organizations as the places of origin for support groups, temple associations and lineage societies, as well as vocational associations such as service and trade guilds. We find the issue of elite leadership in Chinese associational life to be very relevant to the more fundamental question of whether one can legitimately think of such social forms as truly non-statist. The apparent contradiction here is that although Chinese social organizations are ostensibly autonomous from the state, they must still rely on elite patronage to guarantee their viability, with the elite in China today still defined essentially in political terms (Ding 1994; He 1997). If associational life in China today is seen to be the current manifestation of civil society, it is not the non-state realm envisioned by liberal theorists. Alternative views of dealing with this apparent contradiction have thus been put forward in such forms as “state-led civil society” (Frolic 1997) or “semi-civil society” (He 1997). Such alternative views may be interpreted through a Gramschian view of civil society, which is inclusive of structures of the state, in contrast to the Habermasian emphasis on the non-state realm that has come to dominate current liberal discourse regarding civil society (Cheek 1998). Such a conceptualization is more consistent with the persistent Leninist nature of the Chinese state, and may hold greater relevance as well for what could be termed culturalist views of Chinese (and perhaps other Asian) authority structures today. One theoretical interpretation along these lines is given by the political scientist X.L. Ding (1994), whose institutional analysis of Chinese society and polity relies upon what he has termed “amphibiousness,” a term chosen to reflect the “double life” of Chinese elite leadership, both within formal state structures as well as in the structures of what might otherwise be seen as autonomous formations, including both social organizations and the institutional structures of the market economy. Instead of yielding to a view of the purely hegemonic role of the state through institutional amphibiousness, Ding stresses the indeterminacy of individual institutions – both official and unofficial – and argues that the potential for progressive change comes from within, through the agency of what he terms “counter-elites,” or those individuals who are able to maintain personalistic linkages to both state and non-state structures. This is in contrast to the emphasis on social and political change arising from the negotiated interactions between state and civil society as envisioned by liberal models. In his argument, the mutual infiltration between state and society that one finds in China today undercuts the necessity for truly non-state formations as a requisite for affecting progressive change.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 125
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 125
The Logic of the Local To summarize the discussion thus far, this is an argument that a true nonstate realm does not exist in China today. But if the state is everywhere, what is the state? This is perhaps a more consequential question for thinking about the meaning of civic space than searching for universal (or at least logically consistent) interpretations of civil society. It is complicated, however, by current governance trends in China, both with respect to the devolution of administrative and fiscal functions and with the development of regulatory structures for the rapidly evolving market economy. Much has been written in recent years on the implications of decentralization and the advent of the market economy for the local state in particular, with a range of classificatory labels appearing in literature regarding the “local developmental state” on one end to the “local predatory state” on the other, with various emphases on entrepreneurialism, corporatism and clientelism in between (Tsai 2002: 252–253). These are by no means mutually exclusive categories as the various interpretations of the local state in China must deal with sometimes simultaneous instances of support and predation by the apparatuses of the local state, with such distinctions also colored by often wide regional differences throughout China. What is consistent and relevant here is the emphasis on both the revived strength of the local state, in all its diversity, and its potential for being both fragmented and riven with clientelistic networks. Studies of the local state thus directly challenge notions of the monolithic state and emphasize the criticality of the logic of the local, an indication of the local social embeddedness of governance processes. This can be seen as one expression of the persistence of a personalistic legal culture in contrast to objective rule of law. This continuing long tradition of legal instrumentalism (Potter 1998) is particularly relevant to local levels, as the state-society relations it engenders are often dependent upon the face-to-face interactions of clientelism, which in general are understood to benefit from social intimacy as one would find at the level of the locality (Scott 1977). The diversity inherent at local levels challenges generalization. Diversity of the local, nonetheless, is conditioned by the persistence and redefinition of previous structures through which centralized control was (and in many respects still is) manifested in China. In her analysis of the changing nature of administrative practices, Shue (1994) emphasizes the inherent tensions between central and local during the Maoist period and how these tensions underlie the current move toward increased localism. The structure of the local is presented as one of social cellularity, as apparent, for example, in the close correspondence between structures of production and social reproduction in the urban work unit (danwei) and its parallels in the hierarchical administrative structure (Leaf 2000). Shue sees such cellularization of social, economic and administrative/political structures as less an attempt to weaken associational structures by the Maoist
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 126
126 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia state than, in her terms, to “miniaturize” society, and in so doing increase its legibility to the state.4 The challenge here is that in establishing such structures, particularly in the absence of cross-cutting linkages such as one would derive from market relationships or more open political discourse, the cellular structures have turned inward, with such critical particularist adaptations as an increased reliance on personalistic networks (guanxi) to grease the economic and social machinery.5 Thus one finds, by the late Maoist period, a situation of both intense centrality of the national polity and entrenched localism, strengthened internally through clientelistic personal networks. The implication here is that pressures for reform through the inculcation of market forces are derived not only from the potential for increased productivity through a shift away from administrative pricing, as is generally argued, but also the recognition by the state of its weakening control over the low-end cellular structures of the Chinese economy and society.6 In her analysis of the institutional basis for China’s rapid growth through the reform period, Oi (1999) finds the key factor to have been the reinvention or re-articulation of such Maoist local structures in response to new opportunities afforded by market reforms, thus resulting in what she sees to be increased local corporatism. Highly localized developmental states in rural China, or what Oi terms “local corporate states” have thus been able to derive greatly increased powers through economic gain, particularly during the period of growing township and village enterprises through the 1980s and early 1990s. Such an interpretation is highly relevant for understanding the growing economic strength of erstwhile administrative units within Chinese cities as well (Leaf 2005). Through such means, local administrative units, such as the urban street committee ( jiedao) and the peri-urban village committee (cunweihui), are re-invented in increasingly corporatist forms, a manifestation of the persistent ambiguity between public and private and between state and society in the current period. Such local state corporatism, with its entrenched amphibiousness and continuing reliance on clientelistic relations, is key to understanding the phenomenon of peri-urban growth and development, as it allows us to deal with the delicate question of autonomous social formations and the intricacies of local state-society relations. The civic spaces arising from peri-urban growth should thus not be seen in grassroots terms as spaces for free association unencumbered by the state, but rather as spaces created by, or at least regulated by, local corporatist structures.
The social nature of civic space The understanding of civic spaces to be “those spaces in which people of different origins and walks of life can co-mingle without overt control by government, commercial or other private interests, or de facto dominance by one group over another” (Douglass 2001) implies that in thinking about
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 127
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 127 civic space we must be mindful of a number of diverse attributes, both in terms of spatial and social relationships and, perhaps more abstractly, with regard to the nature of local governance as it pertains to spatial and social regulation. Clearly a consideration of physical attributes alone would be insufficient for advancing our understanding of civic space; a public commercial zone with the physical attributes of a traditional “main street” would nonetheless not be truly civic space if it were purposefully exclusionary of a significant component of local society that might otherwise use the space. Our view is that with regard to social and spatial characteristics, good civic space should exhibit those attributes that have come to be understood as underpinning successful public space in general, including density and variety of activities (that is, not limited exclusively to a single function, such as purely commercial use), in addition to ease of accessibility to the complete spectrum of social classes and groups. The quality of civic space will therefore be shaped by density, meaning both the density of the population who can access the space as well as the density of activities which will attract diverse groups of people. The issue of accessibility implies as well the attribute of proximity, which may be difficult to obtain in an urban setting beset by spatial segregation by social group or class. A further basic dimension of successful public (and by extension, civic) space is temporal, in that urban spaces which are occupied and used over a longer period of time throughout the day (and for other longer term cycles) will allow for a greater mixing of people and activities than would otherwise be the case. Beyond these physical and social attributes, the quality of civic space will be conditioned by how the space is regulated or otherwise disciplined, and whether or not through such regulation additional constraints are imposed on the space that might inhibit its inclusionary character. This is necessarily a governance issue as it raises questions of, first, how broadly shared the notion of the public good might be, and second, the degree to which the local state (as the presumed regulator) can legitimately impose conditions on public space in the interest of articulating and maintaining the public good. Trade-offs are necessarily involved, with regard to such things as public safety and security as well as cleanliness and the quality of public infrastructure and services. Beyond this, one might also distinguish between explicit, formal or overt forms of regulation and more covert or clandestine forms, which the state may impose in seeking to discipline or monitor societal forces. This is also a governance issue with regard to the popular perception of the local state, as in practice, civic space can function in either an oppositional or integrative manner with respect to its capacity to foster collective activities, which either challenge or respect the nature of local regulatory control. In other words, the distinction between public space per se and the notion of civic space which we would advance here is dependent also upon the nature of the local state and its relation to its citizenry. This observation links back to our discussion of civil society, with the added caveat
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 128
128 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia that civil society need neither be oppositional nor even progressive in its nature in order for it to be legitimate; there is significant potential for cultural and political conservatism to be articulated through an active civil society, however the term may be defined. The distinction between oppositional and integrative functions of civic space, and, for that matter, between oppositional and integrative tendencies of civil society arise directly from the actions of the state, that is, whether it is supportive, tolerant or repressive of the social (and political) uses of civic space. In this respect, the question of state coherence or fragmentation becomes critical. It is our contention here that the corporatist nature of the local state in China holds the potential for shaping positive, integrative civic spaces in the urban periphery; but where such local state structures and forces come into conflict with higher levels of authority, the outcome is much less certain. The specific civic spaces which we look at here are the public gathering spaces – the main streets and markets – in two peri-urban settlements in Chinese cities, Dongmei Village on the edge of Quanzhou in Fujian, and Dahongmen (unofficially referred to as Zhejiang Village) on the southern border of Beijing’s urban area. Both have been informally developed, in contrast to pre-planned urban spaces, and have grown to be active urban settings originating out of pre-existing villages, which were predominantly agricultural in the past. In this sense, these are both components of the new urban landscape that has emerged out of China’s current accelerated phase of its urban transition. In both cases, we find an emphasis on the integrative character of these spaces – especially with regard to the function of these spaces in fostering social integration across the historically deeply embedded distinctions between urban and rural populations and between local and non-local. The two cases, however, indicate very different responses on the part of the state, or of components of the state, vis-à-vis regulation.
Case studies: corporatist spaces in peri-urban China China’s post-Mao reform era has been characterized by tremendously accelerated urbanization, which is understood as both a reaction to the previous constraints on urbanization imposed by the state under Mao, as well as a conscious effort to create new urban forms to accommodate the needs of a rapidly expanding market economy (Leaf 1998). Urban building programs, especially of cities along the economically booming eastern seaboard, have been extensively documented and analyzed. Overall, the phenomenon of current Chinese urbanization is seen to derive from both a statist effort, related to devolution of governance and development functions to lower levels in the administrative hierarchy in line with market needs (Yeh and Wu 1996), as well as popular initiative, seen in various forms as “urbanization from below” (Guldin 2001). The rapidly changing landscapes of the peri-urban regions are but one manifestation of the total project
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 129
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 129 of urban redevelopment and expansion (Webster 2001). Their significance lies in both the new physical forms which have arisen since the 1980s and in their social formations, as places of interaction between erstwhile local villagers, displaced former urbanites who are moving out of crowded inner city neighborhoods) and, in many instances, newly formed communities of rural migrants, who in total now comprise perhaps as much as one tenth of the entire national population (Chang 1996; Chan 1994). Periurban regions therefore hold the potential to be not just the sites of a new urbanism, the outward edge of China’s accelerated urban transition, but landscapes of integration between rural and urban societies, an historical divide which has long characterized the nation. The effects of the urban transition – in China as elsewhere – are seen not just in broad demographic terms with respect to numbers and proportions of urban and rural residents, but in the potential for creating new and unforeseen social and cultural relations. As with our previous caveats regarding generalization and local diversity, it should be remembered that the two cases reviewed here are not meant to portray typical examples nor impart an exhaustive understanding of the conditions of such settlements within China; at best, they are merely indicative, although perhaps in this way they may serve as a basis for drawing some tentative conclusions with respect to the ideas about state-society relations and the creation of urban space which we have advanced above. Zhejiang Village The case of Zhejiang Village, on the southern edge of Beijing’s urban boundary, is perhaps the most famous and best documented7 example of how the processes of China’s peri-urban development are driven by local, villagelevel administrative units operating in alliance with the socio-economic interests of specific streams of rural migrants. The origins of Zhejiang Village as a migrant settlement in the Dahongmen area of Fengtai District, on the southern edge of Beijing’s urban boundary, may be traced back to the early 1980s, when migrant entrepreneurs from the Wenzhou area of Zhejiang province, far to the south from Beijing, began renting space from local villagers, first for accommodation and later for production facilities (see Figure 7.1). The early migrants were attracted to the area both for its location – as Dahongmen is not far from the Qianmen area where the migrants’ initial markets for low-cost garments were located – and for the availability of inexpensive space for rent. Unlike urban residents per se, who were prohibited from renting out housing in the early reform period, the villagers on the urban edge were unencumbered by such prohibitions, and although the farmers in Dahongmen were at first reluctant to deal with the Zhejiang migrants, they quickly learned that the provision of rented accommodation could be much more lucrative than growing vegetables. The migrant population grew quickly over the course of the 1980s and early
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 130
130 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 7.1 Zhejiang village, Dahongmen, Beijing, China.
1990s, based first on chain migration from Zhejiang with other migrant workers coming from further afield as job opportunities continued to open up in the burgeoning garment production facilities of the area. By the mid-90s, Zhejiang Village, as it had come to be known locally, was home to more than 100,000 non-local migrants, in comparison to the 20,000 or so erstwhile villagers. The physical transformation of the area was dramatic. After an initial period of renting rooms and building small-scale facilities for the migrants, villagers began to enter into larger scale and longer term agreements with informal developers from Zhejiang, who constructed what came to be known as dayuan (big courtyard) housing compounds. These single story brick structures were comprised of hundreds of small, individual household units, with the largest providing accommodation for as many as 6,000 residents. The extensive scale and inward-turning nature of the dayuan may be attributable to a number of factors, perhaps most crucially that of public security and fear of crime in a social context that was largely deserted by the Beijing municipal authorities.8 The massive scale of dayuan construction is also indicative of the social and economic processes
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 131
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 131 surrounding their development; these were not the result of either individual or collectivized household efforts, but rather facilities created through the efforts of individual migrant entrepreneurs who would enter into business arrangements with the local villagers to secure the building sites, materials and labor to create these rented lodgings. In this respect, these migrant bosses (laoban) were reproducing long-standing social practices in the complex mix of instrumental (with respect to their individual profit incentives as entrepreneurs) and affective ties (as they acted on behalf of and in collaboration with their fellow migrants), which they drew upon in establishing their intermediate positions between migrant and native communities.9 The dominance of collective over individual tendencies was apparent in other aspects of life in Zhejiang Village as well. The migrant communities, although ostensibly the aggregate outcomes of spontaneous efforts on the part of many individuals, maintained official links to the administrative authorities in Zhejiang province. This was apparent not only in the Wenzhou municipal representative offices established in Zhejiang Village, but also in the efforts of local authorities from Zhejiang province to establish such social services as health care and education in this migrant settlement so far from home (as these were social services denied by Beijing authorities to these non-registered residents). Such official collaboration also underlay the development of wholesale marketing facilities in Zhejiang Village, such as the large Jingwen trade building, its name indicative of the roles of Beijing and Wenzhou authorities in its establishment and maintenance. In this context, it is difficult to speak of this settlement as an entirely nonstate space, despite its essentially informal or grassroots origins. Civic spaces, or the civic nature of Zhejiang Village’s public spaces, may be thought of with regard to two different forms, in consideration of the particular built environment of the settlement. First were the collective spaces within the largest dayuan, which consisted of internal main streets with local commercial enterprises and collective facilities such as the compounds’ public toilets. These were civic spaces to the extent that the social interactions which they engendered worked to build the collective identities of the dayuan residents, thus helping to empower the migrant communities in psychological terms, if nothing else. They were exclusionary spaces, however, like any internal public space in a large urban compound (such as that of a Beijing danwei), and here one may make the distinction between the form of “bonding” social capital that the use of such spaces facilitated and the “bridging” social capital more commonly associated with notions of civic space,10 as the social cohesion derived from life in the dayuan was inwardturning rather than broadly integrative. The second layer of potential civic spaces were the public spaces outside of the dayuan, consisting of small streets lined with shops and stalls, which opened in certain instances into larger covered markets. Such spaces were the sites of informal, quotidian interactions between migrant
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:03 Page 132
132 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia groups and local villagers, and beyond them, with other Beijing residents who would disregard the stigma of lawlessness officially promoted in the Beijing press in order to seek out Zhejiang specialties in the local shops. Conversations with people on the street indicated a general sense of admiration for the migrants among local villagers for their hard work and entrepreneurial spirit. There was, however, also the recognition that most Beijingers would not even consider entering the area due to how Zhejiang Village was officially portrayed to the larger public. The public spaces of Zhejiang Village were thus civic spaces, in that they were by no means exclusionary, although the civic nature of these spaces was highly constrained by external factors. As we have argued, the spaces of Zhejiang Village were only ambiguously “non-state” spaces,11 considering the quasi-official status conferred through recognition by local authorities, both those of Beijing (particularly the village committee, though also the district government through their involvement in fostering and regulating the local wholesale garment trade) and those of Wenzhou (through their local administrative offices). The contradictions derived from an understanding of a multi-layered or even fragmented state are apparent in the strained history of the settlement. Throughout the 1980s and 1990s, Zhejiang Village was beset by repressive pressures from higher level authorities, which came to a head in a massive campaign of destruction and dislocation in late 1995. As portrayed in detail by Zhang (2001), this period of the settlement’s history was marked by a deep division between higher and lower level authorities, and driven by the general rhetoric that the destruction was for the migrant community’s “own good,” despite the devastating effects that it had for most residents. The subsequent rebuilding, recovery and further expansion of Zhejiang Village – now understood to be a proper, newly urbanized component of the city of Beijing – bears out the understanding that municipal authorities did not perforce oppose the development of this migrant community, but rather, wanted it to take place on the state’s own terms. In Zhang’s analysis, the main reason for “cleaning up” the settlement was that “upper-level officials were worried that the de facto recognition of migrant leadership would encourage uncontrolled growth of migrant power that would ultimately displace local government rule” (ibid: 207), despite the understanding by lower level officials of the mutual benefits of collaboration with migrants. The destruction and reconfiguration of Zhejiang Village thus demonstrates the limits to local autonomy and the practical constraints to local state corporatism in the present context of the state in China. Dongmei Village In contrast to the scale of development in Zhejiang Village in Beijing, the urbanization of Dongmei, a former agricultural village on the edge of Quanzhou in southern Fujian province, has been much smaller, and in
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 133
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 133
Figure 7.2 Dongmei village, Quanzhou, Fujian, China.
this respect might be considered to be more typical of China’s peri-urban development (see Figure 7.2). Nonetheless, the specific historically and geographically determined characteristics of Quanzhou caution against excessive generalization. When Marco Polo visited the city in the late Song period (1127–1279), Quanzhou was southern China’s largest seaport and quite cosmopolitan in its makeup; now, however, it is a medium-sized city, with an urban core population of less than 300,000.12 This long history of international linkages, reinforced since the late nineteenth century through sizeable out-migration of China’s Hokkien-speaking population, has meant that Quanzhou has maintained a very high degree of external linkages, both to the neighboring island of Taiwan, and further, to the nations of Southeast Asia, where the Hokkien language group constitutes the largest proportion of resident overseas Chinese. The people of the region have sought to maintain their connections to overseas relatives over the decades – connections which have flourished under the open-door policies of the reform era. Furthermore, due to the city’s strategically vulnerable location across the straits from Taiwan, Quanzhou in the past received disproportionately low investment from the central government, a factor which underlies the persistence of private property relations in the region and which has no doubt added to the region’s strong sense of local autonomy. These two characteristics of
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 134
134 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia dense, though atomistic, transnational linkages and local state respect for private property meant that Quanzhou was particularly well-poised to benefit from the multiple, small-scale networks of “guerilla” investment which has driven the economic boom of southern China’s littoral region since the 1980s (Hsing 1998). The village of Dongmei (literally, “Eastern Beauty”), with an official registered population of approximately 2,000 (as of 2001), is situated a few kilometers to the east of the ancient core of the city, in an area which had been largely ricefields until the early 1990s. The “greenfields” nature of this eastern edge of the city, in contrast to geographic constraints in other directions, has allowed the area to absorb a large proportion of the city’s new commercial and industrial construction, and portions of the formerly rural district of Fengze, including the area where Dongmei is located, are now being incorporated into the city proper. In addition to this consequential administrative change, two other factors, both derived from the expanding spatial economy of the city, have greatly accelerated the village’s urban transformation. First, a major input of capital came with the village committee’s decision in the early 1990s to transfer land rights for 3.6 hectares of ricefields (approximately 20 percent of the village territory) to a development company from the city, which subsequently built a residential estate (Dongmei Huayuan), housing approximately 2,000 residents, primarily government workers and other middle-class professionals from the city. The compensation funds obtained from this land transfer were then reinvested in the development of small- and medium-scale factories and in the construction of new multi-storey houses by the villagers, thus transforming the built environment of the village from a landscape of small traditional houses into a dense urban neighborhood clustered around two parallel commercial streets. The second significant factor shaping this transformation was the influx of rural migrants into the area. By the late 1990s, Dongmei Village accommodated more than 4,000 of the so-called “floating population” (liudong renkou) – primarily from Sichuan and Gansu provinces in west China – who worked in the village factories or in the many small production facilities which villagers had set up in their re-built houses. If it was the sale of land use rights which gave the initial boost for the redevelopment of the village, then it was the low-cost labor of the migrants which permitted its economic expansion and consolidation into a flourishing urban area over the course of less than a decade. Opportunities for urbanization thus came from two directions: emanating outward with Quanzhou’s expanding spatial economy, and pouring in from the countryside with the manpower of rural-urban migrants. In thinking about the spatial patterns of development and the potential for civic space in this newly urbanized area, one important characteristic to point out is the degree of crowding apparent in Dongmei. Even though the traditional houses of the erstwhile farmers have almost entirely been
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 135
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 135 replaced by much larger structures, the overall population of the village has more than tripled in the same time period, and much of the new construction accommodates new economic uses. Typically, one finds a new house in the village to have its ground floor given over to small-scale manufacturing – such as shoe production, printing, or the manufacture of packing materials – with upper floors (in many cases up to five stories) allocated for residential space for the villagers, plus warehousing space and dormitory accommodations for the migrant workers. Spatial constraints for the residents, especially the migrant workers, means that much of the life of Dongmei takes place in public spaces, along the main commercial streets and in the small public square built in the center of the village. Here one finds an array of activities, from shopping and eating to billiard games and other entertainments set up along the street. The formal, covered public market, built adjacent to the walled compound of the Dongmei Huayuan estate to the northeast of the village, is also very active, although it tends not to attract the same density of daily crowds as the streets in the core of the village. Overall, we would argue that these are the civic spaces of this newly urbanized area, as these are the places of coming together and intense social interaction both within the migrant communities (thus building bonding social capital) and between the migrants and villagers (facilitating the creation of bridging social capital). From our observations, the third group of proximate residents – the displaced urbanites housed in the walled residential estate – has much less interaction with either the villagers or the migrants in the village. Much of the daily lives of the estate residents takes place away from Dongmei Village, as many residents commute into town for work or school, while the activities of those who do remain behind are largely accommodated within the walls of the estate by local services such as a grade school, kindergarten and local-scale shopping facilities.
Similarities and differences Considering the situation in Dongmei Village relative to that of Zhejiang Village in Beijing, we see similarities in terms of the nature of public spaces; in both, these are integrative spaces, allowing for and promoting the free interaction between migrant groups and local villagers, though in both cases we find exclusionary aspects as well – in that urban residents other than the immediate villagers tend to stay away from these places. In the case of Beijing, this was prompted, no doubt, by the official portrayal of migrant settlements in the popular press. While such biases are not immediately apparent toward migrants in Quanzhou, there is still a sense of social distance between the estate residents and those of Dongmei Village, which tends to keep the estate residents out of the seemingly lower class setting of the village despite the adjacency of the estate. A major difference between the cases of Zhejiang Village and Dongmei Village has been with the official response on the part of the higher level
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 136
136 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia municipal government. In Zhejiang Village, as we have seen, villagers and migrants have been beset by an ongoing conflictual relationship with municipal authorities, and it has been the strength of clientelistic ties between local bosses and those in higher official positions which has served to protect and stabilize the settlement. Such ties have been tenuous at times and proved wholly insufficient to protect the settlement at the peak of the municipal government’s clean-up operations. A similar approach of clientelistic analysis would no doubt also be relevant to the case of Dongmei as a means of accounting for the multi-faceted mix of formal and informal, affective and instrumental ties between village officials and higher level authorities. One finds, for example, similar economic links between villagers and citybased interests and the housing estate developers in Dongmei and the district authorities overseeing the establishment of the wholesale garment markets in Zhejiang Village. What differs, however, is the relative position of the migrant communities, with much stronger local power manifested in the migrants in Zhejiang Village, in terms of their local economic strength (as entrepreneurs and business-owners, in contrast to the working population who comprise the migrant community in Dongmei Village), their higher level of organization, and in their overall numbers in proportion to local residents (5:1 compared to 2:1). In contrast to the conflictual setting of Zhejiang Village and the constant need to keep conflicts in check through patron-client ties, the relationships between local and municipal officials in Dongmei Village may be described to be much more collaborative. Despite the sub-standard development of much of the village (with houses built to excessive heights and with insufficient set-backs and street access), the municipal government has undertaken an approach of gradual, in situ upgrading, including the widening of main streets, paving of alleys and retro-fitting of basic infrastructure. There is still pressure for the newly urbanized village to conform to the sensibilities of the city’s master plan, but conformance here is attained through on-going negotiation, in contrast to the heavy-handed approach of wholesale destruction and rebuilding that was so disruptive in Zhejiang Village. It would be difficult to pinpoint the key factor underlying this difference, as the two cases are greatly dissimilar in a number of respects: the overall sizes of the two cities; the scale of development of the two urbanized villages; the different local political economies of development in Beijing and Quanzhou, including a much stronger continuous tradition of property rights in Quanzhou; and very different situations with respect to the migrant populations. In Zhejiang Village, the migrants included an economically significant entrepreneurial class. In Dongmei, with the exception of several small-scale shop owners, migrant livelihoods are almost all derived from their work as hired workers, a situation which allows village authorities to publicly assert the temporary nature of their residence in Dongmei. A relevant generalizable issue here is how in both cases a local government unit (the village committee) has been able to take advantage of the
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 137
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 137 opportunities arising from the growth of the market economy by entering into strategic alliances with other non-local actors. In the case of Zhejiang Village, the opportunity arose from the Wenzhou entrepreneurs, while in Dongmei Village opportunities were more closely linked to the ongoing expansion of Quanzhou’s spatial economy. In both cases, it was the corporate nature of local government units that allowed it to go beyond its basic administrative mandate to take on increasingly economic functions,13 functions which in practice form the fiscal basis for this new component of Chinese urbanism. In regulatory terms, such patterns and practices of highly local development are often contrary to the planning mandates and visions of higher level municipal authorities, as was the case in the two examples here. In consideration of the state-society framework we have advanced above, seeking to understand the resolution of such contradictions does not lie in the interactions between the state and a non-state civil society, but rather internally, in the formal and informal relations between fragmented components of the state as it now exists in China. Civic space, as we have been dealing with it here, does not function to build up an oppositional basis for society vis-à-vis the state, or to foster a civil society which can check the power of the state, but rather as an integrative mechanism to legitimize and thus strengthen the social underpinnings of the most local components of the state. The shortcoming here is that the powers of local social forces – and the hopes that some observers might pin on a flourishing civil society – are ultimately dependent upon the strength of the local unit of the state. What resources the local corporatist state can bring to bear, whether political or economic or derived from manipulation of clientelistic ties, will thus determine the developmental fate of the locality. The key to successful local development thus appears to rest less on the ability of civil society, as it is commonly understood, to properly engage with the forces of the state, than with local components of the state to deal with higher level components of the state on behalf of their own corporately defined citizens.
Conclusions: informality, inclusion and local corporatism Over the past four decades, a significant body of academic research and writing has developed around the theme which is perhaps most commonly summarized as “informal settlements,” that is, those components of thirdworld urbanization which occur to one extent or another outside of the formal regulatory framework of the state. Although significant attention has been given to interstitial sites of informal development – slum and squatter settlements in inner city settings – one could argue that in respect to aggregate global trends, it is the informal settlements of the urban periphery that constitute the bulk of urban informalization in spatial terms,14 an indication of where informal development fits in the overall urban transition which is so unevenly impacting the world today. The point has been
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 138
138 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia made that much of the early research interest in informal settlements was driven by an ideologically colored hope for articulating an alternative form of urbanization, with the “squatter” as a form of new urban pioneer, standing up to the exclusionary tendencies of urban market economies, and in this way helping to democratize the third-world city (Smart 1986). In contrast to such communitarian impulses, much attention was subsequently given to the question of how market relations fit into informal development (Moser 1982), with streams of analysis, such as that dealing with the “pirate” developers of Bogota (Vernez 1973; Doebele 1977), emphasizing the ambiguity of market processes in informal land development and the importance of understanding how local political economies and local institutional forms shape the potential for informal development (Gilbert 1981; Collier 1976). The regulatory grey area in which informal development is situated has thus come to be understood as a critical determinant of social exclusion in cities throughout the developing world (Fernandes and Varley 1998). And although, as it is argued, potential exists for a high degree of local autonomy in such contexts of weak regulation, there are in all likelihood greater possibilities for political manipulation, denial of basic rights and entitlements, and the entrenchment of urban settings beset by poor quality and unhealthy environments. Much of the recent writing on informal settlements by international agencies and others (UNCHS 1990, for example) thus argues for inclusionary approaches to “formalizing the informal” or “regularizing the irregular”, an indication, as we see it, of the fear of persistent socio-economic dualism in the cities of the developing world. In the case of China, such fears of persistent dualism are linked to longstanding, historic patterns of segmentation between rural and urban components of society, which perhaps ironically came to be institutionally reinforced during the period of centralized socialism through the draconian application of the household registration (hukou) system (Chan 1994). Over the course of the reform period, the political validity of the hukou as a mechanism of social control has been undermined not only by the phenomenon of rural-urban migration, but the gradual disassembly of the set of entitlements linked to an urban hukou (access to guaranteed employment, housing, urban services, education, subsidized goods, etc.) or in terms of the promises of the Chinese state, the breaking of the “iron rice bowl” (Solinger 1999). The risk now is that such older forms of societal dualism – between the city and the countryside – are coming to be replaced by growing segmentation within urban settings, particularly as urban populations continue to expand and new spatial forms are created in today’s Chinese cities. It is in this context that hopes are increasingly pinned to the development of civil society as the means for articulating societal needs beyond what is imagined or understood by the state. This is seen as particularly
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 139
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 139 critical for those components of urban society who are excluded or marginalized from the mainstream of urban society, such as the migrant settlers and the erstwhile farmers on the edges of China’s cities. As we have argued above, such a conceptualization is indeed problematic in the Chinese context, not only because of the restricted potential for the articulation of a non-state civil society, but because of the segmented and multitiered nature of the state in China. In contrast to the expectations of liberal observers, the advent of market reforms in China has not weakened the state but, rather, has economically bolstered and thus entrenched its most local components. In such a setting, the representation of societal interests vis-à-vis the state is unlikely to occur through the presumed mechanisms of civil society, but instead is filtered upward through lower order components of the state. The risk here is that local communities and new social actors are as dependent as ever, if not more so, on the powers and abilities of local state actors. The uneven, or perhaps unpredictable, trajectories of social change and spatial development in the two cases of peri-urban development we have referred to here indicate the tenuousness and local specificity of such relations. Despite our concerns regarding the potential for autonomous civil society, we find that the concept of civic space does indeed have value for interpreting the formation of more inclusionary local societies, as in this case with the increased capacity for social interaction engendered by the public spaces of urbanizing peri-urban settlements. Such possibilities are apparent in the ongoing consolidation of non-local migrant communities in places such as Dongmei and Zhejiang Village. This is not necessarily, nor need it be, an expression of a growing civil society in the sense that this has come to be popularly understood. The strength of such local communities, fostered through increased social cohesion and the enhanced potential for further economic advancement, nonetheless confers greater legitimacy to such local corporatist units as the village committees in these two cases. Whether this is sufficient to permit the further legitimization and consolidation of these newly emerged components of Chinese urbanism will no doubt depend upon factors and forces beyond the means of the local communities themselves. Formalizing the informal and thereby erasing the regulatory greyness from Chinese peri-urban development is thus more likely to occur as an outcome of state actions than through the strength of societal forces.
Notes 1 Recognizing, however, that certain parallels may be drawn to the patterns of urbanization and the opening up of urban culture which characterized the transition to Song period urbanism in the eleventh and twelfth centuries (Heng 1999). 2 A particularly influential discussion of the continuing relevance of the DeTocquevillean tradition is that of Putnam (1993).
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 140
140 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia 3 There is no question that Chinese citizens now once again enjoy a vibrant associational life, as attested to by the many thousands of social organizations which have become officially registered since the early 1990s, in accordance with requirements put in place following the events of 1989 (He 1997). As Shue notes however, “most of these associations are by no means entirely self-constituted, nor do most of them apparently seek or enjoy much relative autonomy from the state. Some are more autonomous, and others less so. All, however, are enveloped in a rhetoric of corporatist interpenetration and encapsulated in a self-conception that stresses corporatist consultation, cooperation, and harmony in action with the party-state and its aims” (Shue 1994, p. 83). 4 We use the term “legibility” in the sense favored by Scott (1998), that is, in reference to the simplification of societal phenomenon in the interest of facilitating the functions of government. 5 A tendency characterized by Walder (1986) as “communist neo-traditionalism” in his study of factory relations in Guangdong. 6 It should be pointed out as well that such social cellularity has a distinct correlate in urban spatial structures as well, with the physical city of the Maoist period characterized by walled compounds delimiting the territories of work units (Gaubatz 1995). Such spatial cellularity is characteristic to one degree or another of much of China’s historic urbanism, as referred to by Skinner in reference to Qing China (1977). From more recent work on historical urbanism by Heng (1999), we can see the importance placed by the state on social control through the cellularity of ward structures in the Tang period, and how these spatial and administrative structures were increasingly disassembled through the transition to Song period urbanism. In this, one gets a sense of the cyclical nature of spatial cellularity throughout Chinese urban history, and how this is closely interwoven with efforts at maintaining state hegemony over society, a theme paralleled by Gates’ (1996) interpretation of the grand sweep of Chinese history as the playing out of tensions between statist (“tributary”) and familial (“petty commodity”) modes of production. 7 Our account here draws upon the extensive study of Zhejiang Village by Zhang (2001) as well as relevant materials by Wang (1995), Béja and Bonnin (1995), Leaf (1995), Xiang (1996), Liu and Liang (1997), Ma and Xiang (1998), Solinger (1999) and site visits to Zhejiang Village in 1994, 1996 and 1998. 8 This is likely a manifestation of the contradiction, as pointed out by Solinger (1999), between the public perception of rural migrants as perpetrators of crime and the migrants’ own perceptions of themselves as victims of crime, in that police security accorded to urban residents is largely denied to the non-registered proportions of urban settlers. 9 One may note here the odd reproduction of the Chinese tradition of cellular urbanism through this essentially non-statist or effectively grassroots effort. If cellularity is generally assumed to derive from top-down efforts at maintaining state control (see Heng 1999 for one reading of this), what does it mean when non-state market processes yield similar socio-spatial results? That this is what the people are accustomed to? That this is the basic manner in which the residential development industry is organized, even in such an “informal” or non-statist realm? Or that the need for security as derived from collective residential development is as much a societal as a state impulse? One could perhaps argue that this scale of development derives from the particular political economy of informal development in this instance, with individual large land-owners (i.e. local villagers) becoming clientelistically tied to specific Zhejiang laoban who have the social and financial resources for undertaking this sort of development.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 141
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 141 10 These terms have been advanced, in particular, in the work of Woolcock (1998), with social capital between members within a bounded group referred to as “bonding” social capital, as distinct from the “bridging” social capital which may exist between members of different groups. 11 Although we recognize that this is a relative term which may be contrasted to an extent with the emphasis placed by Xiang (1996) and Zhang (2001) on the non-state nature of Zhejiang Village’s development. 12 For further information on Quanzhou’s history and recent patterns of development, see: Abramson et al., 2002; Leaf 2002a; and Leaf and Abramson 2002. For more information on Dongmei Village in particular, see Abramson et al., 2000; and Leaf 2002b. 13 A similar urban example from Guangzhou is given in Leaf 2005. For more on the fiscal and economic practices of local administrative units, see also Guldin 2001. 14 One early theorist of informal urbanism, John Turner (1968), emphasized the distinction between inner city and peri-urban sites for settlement, by linking development in these two zones to the life-cycles and aspirations of new urbanites, with, in his terms, “bridgeheaders” locating in inner city sites, and “consolidators” clustered on the urban edge. The inter-relationships between employment availability and migrant life-cycle have spatial implications for migrant settlement in Chinese cities as well (Wu 2002).
References Abramson, D., Leaf, M. and Tan, Y. (2002) “Social Research and the Localization of Chinese Urban Planning Practice: Some Ideas from Quanzhou, Fujian”, in J. Logan (ed.) The New Chinese City: Globalization and Market Reform, London: Blackwell. Abramson, D., Leaf, M. and students of Plan 545 (2000) “Urban Development and Redevelopment in Quanzhou, China: A Field Studio Report”, Vancouver: Asian Urban Research Network Working Paper Series, UBC Center for Human Settlements. Béja, J.P. and Bonnin, M. (1995) “The Destruction of the Village”, China Perspectives, 2: 21–5. Brook, T. and Frolic, B.M. (eds.) (1997) Civil Society in China, Armonk, NY: M.E. Sharpe. Chan, K.W. (1994) Cities with Invisible Walls: Reinterpreting Urbanization in Post-1949 China, New York: Oxford University Press. Chang, S. (1996) “The Floating Population: An Informal Process of Urbanization in China”, International Journal of Population Geography, 2: 197–214. Cheek, T. (1998) “From Market to Democracy in China: Gaps in the Civil Society Model”, in J.D. Lindau, and T. Cheek (eds.) Market Economics and Political Change: Comparing China and Mexico, Lantham, MD: Rowman and Littlefield. Collier, D. (1976) Squatters and Oligarchs: Authoritarian Rule and Policy Change in Peru, Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press. Ding, X.L. (1994) “Institutional Amphibiousness and the Transition from Communism: The Case of China”, British Journal of Political Science, 24: 293–318. Doebele, W. (1977) “The Private Market and Low Income Urbanization in Developing Countries: The Pirate Subdivisions of Bogota”, American Journal of Comparative Law, 25(3): 531–64.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 142
142 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Douglass, M. (2001) “Civic Spaces in a Global Age: Proposal for Research in Pacific Asia Cities”, unpublished proposal. Fernandes, E. and Varley, A. (eds.) (1998) Illegal Cities: Law and Urban Change in Developing Countries, London: Zed Books. Frolic, B.M. (1997) “State-Led Civil Society”, in T. Brook, and B.M. Frolic (eds.) Civil Society in China, Armonk, NY: M.E. Sharpe. Gaubatz, P.R. (1995) “Urban Transformation in Post-Mao China: Impacts of the Reform Era on China’s Urban Form”, in D.S. Davis, R. Kraus, B. Naughton, B. and E.J. Perry (eds.) Urban Spaces in Contemporary China, New York: Cambridge University Press. Gates, H. (1996) China’s Motor: A Thousand Years of Petty Capitalism, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Gilbert, A. (1981) “Pirates and Invaders: Land Acquisition in Urban Colombia and Venezuela”, World Development, 9(7): 657–78. Guldin, G.E. (2001) What’s a Peasant to Do? Village becoming Town in Southern China, Boulder, CO: Westview Press. He, B. (1997) The Democratic Implications of Civil Society in China, New York: St. Martin’s Press. Heng, C.K. (1999) Cities of Aristocrats and Bureaucrats: The Development of Medieval Chinese Cities, Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press. Hsing, Y.T. (1998) Making Capitalism in China: The Taiwan Connection, New York: Oxford University Press. Leaf, M. (2005) “Modernity Confronts Tradition: the Professional Planner and Local Corporatism in the Rebuilding of China’s Cities”, in B. Sanyal (ed.) Comparative Planning Cultures, New York: Routledge. Leaf, M. (2002a) “Urban Development and the Search for Civil Society in China: A View from Quanzhou,” in S. Sargeson (ed.) Shaping Common Futures: Collective Goods and Collective Actions in East and Southeast Asia, London: Routledge. Leaf, M. (2002b) “A Tale of Two Villages: Globalization and Peri-Urban Change in China and Vietnam”, Cities, 19(1): 23–31. Leaf, M. (2000) “Globalization, Civil Society and Chinese Urban Development,” in T. Matsubara (ed.) Canada and Japan in the Pacific Rim Area: Proceedings of the Fifth Ritsumeikan-UBC Seminar, Kyoto: The Steering Committee of the Fifth RitsumeikanUBC Seminar, Ritsumeikan University. Leaf, M. (1998) “Urban Planning and Urban Reality under Chinese Economic Reforms”, Journal of Planning Education and Research, 18(2): 145–153. Leaf, M. (1995) “Inner City Redevelopment in China: Implications for the City of Beijing”, Cities, 12(1): 149–62. Leaf, M. and Abramson, D. (2002) “Global Networks, Civil Society and the Transformation of the Urban Core in Quanzhou, China,” in E. Heikkila and R. Pizarro (eds.) Southern California and the World, Westport, CT: Praeger. Liu, X.L. and Liang, W. (1997) “Zhejiangcun: Social and Spatial Implications of Informal Urbanization on the Periphery of Beijing”, Cities, 14(2): 95–108. Ma, L. and Xiang, B. (1998) “Native Place, Migration and the Emergence of Peasant Enclaves in Beijing”, The China Quarterly, 155: 546–81. Moser, C.O.N. (1982) “A Home of One’s Own: Squatter Housing Strategies in Guayaquil, Ecuador”, in A. Gilbert (ed.) Urbanization in Contemporary Latin America, Chichester: John Wiley and Sons.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 143
Civic space and integration in Chinese peri-urban villages 143 Oi, J. (1999) Rural China Takes Off: Institutional Foundations of Economic Reform, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Potter, P.B. (1998) “Economic and Legal Reform in China: Whither Civil Society and Democratization,” in J.D. Lindau and T. Cheek (eds.) Market Economics and Political Change: Comparing China and Mexico, Lantham, MD: Rowman and Littlefield. Putnam, R.D. (1993) Making Democracy Work: Civic Traditions in Modern Italy, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Scott, J.C. (1977) “Patron-Client Politics and Political Change in Southeast Asia,” in S.W. Schmidt et al. (eds.) Friends, Followers and Factions, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Scott, J.C. (1998) Seeing Like a State: How Certain Schemes to Improve the Human Condition Have Failed, New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Shue, V. (1994) “State Power and Social Organization in China”, in J.S. Migdal, A. Kohli and V. Shue (eds.) State Power and Social Forces, New York: Cambridge University Press. Skinner, G.W. (1977) “Introduction: Urban Social Structure in Ch’ing China”, in G.W. Skinner (ed.) The City in Late Imperial China, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Smart, A. (1986) “Invisible Real Estate: Investigations into the Squatter Property Market”, International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 10(1): 29–45. Solinger, D. (1999) Contesting Citizenship in Urban China: Peasant Migrants, the State and the Logic of the Market, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Soliner, D. (1995) “The Floating Population in the Cities: Chances for Assimilation”, in D.S. Davis, R. Kraus, B. Naughton and E.J. Perry (eds.) Urban Spaces in Contemporary China, New York: Cambridge University Press. Tsai, K.S. (2002) Back-Alley Banking: Private Entrepreneurs in China, Ithaca, NY: Cornell University Press. Turner, J.F.C. (1968) “Housing Patterns, Settlement Patterns, and Urban Development in Modernizing Countries”, Journal of the American Planning Association, 34(6): 354–63. UNCHS (United Nations Center for Human Settlements) (1990) The Global Strategy for Shelter to the Year 2000, Nairobi: UNCHS. Vernez, G. (1973) “Bogota’s Pirate Settlements: An Opportunity for Metropolitan Development”, doctoral dissertation, University of California, Berkeley. Walder, A.G. (1986) Communist Neo-Traditionalism: Work and Authority in Chinese Society, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Wang, C.G. (1995) “Communities of ‘Provincials’ in the Large Cities: Conflicts and Integration”, China Perspectives, 2: 17–21. Webster, D. (2001) “Inside Out: Peri-urbanization in China”, unpublished paper, Stanford University Asia Pacific Research Center. White, G. (1996a) In Search of Civil Society: Market Reform and Social Change in Contemporary China, New York: Oxford University Press. White, G. (1996b) “The Dynamics of Civil Society in Post-Mao China”, in B. Hook (ed.) The Individual and the State in China, Oxford: Clarendon Press. Woolcock, M. (1998) “Social Capital and Economic Development: Toward a Theoretical Synthesis and Policy Framework”, Theory and Society, 27(2): 151–208. Wu, W.P. (2002) “Temporary Migrants in Shanghai: Housing and Settlement Patterns”, in J. Logan (ed.) The New Chinese City: Globalization and Market Reform, London, Blackwell.
9780415397896_4_007.qxd 07/09/2007 09:04 Page 144
144 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Xiang, B. (1996) “How to Create a Visible ‘Non-State Space’ Through Migration and Marketized Traditional Networks: An Account of a Migrant Community in China,” paper presented at the International Conference on Chinese Rural Labor Force Mobility, Beijing, 25–27 June 1996. Yeh, A.G.O. and Wu, F.L. (1996) “The New Land Development Process and Urban Development in Chinese Cities”, International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 20(2): 330–53. Zhang, L. (2001) Strangers in the City: Reconfigurations of Space, Power, and Social Networks within China’s Floating Population, Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 145
8
The pavement as civic space History and dynamics in the city of Hanoi1 David Koh
Since the mid-1980s, the pavements of Hanoi have become keen spaces of contest between state and society. This contest was very visible, even pronounced in many places. Many people, including many former state employees, staked claims to pavement space where they had before respected the government’s regulations by a much larger measure. The key change occurred after 1990, when the market economy came into full play. Before economic freedom, the pavement had been relatively free of civil activity; by the late 1980s, such activity became a daily sight in Hanoi City, and a painful daily issue for Hanoi’s urban administrators. The push factors in the beginning were hyperinflation, economic restructuring and reduction of the state sector, which used to provide most of, if not all, the employment in Vietnam. People in Hanoi were joined by roaming vendors (hang rong) who came into the city from the villages to peddle farm produce. This was more the case after 1988 than before, because in 1988 the state liberalized the agriculture procurement system; peasants were allowed to sell their surpluses directly to the market after fulfilling state contracts. One could also see that market activity was not the only use people made of the pavement. In addition, especially in the 1980s and in older parts of the city where housing space for each family has been tight, many Hanoi residents reluctantly did their personal, family, and business chores on the pavement, including activities like personal hygiene tasks, washing, cooking, recreation and storing and displaying goods. These vending and household activities have had consequences for traffic safety, although they also make scenes on the pavement of Hanoi more colorful. Many pedestrians prefer to walk on the road because those pavement activities interrupt their walks on many busy streets. Pavement vending also causes interruptions, obstructions and hazards to traffic, because many motorists stop to make purchases (see Figure 8.1). Therefore, streets and pavements crowded with vending and household activities are more likely to cause traffic jams and accidents. Increased pavement vending, combined with huge increases in the number of vehicles on the road, poor driving habits and poor road infrastructure, are
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 146
146 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 8.1 Motorcycles and vendors, Nguyen Du Street, Hanoi, Vietnam.
responsible for a big increase in the number of traffic accidents, especially serious and fatal ones. With a view to reducing traffic accidents, the Vietnamese party-state has been trying to enforce order on the pavement in Hanoi. Two major campaigns, held respectively in 1986 and 1991, achieved much less than ideal results. The government was disoriented and merely coping until the third major campaign in 1995 managed to restore some sort of order. But the problem has only been partially solved. At many points and many times, much pavement – and even road space – of the city has been taken over by pavement activities of the people, by the people, and for the people. On the other hand, consider this paradox: the party-state has an administrative machinery that goes down to one people’s committee ward for about every 10,000 residents, one party cell for about every 500, and one state agent for every 100 people in Hanoi (Koh 2000). Population density in Hanoi is high, and state agents and neighbors can notice every act that transgresses the law. More important is the point that the Vietnamese state sees this extensive machinery as its tool to better govern society microscopically. To a large extent, this machinery has failed to live up to its high expectations. This paper will examine the history of state-society contest over the pavement in Hanoi. It will then point out the salient dynamics of the pavement
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 147
The pavement as civic space 147 contests, and then offer some thoughts on what kind of civic space is pavement space in Hanoi and how that impacts our thoughts about the relationship between civic space and civil society.
The serious traffic situation after 1975 There are many causes for the serious traffic situation after 1975. Some of the causes are direct, while others are indirect but provide the context in which the direct causes, one of which is pavement vending, are played out. One reason that has directed the Vietnamese government to install traffic and pavement campaigns has been the high number of fatalities and casualties. Elsewhere, I have laid out the reasons for the accidents, especially the high growth in vehicular traffic, bad road habits and poor infrastructure (Koh 2000). This paper will focus on efforts to tackle pavement congestion. Vending activities on streets and pavement in Hanoi have contributed to the constriction of road space. Trading on the pavement is not something new. For instance, the selling of food on the pavement has been seen in Hanoi for a long time, at least since the beginning of this century (Thach Lam 1943). In the late 1950s, pavement food operators numbered more than 10,000 across the city (Tran Huy Lieu 1960: 290). As a result of socialist policies from the 1950s to 1980s, which banned all purely private enterprises in the commerce sector, the pavement foodstalls had largely disappeared by 1960 (Ly Kien Quoc 1975: 23). Then came the rapid expansion of private trading activities in the 1980s, especially the sale of secondhand goods. In the middle of 1982, observers noted the appearance of illegal pavement markets selling secondhand goods along main streets such as Ngo Thi Nham (where the Hom market that sold fresh produce was located), Nguyen Cong Tru and Tran Nhat Duat (beside the old railway station at Long Bien Bridge). Later, the range of goods went beyond secondhand goods to the full range of fresh produce as well as cooked food, snacks, beverages, and even controlled items such as beer. Sellers took over the whole pavement, and on some streets where traffic was still not too heavy, they even traded on the streets (Nguyen Xuan 1982). The Nguyen Cong Tru market later developed into the famous and sprawling Open Market (Cho Troi), specializing in secondhand, stolen and smuggled goods, as well as electrical tools and appliances. Indeed, the many lanes within this market vanish and consolidate into a huge market area in the day, making the whole area impassable to traffic. Official figures on the number of private traders on the pavement are not available, but figures on the private sector’s share of trade may provide some clues. The share of the private sector in the total volume of trade in Hanoi jumped from 25.8 percent in 1975 to 50.6 percent in 1983, showing a temporary slowdown in increase only in 1981 (So Van hoa Thong tin and Thanh pho Ha Noi 1984: 91). The party-state looked upon the growth in private sector trade disapprovingly but could not stop it (To Huu 1980).
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 148
148 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia After 1975, the city authorities repeatedly promulgated pavement and traffic regulations, beginning with 971 QD/UBHC on April 1981. In particular, in 1984, for the first time, the city authorities stated that pavements were for walking on; other uses required approval from the Hanoi Department of Transportation and Urban Public Works (Giao thong Cong Chinh, henceforth GTCC) and fees would be charged. That indicated the beginning of an official state side to the pavement space contest in Hanoi. Before 1995, there had been at least three significant national campaigns to mobilize the people to help keep the streets clear and traffic orderly.
The first two traffic and pavement order campaigns: 1983–1991 The first known large scale campaign which had a traffic and pavement order component in the post-1975 era in Hanoi was one called “Tidy Houses, Clean Streets, Beautiful Capital” (gon nha – sach pho – dep thu do) in 1983. Clearing the pavement for pedestrians was one of many objectives of the Hanoi campaign (Tran Dung and Vu Long 1983) In Hanoi, the ward authorities are the basic level of urban state administration. They were responsible for implementation and enforcement, with the help of their self-defense militia and mass organizations. Pavement appropriators and squatters were given reprieves and a deadline to clear out. Not much else is known about this campaign unfortunately, but at that time the traffic situation was not as serious as it was in later years. In 1986, the national government started a national pavement and traffic order campaign called “404.” No reason was given officially for the campaign but it was probably a response to the worsening traffic order situation. The 404 campaign, named after the serial number of the government directive, mandated every ward in Hanoi to set up a “Team 404.” Each team consisted of ward officials, including the police, public works, and market management sections; neighborhood leaders such as party cell and resident group leaders; and mass organization representatives within the ward. The policemen received their orders directly from the District; they then coordinated their work with the 404 teams (P.V. 1986; Kim Dung 1988). The tone of implementation, however, was to educate rather than punish; ward authorities sought to establish practices in each resident cluster that promoted education, and awareness, as well as peer pressure. Resident group heads and mass organization representatives who worked under the wards’ direction briefed households under their charge of the traffic rules and penalties, and what to do or not do within their locality. Another method used was mobilization by mass organizations and neighborhood leaders. For instance, the Ho Chi Minh Youth Group (there is a branch of the Group in every ward) roped in its members to patrol the
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 149
The pavement as civic space 149 streets during the peak hours (Nguyen Trieu 1988; P.V. and Quang Nghia 1983). Mobilization was only reinforced with regular patrols by a team of regular ward inspectors, directed by the police. In 1988, the City legislated heftier fines for offenses against its “Regulations on fines for traffic order and safety in the City of Hanoi,” indicating that a stronger deterrent was required and the pavement and traffic situation probably got worse (Uy ban Nhan dan Thanh pho Ha Noi 1988). Other indicators were vigorous complaints from journalists about the huge growth in numbers of pavement vendors who operated without licenses from the city authorities. A GTCC official explained to the Ha Noi Moi,2 the Hanoi daily newspaper, that his office was shorthanded, that sometimes pavement situations were out of control and had to be ignored. However, the media and the public were of the view that the disorder on the pavement was due to the GTCC and the ward administrators, especially the ward police “selling” pavement space. GTCC and ward officials, according to critics, were turning a blind eye in exchange for bribes for individual law enforcers or kickbacks for their organizations. These allegations were neither denied nor confirmed by the same GTCC official, whose answers were evasive. Meanwhile, other newspaper sources made the same allegations (Thanh Chi 1991; Nguyen Quang Hoa 1991). Incompetence and corruption, however, were only parts of the picture. At least four other reasons explain why the situation worsened. First, the GTCC officials were unable to cope with the growth in numbers of pavement vendors. Private sector trade was legitimized after the Sixth VCP National Congress in 1986. The growth in pavement vending was also due to many people turning to trading on the pavement to fight hyperinflation using the quickest, if not the most effective, way. In 1991, it was estimated that the pavement economy could have employed 23,000 people, more than double the number of pavement breakfast operators in the late 1950s (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1991). Whether to crack down strictly on unlicensed operators posed a big dilemma for authorities. Vendors on the pavement were being gainfully employed in the difficult economic environment. The vendors were of course causing much disruption in social order on the streets, but the trade-off for a more orderly pavement was fewer jobs, which would undermine political stability. Second, the GTCC bureaucracy was hindering applications for licenses to use the pavement for trading. The bureaucratic delays they caused persuaded many pavement vendors that they should not bother with applying for official licenses, and success was not guaranteed anyway. Instead, vendors bribed ward officials to mediate and ignore their activities. Potential license applicants saw many unlicensed vendors not being fined or dealt with, or were dealt with by the ward only periodically and sparingly. Vendors then decided formal licenses were inferior to the mediation method (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1991). Some illegal vendors received special treatment based on family ties and friendship, whereas other illegal
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 150
150 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia vendors paid the ward or ward officials in order to stay open for business (Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991). Many vendors with neither licenses nor connections were willing to be “fined” periodically, indicating that their profits were quite attractive and could absorb the cost of fines or bribes, or both. Third, law enforcers were also facing stiff resistance from pavement vendors, many of whom persisted on the pavement because proper markets that could house them were insufficient (Dinh Huong Son 1990; Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991). Many vendors, especially roaming vendors, did not want to obtain a regular seat in the regular markets because of the overheads. Places were also insufficient, and residents of Hanoi were given priority in their allocation (Tran Hung 1997). A policeman of the Truong Dinh Ward referred to the roaming vendors from the villages who faced a similar situation: Soon, when we enforce the new regulations on fines [in 1988 for traffic and pavement order] it would be easy to deal with motorists or with people with pushcarts, but as for the women who are selling vegetables and fruits [on the pavement] in the early mornings beside the Mo market, it would be very difficult to enforce rules. They strive to sell as much as possible so as to get back to their farm work. They cannot find places in the market. When we chase after them and they move on to sit at the junctions, they then become the victims of petty thievery. Every ward is facing the same problem and trying to look for a solution. (Kim Dung 1988) Ward policemen were also afraid of pushing the pavement people too hard. For instance, a government official said a good way of maintaining police authority on the pavement was to make sure they did not have to face challenges from consumers and vendors at the same time, especially during the peak hours of traffic and market activity. Ward policemen thus usually operated two daily shifts to patrol the pavement. The first shift started well before six o’clock in the morning and focused on preventive action: they let roaming vendors and residents use the pavement, but asked the users to tidy up before the peak hour period, from eight to nine in the morning (Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991). Fourth, ward officials were lax because they were responding to local needs. To them and their residents, pavement vendors brought the convenience of a larger array of goods and services to their doorsteps. This convenience was important for housewives and shopkeepers who did not want to go too far to the market for their daily marketing. People who are on their way to or from work usually preferred to do their daily marketing on their motorcycles or bicycles for convenience, and they preferred to stop where there were pavement vendors rather than park and walk into markets. Their interests coincided with those of pavement vendors (Tran
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 151
The pavement as civic space 151 Hung 1997). The case of Trang Tien Ward demonstrated how wards may have responded to local needs. In that ward, a regular but illegal and disorderly fresh produce market met on Nguyen Khac Can Street. Roaming vendors there often took over the whole street as well as its pavement. On average, there were two to three traffic accidents a day whose causes were traced to the market crowd. However, instead of clearing the vendors from the street market, the ward made its own internal decision against city regulations to allow the market to continue, with the condition that it conducted business in an orderly fashion. The ward’s reason was that residents in the area needed the street market as there was no proper market in that area (Ton Xuan Thich 1988). Poor results of implementation of the “404” campaign, therefore, seemed to be related to the overwhelming socio-economic situation, other than just corruption. Regulations for pavement usage, such as requiring formal licenses for vending activities, did not make life easier for various groups of people in society who needed extra income badly. Consequently, voices for changing the pavement regime emerged from the middle of 1990. The Ha Noi Moi reflected public opinion that the 1984 central government regulation of allowing only pedestrian activity on the pavement was unrealistic (1990). Following that, the GTCC experimented with allowing licensed vending on certain streets and lanes in Hanoi, but not on Hanoi’s major roads. In the middle of 1991, the Hanoi City People’s Council debated on GTCC’s experiment and agreed the GTCC could issue licenses for limited business use of the pavement. The criteria to be used by the GTCC for deciding which roads to exclude or include were the condition and width of the pavement (Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991). This change in policy generated an immense response from society. Trading business license applicants increased from only 28,000 in 1989 to 53,000 in 1991, and a large number of them applied to operate on the pavement (Tien Phu & Phan Tuong 1993). From mid-1990, when the GTCC began its experiment, until December 1991, the GTCC issued 9,000 pavement vending licenses, or 16 per day, which was about 37 percent of the total number of pavement vendors (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1991). These city level adaptations that softened the governmental regulations were, however, reversed several months later in December 1991 by a new nationwide traffic and pavement order campaign (Decree 135/CT). To implement the national government decree, the Hanoi City People’s Council issued an order called the 57/UB.
The 57/UB (December 1991) The objectives of 57/UB were to prevent further growth of legitimate pavement vending and to restore order on the pavement. The city directive stopped the issuing of new pavement vending licenses, except for applicants whose families were in genuine financial difficulties.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 152
152 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Furthermore, the 57/UB required business entities to have a shop front if they wanted to provide services (Ha Noi Moi 1991), but it was clear the government could not apply the rule to thousands of petty service providers such as bicycle repairers and motorcycle taxi drivers, just to name two of them. The policy reversals were probably caused by the fear that licensed traders would overwhelm the pavement, making the problem worse, not better. By then, licensed business users of the pavement could prove difficult to remove from the pavement, if it was ever necessary to do so. To implement 57/UB, the city administration emphasized mobilization and education rather than strict enforcement. In 35 localities across Hanoi where the traffic situation was particularly pressing, the City police patrolled with 35 “self-management teams.” Each team member received 30,000 dong per month (about US$3 at that time) for helping the police patrol streets, dealing with traffic offenses and accidents and for resolving social conflicts among residents (caused by competition in use of the pavement) (ibid). The teams worked only during peak hours in the morning and in the late afternoon-early evening (Bui Ba Manh 1991). They did not have legal powers to enforce the law; the maximum extent of their capability was to remind people of the rules and to threaten reporting the offenders who did not follow the rules (Le Phuong Hien 1992). Most if not all the team members were people who were middle-aged, army veterans, unemployed youths or members of families who were poor. Thus, the exercise also looked like one that sought to create employment. Instead of establishing “self-management” teams, some wards chose to utilize the existing “people’s defense force” (dan phong), which comprised mainly war veterans, to assist the police. The city authorities also asked the wards to use a few other mobilization methods. One method, which has stayed a feature of mobilization in the implementation of many party-state policies, was to ask all residents and people in work places to sign a pledge (giay cam ket). By signing the pledge, signatories acknowledged that they had been briefed by a ward official of the 57/UB rules. They promised compliance, and if found wanting, had to accept punishment without question. Other than individual residents, people in workplaces – including private businesses – were also asked to sign the pledge (Tran Que Thuong 1992a, 1992b). Another method of mobilization was to use the public address system to announce daily messages, reminders and important notices of the ward to residents. The timing of addresses was usually at half-past seven in the morning, and half past four in the afternoon. Each address lasted about half an hour. Most reports on the implementation of the 57/UB by Hanoi’s wards saw immediate improvements. The City administration claimed initial successes for the 57/UB campaign (Phan Thi Boi Hoan 1992; Tran Que Thuong 1992a; Kim Dung 1992; Phan Tuong 1993). The combination of mainly mobilization methods, peak hour direction by the police at busy junctions and roads, and daily attention from the wards and the districts extracted
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 153
The pavement as civic space 153 results. Immediately after 57/UB took effect, appropriation of the pavement almost ceased, indicating the effectiveness of the ward party-state machinery, if it did focus on the job. In the Hoan Kiem District the transformation was particularly stark, because pavement offenses and traffic disorder were most serious in this center of trade (Vu Dinh Hoanh 1993). Some wards such as Cat Linh reported a more orderly traffic situation after the self-management teams went into action (Le Phuong Hien 1992). Most people, however, were pessimistic about the 57/UB campaign remaining effective for long. True enough, around three months after implementation started, complaints about the return to disorder began to pour in (Nguyen Van Xay 1992: 1). Ward officials were reportedly “tired” and not paying attention to the daily routines of supervision and checking on management of pavement; diligence separated wards that had implemented the 57/UB effectively from those who had not. Because of the shortage of hands, follow-up action by ward officials to maintain order was very weak (Kim Dung 1992; Tuong Anh 1992; Thanh Hung 1992). A few interviews I conducted among Hanoi’s residents who witnessed the pavement situation in the early 1990s suggested at that time the pavement of streets such as Lo Duc and Nguyen Cong Tru were full of stalls, so much so that one could never stroll smoothly without coming across obstacles or being forced to walk on the street (Fieldnotes 26/11/1996; 28/11/1996; 18/12/1996). These two streets were, moreover, not the hottest spots of disorder in Hanoi. There were two main weaknesses of the 57/UB. The first was the unevenness of implementation. The observant noted that policy implementation had been “administratized” (hanh chinh hoa), meaning that the policy had an impact only during office hours, when ward policemen and inspectors were still present on the streets (Phan Thi Boi Hoan 1992; Thanh Hung 1992; Thuy Hang 1993). After office hours, pavement vendors came back onto the pavement in full force. Furthermore, when offenders were caught, some were dealt with strictly, while others were let off. In some wards, officials even completely ignored the pavement situation. The uneven treatment happened sometimes on the same street, such as when two or several wards shared one long street. For instance, on the eastern side of Le Duan Road was the Cua Nam Ward of the Hoan Kiem District. The Ward was strict in preventing spontaneous street markets from forming around the proper Cua Nam market. On the western side of the same stretch of the road 200 meters away, however, the Van Mieu Ward of Dong Da District ignored disorganized markets at the entrance to the Tran Qui Cap railway station. “This made the people have different opinions about law enforcers – that this one was good, the other was bad . . .” (Kim Dung 1992). Unevenness devalued the impact of mobilization, because people saw no need to obey government policies if officials played favorites (Thanh Thuy 1994). There were also indicators that the unevenness was because ward authorities “sold” pavement space, such as in Nguyen Du ward
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 154
154 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia where the owners of a cafe took over the recreation space previously reserved for school students but they were never dealt with by the ward authority (Thanh Thuy 1994). This lease of public space has been researched by Peter Higgs (1996). While the unevenness was thought by journalists to be caused by ward officials “selling” pavement space, it was not necessarily so all the time (Thanh Mai 1992a). Instead, unevenness might have reflected the contradictory pulls in different directions by public opinion, city-level decision-makers and ward implementers. Essentially the tension was about a choice between enforcing rules strictly or in a flexible manner. Some people favored a total ban of pavement vendors, but their opposition thought a total ban meant that housewives had to walk further to satisfy daily marketing needs and had to subject themselves to higher prices in the proper markets if there was no competition from the pavement. Furthermore, where would the vendors go, and what would they do to earn a living? Housewives and vendors were happy with lax wards such as Nguyen Du, but residents who did not earn their living on the pavement complained of congestion and disorder and wished that the Nguyen Du Ward authority were stricter (Tran Que Thuong 1992b, Vu Dinh Hoanh 1993).3 Evidently, the wards have had a role in fine-tuning the party-state policy. According to journalists and officials, ward officials could assess the needs of each and every neighborhood and decide whether some roaming vendors should be allowed total freedom on smaller streets at marketing hours if they were not likely to affect traffic conditions. The best example of such a peak-hour-only market after 1996 would be Le Ngoc Han Street, which is not a major traffic artery but parallel to one. During marketing hours, the whole street is turned into a market and vehicles are not allowed to enter. This market was used to channel all roaming vendors from the very busy Lo Duc Street just next to it. Because this was an informal arrangement, roaming vendors objected to my taking photographs of the scene. The ward could report on the situation to the upper levels, and make suggestions to fine-tune the policy. The result of such feedback led to a suggestion by the City Police Department to the city authorities to allow some 20 markets, which had been formed by pavement vendors, to be recognized as permanent markets. Fifty-two other such markets were classified as temporary (meaning they were illegal but tolerated) and thus also allowed to continue operations (Vu Dinh Hoanh 1993). Within two years of implementation, in the Hai Ba Trung District, 62,790 pavement businesses were relocated to markets successfully (Phan Tuong 1993). Part of the “credit” for the continued freedom of pavement vendors goes to the vendors themselves. Because of their experience with previous campaigns, most vendors were able to gain the upper hand over policemen and inspectors. They adopted a wait-and-see attitude when the 57/UB began;
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 155
The pavement as civic space 155 several days after the [57/UB] campaign was started, at the stalls which had appropriated [the pavement], the sheds which had been taken apart, their owners used nylon [sheets] to cover or close up temporarily. Who can be sure that the sheds would not become active again, or return to these places, when the private businesses [insist to] carry on displaying their wares for sale at the same places as well? (Thanh Mai 1992b) After the initial fervor of the campaign had died down, pavement vendors reverted to their old ways, slowly and cautiously (Tuong Anh 1992). Using a method similar to the way people built illegal sheds and houses on public land, They appropriated upon the pavement using the “impose and extend” method, a little bit every day, and slowly becoming bolder, making the situation “comfortable to the eye” not just to the business owners but also to enforcement personnel as well. When the latter bothered to stop and look closely, the pavement was already full of goods. Everybody wanted to expand their spaces, people fought with each other for places to sit which caused disorder, traffic jams and traffic accidents. Ward police numbers were just too few and spread too thin; they were often ineffective. (Le Phuong Hien 1992) A survey done in two Hanoi wards (not mentioned by name in the source) by the Hanoi Police Department in 1992 revealed that 100 percent of vendors who gathered in illegal markets, on pavement and streets in those two wards responded with “lack of concern” (khong quan tam) for the 57/UB, and 35 percent of respondents knowingly offended rules that prohibited pavement vending (Nguyen Xuan Yem 1995). The situation in 1994 was worrisome to the government. In 1993 as well as 1994 the accident figures showed that, on average, every five days in Hanoi four persons died and six were injured in traffic accidents (Kim Lien 1994). In the first half of 1995, the number of traffic accidents in Hanoi ballooned to 3,100, and the number of dead and injured was 1,429 and 2,326 respectively. These figures, if correct, meant an average of 13 traffic deaths per day in those six months. The government linked the worsening situation to pavement vending, with a new government campaign, the 36/CP, continuing to target pavement vendors as a cause of traffic accidents (SRV 1995).
The 36/CP, May 1995 Preparatory work for the 36/CP was extensive. The government promulgated the decree in late May 1995 but, in contrast to the style of implementation in past campaigns, delayed the effective date till 1 August 1995.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 156
156 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia It was to give people and state agencies more time to prepare and get used to the new campaign. During the months of transition, the mass media did its part by holding special programs and quizzes to promote awareness. Every day, television stations fed audiences with traffic rules and news on major traffic events. The government also used long-established propaganda methods, such as putting up huge posters, hanging red banners with slogans across streets, and erecting painted panels on all major roads. A steering committee for 36/CP was established at every level of state administration and every government agency (Ha Noi Moi 1995b; Bui Danh Luu 1995). The 36/CP was implemented at all levels well before the effective date, and all offenses were forgiven in the approximately two months leading up to the effective date of 1 August 1995. All efforts were to make sure that on the effective day, a fundamental change in traffic order was already in place (K.D. 1995). In terms of market management, the 36/CP granted City authorities the right to make some exceptions on designated streets to allow display and sale of goods, although in principle all pavements and roads could only be used for the purposes of commuting and traffic. The Hanoi administration managed to disperse 21 illegal street markets causing traffic jams (K.D. 1995). Plans were to disperse another 16 that had caused less urgent traffic problems, although this matter pended on local authorities to draw up plans on relocation of vendors, indicating possible resistance from the districts and wards who were more concerned with the livelihood and marketing convenience issues. At the neighborhood level, the government continued to ask wards to use mobilization methods. Many meetings to publicize the 36/CP were carried out among the people (K.D. 1995; Ha Noi Moi 1995b). Wards distributed materials published by the city to publicize the 36/CP, and utilized the loudspeaker system to remind people of the “do’s and don’ts” at particular points of congestion in the wards. On a daily basis as well, groups of volunteers of the ward, especially the “storm troopers,” (doi xung kich) patrolled streets and reminded people about pavement and traffic rules (Vinh Yen 1995). All households, especially those who had a shopfront facing the street, were asked to sign a pledge that required them to ensure that there was always a corridor wide enough for pedestrians to use (Nhom Phong Vien 1995; P.V. 1996). During the grace period, offenders who were forgiven were asked to sign a pledge and promise not to repeat offenses (Thu Huong 1995; Manh Hung 1995). However, under the 36/CP, Hanoi’s wards went beyond mobilization to emphasize self-regulation at the neighborhood levels, through further development of the “self-management” model. Making households responsible for the portion of the pavement in front of their houses is a method already mentioned. Several other variants of the “self-management” teams, first used under the 57/UB, also appeared. One variant was called the “Self-Managed Family Groups” (nhom lien gia tu quan). Each of these
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 157
The pavement as civic space 157 mutual-help and self-policing groups consisted of seven to ten neighboring households. Its members adopted rules of the 36/CP, and where necessary, provided separate rules and agreements among themselves to tackle special pavement order problems specific to the group’s area. With the backing of the ward’s authority, these groups were able to enforce rules on fellow residents. In this way, the police were kept out, and minor offenses were dealt with within the group. The authorities hoped that such selfpolicing would cultivate considerate pavement habits for the future (Kim Dung 1995). The same self-management method was extended to private businesses, state agencies and enterprises (P.Q. 1996b). Another variant of “self-management” was to have an “alliance” between the schools and the ward authority to deal with traffic and pavement problems caused by schools. Most schools of Hanoi are located on narrow streets and the crowd of students and parents in front of the school gate waiting for pickup or for friends pose traffic hazards and jams. Learning centers and tuition centers also produce the same problems in the early and mid-evening. In August 1995 the Hang Trong Ward pioneered the “alliance” model by arranging to have the schools publicize the 36/CP and using citizen education periods to promote awareness. The schools informed the ward what time school dismissed and even arranged for parents to pick up their children at a place that was further away from the school, but possessed wider space for parking and waiting. The schools helped the wards by spacing out the dismissal times at 15 minute intervals (P.Q. 1996b). Other wards with schools on busy streets also practised this method, such as Pham Dinh Ho Ward with a school on the Lo Duc Street, Nguyen Du ward with a school on Tran Xuan Soan Street, and Hang Bai ward with the school on Ly Thuong Kiet Street. One member of the public commented that the 36/CP was the best public policy ever implemented in terms of effectiveness because it had the personal attention of the Prime Minister (Vinh Yen 1995). Indeed, in its first month the 36/CP proved much more effective than all its predecessors, and much credit went to its intensive and extensive preparations. The Minister for Traffic and Transport noted that the 36/CP had created a mood of voluntary compliance, something that the government had failed to accomplish in the past. The good result was unexpected (“bat ngo”) (Bui Danh Luu 1995). Most of the newspaper reports on implementation of the 36/CP in Hanoi noted its success. Many foreigners on return visits to Hanoi after the 36/CP started have told me that traffic order and cleanliness had improved tremendously. The success of the 36/CP could be measured quantitatively by the fact that in Hanoi, one month after implementation began, there were only 27 accidents, causing 14 dead and 24 injured, a substantial reduction compared to monthly averages before the 36/CP was implemented (P.V. 1995; Bui Danh Luu 1995; Nguyen Quang Hoa 1995). However, the media and members of the public did not believe that the good, orderly situation in the early days of the 36/CP would last, even though generally people supported the policy. They called the expected
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 158
158 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia phenomenon “elephant head, rat tail” (dau voi duoi chuot), a term that described something that started with a bang but was never followed-up or done thoroughly (Minh Duc 1997). That worry was later proven valid. Two months into the campaign, many readers of the Ha Noi Moi wrote in to complain that the streets and pavements of Hanoi had become disorderly again. In many places, vendors and residents again openly flouted rules right under street signs which prohibited those offenses (Thanh Chi 1995). After adopting a wait-and-see attitude for two months, during which they stayed low, unlicensed vendors cautiously re-emerged. Their new setups became more modest and mobile, so as to be ready for any police swoop which they no doubt kept a keen look-out for (Nguyen Truong Giang 1995). Upon seeing the police within 50 meters away, they packed up quickly and dashed for the small lanes, or got up and pretended to be walking and carrying their products somewhere, which was not an offence. In the evenings when dusk fell, however, fresh produce sellers usually could stand on street corners without fear of being harassed by police. Policemen and “self-management” team members did not work overtime; so cooked food stalls usually emerged in the evening to take advantage of “administratization” (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1995). The Hang Da market area is the best example. Shops that normally displayed their wares within shops in the day put goods out on the pavement in the evenings. Cafes all around the City put out their stools and coffee tables onto the pavement when night arrived. Basically, at certain times of day and in the night, the pavement was unaffected by the 36/CP. I frequently observed implementation of 36/CP around the Ngo Thi Nham, Dong Nhan, Nguyen Cong Tru wards, the Hang Da and Hom markets and within the city center. I found that the police and “self-management” teams were very active between eight o’clock to eleven o’clock in the morning, and between four o’clock and six o’clock in the evening. They were usually not seen in these areas at other hours at all. The city police department did informal surveys across the whole city five months after the 36/CP began, and found that all pavement on 180 streets surveyed usually saw the pavement economy come to life in the early mornings and late evenings (Tien Chinh 1996). Evidently, the local authorities have no choice but to allow the situation to return to chaos after office hours because of the lack of manpower. Here, I would like to divide up the analysis of reasons for the limitations of the campaign into those that pertain specifically to the 36/CP and those that underlaid every major traffic order policy in the City of Hanoi. One of the problems with the 36/CP was that while the high level of fines was meant to deter offenders, this had no effect on the intention of vendors to trade on the pavement. Because the minimum fine was 50,000 dong, roaming vendors who sold cheap fresh produce usually did not bother to retrieve their goods after the goods were confiscated. The cost of their products was usually only 10,000 dong, a more bearable loss than the fines
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 159
The pavement as civic space 159 when we consider that their daily profit was only 10,000 to 20,000 dong (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1995; Bich Huu & Bich Huong 1997). Furthermore, because inspection work was uneven and irregular, vendors knew that if they kept off the well-inspected streets during office hours and were sharp enough, they stood a good chance of not ever being caught. Even when the policemen were on hand, they were able to wrangle with the police in order to free themselves. There was no way to make a fine stick with the offending individual, and no penalty can thus be effectively demanded if the offender does not come forward. While people applauded efforts to clear the pavement and make roads safer, many people were also unhappy with the many inconveniences the 36/CP caused. People had to take care of how they parked their vehicles to keep the walkways clear, when there was no such need and nobody had any authority to tell them how to park their vehicles before. People could no longer carry out activities on the pavement which they would rather not do within their homes – such as washing of vehicles, or clothes, even though they could still do so at night, after office hours. Businesses could no longer use the pavement as their daytime warehouses or workshops. Having to move things into the house during the day limited the scale of their business and pushed them into size constraints within the house (Fieldnotes 28/11/1996). At the household level, the 36/CP also reduced convenience for some housewives because not every street and ward allowed roaming vendors. The view from the ward was that it was given a huge task that was impossible to enforce properly and faithfully without adequate manpower (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1995). “Administratization” and unevenness in implementation were related to inadequate compensation for ward policemen and ward patrol team members. For example, a member of the “selfmanagement team” – not considered a state employee – was paid 200,000 dong per month in 1995.4 Compare that with the “official” monthly remuneration of ward officials and some other wage earners in 1996/97 by referring to Table 8.1. The amount of formal income that ward officials, ward policemen and members of the “self-management teams” earn is not enough to maintain decent living standards for a household of four persons. The open secret in Vietnam is: Most party-state employees at any level of government would have some source of side income which they spent time acquiring after or even during office hours. For this fact, Vietnamese have an idiom that says, “The outer leg is longer than the inner leg (chan ngoai dai hon chan trong),” with “outer leg” referring to the informal economy and “inner leg” referring to formal employment. Most officials of the ward would be no different. Furthermore, because of the lack of funds, “selfmanagement” team members were not required to do a whole day’s work, let alone overtime. Some wards even reported shortage of funds for the policemen’s overtime pay or to buy printed copies of the 36/CP (each
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 160
160 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Table 8.1 Approximate salary levels of a sample of officials of a ward and some other low-salary earners in non-ward employment, circa 1997. Job
Approximate official salary or income per month (dong)
Trishaw drivers
300,000 to 500,000 (Minh Quang & Pham Hieu 1997)
Roaming vendors
300,000 and above (10,000 to 20,000 per day)
Road sweepers
700,000 to 1,000,000 (Thu Thuy 1996)
State cadres*
140,000 starting salary (Head of a Section got around 450,000.)
Ward policemen
300,000 onwards (A policemen in service for about ten years already received close to 1 million per month.)
Chairman of people’s committee
390,000 (after twenty years of service)
Ward doctor
300,000 (about five to ten years of service)
Resident group head
50,000
Assistant resident group head
30,000
Ward party secretary
450,000 (more than twenty years of service)
Party cell secretary
30,000
Retirees
200,000 (Retired senior ranks from the armed services, such as a Senior Colonel (dai Ta) got about 1,000,000.)
Source: From various local sources compiled by author. Note: Jobs in italics are directly in party-state employment. Road sweepers are employed by state companies and I consider them to be indirectly under state employment. The statistics were gathered from newspaper reports, interviews, and conversations with ward officials and many friends who were state cadres.
ward had to buy its own from the official publisher, the Nha Xuat Ban Chinh Tri Quoc Gia, or National Politics Publishing House) to distribute to every policeman (Nguyen Quang Hoa 1995). Such a situation encouraged many pavement vendors to switch to vending at night or during daylight hours when ward officials paid no attention. For instance, one only needs to walk, during breakfast time as well as lunch time, around government offices in the middle of Hanoi to see temporary food stalls appearing on the pavement. Food stalls or shops also appropriate the pavement with extra tables and chairs. In fact, the operator of my favorite noodles stall, Phuong, operates the whole morning and early afternoon, but between half past eight and eleven o’clock in the morning, which are the hours of police inspections, she moves into a small lane. From six o’clock to half past eight in the morning, and from eleven o’clock to two in the afternoon, she mostly operates without harassment. Her working hours are the result of an informal understanding between her and the ward on how best to balance her economic needs and the
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 161
The pavement as civic space 161 need to maintain order on the pavement. She has to meet with the leadership of the ward once a month “to work” (lam viec), a term for the monthly meeting with the ward at which her situation is assessed. At the meeting, she may have to pay formal and informal taxes.
Underlying factors The chief difficulty experienced by the Hanoi city in ensuring order on the streets and pavement is still the road infrastructure of the city. Major traffic arteries attract people to set up businesses as well as attract vendors. Therefore, expanding the present carrying capacity of roads and streets within the city heavily used by traffic is a major task. Official measurements of present road usage rate may underestimate the real situation. In 1995, a Hanoi city official cited a government survey of 137 Hanoi traffic junctions that found 46.3 percent of traffic junctions had a flow rate of 300 vehicles per hour (5 per minute), 34.55 percent had 300–500 per hour (5–8.3 per minute) and 13.5 percent had the highest range of 500–800 per hour (8.3–13.3 per minute) (Vu Dinh Hoanh 1995). People who have lived in Hanoi along busy streets and know its major roads at busy hours may consider these figures low. For my own curiosity, in December 1995, at about four o’clock in the afternoon, close to evening peak hours, I stood on Lo Duc Street, across from the walls of the Ministry of Forestry and Development of Agriculture, to count the traffic flow rate. The road width was about seven meters with traffic going in two directions. Lo Duc was a fairly busy street with schools, markets, lots of shops, and was a major artery linking the city center to the southeast corner of the city that was witnessing rapid residential development. I counted an average of 60 vehicles (all types included) per minute passing in either direction. That amounted to 3,600 vehicles per hour, about four times the highest official estimate. The second major, underlying difficulty is that a vast number of people depend on pavement vending in varying degrees for their livelihood. Economic difficulties in the late 1980s forced many people to “burst out” (bung ra) onto the pavement to make a living or to make enough to cover what was lost though inflation. As a result, whether it was a deliberate directive from the top or merely the awareness of officials at lower levels, ward officials have believed that people must be given some breathing space in these difficult times. One ward chairman noted, “The people can row the boat, but they can overturn the boat as well . . . The political authority must be flexible; the people cannot take it if it is too tough.” [“Dan la nguoi cheo thuyen, cung la nguoi lat thuyen . . . Chinh quyen phai biet co gian, qua cung thi nguoi dan khong chiu noi.”] (Fieldnotes, 17/5/1997) At the same time, however, the policemen were also afraid of eliciting adverse reactions from large groups of people who depended on the pavement for livelihood, although it depended on the ability of the vendors to stay their ground. When I asked an informant why she thought traffic order in Hanoi was not ideal, she said,
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 162
162 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia In Vietnam, it is difficult to order people around. The law is only for people who are obedient. Those who are not obedient often have a powerful way to escape compliance. The simplest traffic order example to see this difference is to contrast the women selling vegetables from two baskets hanging from a pole, with the man selling fruits on pushbikes. When the ladies are ordered by the policemen to clear the pavement or the streets, they would usually move on. But the men, being men and stronger, could refuse. If the policemen try to use force, force would be used in return, and so the policemen have no choice but to leave those men alone. Such daily occurrences are a reminder to people that if one has power, one may stay above the law. (Fieldnotes 10/3/1997) The awareness that people cannot be pushed too hard is now evident in the decisions that the party-state makes. The 36/CP contained a provision whereby city authorities should make sure that adequate amount of pavement space is allocated to vendors to cater to marketing conveniences and livelihood for roaming vendors. On 20 October 1995, via Decision 3814/ QD-UB, the city authority officially allowed some vendor trading on 57 streets and small lanes of Hanoi, and provided the conduct of vending followed five guiding principles (Ha Noi Moi 1995a). These principles were not published but I gather from observation they were the following: • • • • •
vendors should be from poor families; they should not contribute to traffic disorder (and thus would be allowed only at certain times of the day); they should not be allowed where the pavement is too narrow; they should clean up any rubbish at the end of the day; and they should pay taxes to the ward.
The city also allowed retirees (whose pensions were not sufficient to sustain them) to sell lottery tickets on pavement stalls. Motorists stopped at their stalls freely without being harassed by policemen. But the retirees’ plight was addressed only after the Ha Noi Moi urged the city authorities to consider giving them special concessions (Tuan Anh 1997; Huong Thuy 1995). The awareness of being careful with people’s livelihood penetrates the ward level of administration. For instance, at a ward meeting convened for my formal visit to the ward, the chairwoman of the ward’s Women’s Association said the reason why the roaming vendors were driven off from the pavement while vendors who were residents could stay was because the ward had to help residents with economic difficulties. Women’s Association officials also acted as guarantors for poor families when the latter asked for permission from the ward to have a vending stall on the pavement, and the ward gave their requests special consideration (Fieldnotes 17/5/1997).
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 163
The pavement as civic space 163 One other way to gain further insight into how ward officials see the need for them to be flexible towards vendors is to see the work conditions of two groups of people – the roaming vendors and the ward policemen. Roaming vendors There are mixed feelings among the public and the government regarding whether to allow vendors to ply the streets (Chi Thanh 1988; Dinh Huong Son 1990; Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991; Thanh Chi 1991; Nguyen Truong Giang 1995). One view says that modernity is not compatible with the business nature of roaming vendors. They pollute and congest the city, and the urban landscape loses its beauty. The opposite view, such as that represented by the newspaper articles that called for breathing spaces for hard-pressed people, want the roaming vendors to remain, but under control and management. What have roaming vendors done to evoke such contrasting views? Most roaming vendors in Hanoi are from the excess rural work force in their villages. They come to Hanoi in between planting seasons to look for temporary jobs, such as selling cooked food and durables to supplement the family income. A substantial number come to Hanoi and stay a few days at a time to sell farm produce directly to customers for greater profit instead of selling them through middlemen (Do Ngoc Duong 1995). When their own goods are sold out, these roaming vendors return to their villages to procure more or buy more from the wholesale markets in Hanoi to resell. Their petty trade usually does not attract the taxmen and their overheads are low, so they are serious competitors to traders sitting in the markets (Nguyen Chi Tinh 1991; Nguyen Quang Hoa 1991; Tran Thanh Tuong 1998). Pavement vendors usually know that their trading activities on the pavement are against the law. “They do not protest, they do not wish to apply for a shophouse to trade in; they just want the state to allow them to live off the pavement” (D.T. Phuong 1997). But to survive, they have to be conversant in “guerrilla” tactics in avoiding law enforcers. Fresh produce roaming vendors thus have to use the tactic of perpetual walking and sticking close to the shops’ end of the pavement if they have to stop. Consequently, their lot is hard; each day, they may walk for kilometers within the city while carrying the weight of goods on their shoulders (Tuan Anh 1997). The first reason why people and the government have mixed feelings about roaming vendors is that while they bring conveniences to a large number of people on a daily basis, they also cause road traffic to slow down considerably and become more hazardous. The roaming vendors tend to stand on the pavement of busy streets at peak hours of traffic to attract as many commuters as possible. This behavior holds up traffic flow, and is greatly disliked by commuters. The risk is great to the vendors when they do so. Streets with busy traffic are usually well-patrolled during peak hours. Therefore, when police patrols arrive to corner the vendors,
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 164
164 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Many scenes bring tears to eyes. One policeman is sighted, and the sellers shout: “Police! Police!” The roaming vendors scamper in all directions. Shoulder poles hook into each other, spilling fruits and vegetables onto the road. Everyone tugged and pulled to disentangle from another. Noisy arguments drew people to assemble and watch. Sounds of rushing and nagging intermixed with cursing and crying. (Mai Hoa 1996) The unlucky ones, whose poles and shoulders the policemen could reach, argue, resist, beg, and at the same time pull away from the policemen. If they were lucky the policemen might let them go. As long as the vendors’ reconnaissance is good, trading arrangements mobile, and are not hemmed in by the patrol teams, they can usually move on without being detained by the policemen. Those with slower reflexes are less lucky. Even after their products are confiscated, however, the roaming vendors usually pour in fresh capital to continue trading on the streets. They do this simply because profits are irresistible when compared to the fruits of labor in their villages (Xuan Ha 1997). A typical visual profile of roaming vendors would be those seen in a photograph taken in 2005, when the situation of disorderly street vending was under good control (Figure 8.2). A second reason why roaming vendors evoke mixed feelings among city folks is that they tend to leave rubbish behind wherever they stop to trade. Road sweepers of the City Environment Company exert great effort and patience in cleaning after roaming vendors. I came to know the magnitude of the work only after waking very early one morning. I had decided to ride my motorcycle to Tran Xuan Soan Street to check out a daily “market” of roaming vendors from outside the city, which I had heard about. It always started outside the Hom Market building from around three o’clock in the morning until half-past seven. By the time I reached there at seven o’clock, the street was filthy and everywhere littered with unwanted wastes that vendors had left behind. I rode into the street, winding through scattered piles of rubbish; the tall ones needing frequent detours, and little asphalt was left uncovered. When I returned to the street at eight o’clock, after breakfast, the street was clean again because of efficient work by road sweepers. A similar situation occurred every day on Hang Khoai Street outside the Dong Xuan market, in the late afternoon and early evening, and outside the Mo market Bach Mai in the pre-dawn hours. The views of the ward policemen Ward policemen were the main law enforcers, and they did not like enforcing the 36/CP. They faced pressure from four sides: superior officials, the media, the residents and the roaming vendors. The pressures generally are of two types: pressures of performance and accusations of corruption, and pressures of “moral economy” arising from sympathy for
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 165
The pavement as civic space 165
Figure 8.2 Vendors outside the Opthamology Hospital, Ba Trieu Street, Hanoi, Vietnam.
roaming vendors (Xuan Ha 1997). The first type of pressure makes the policemen work hard on a daily, endless task. The second type of pressure makes them shy about performing their duties. Whether they did well or neglected the situation, they are abused by any one of the four sides. The
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 166
166 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia more the policemen carried out their duty, the more they felt helpless because the problems recurred every day, with the same people and at the same spots. It was troublesome dealing with the roaming vendors when they were arrested because the traders usually cried and begged, attracted attention to the situation and even abused policemen if they felt they had been treated unfairly (Mai Hoa 1996). The roaming vendors felt that way because they could not accept why local residents were allowed to trade on the pavement while they were not allowed to do the same, especially when local residents who were roaming vendors were also offending the 36/CP but were never dealt with. They were even of the opinion that the injustice arose out of their inability to pay off officials (Xuan Ha 1997). The policemen were aware of the guerrilla tactics of the roaming vendors but there was nothing more they could do except to make their presence felt, and to hope that the city government resolved the problems of infrastructure and livelihood as soon as possible.
The pendulum swings the other way? Post-36/CP and the 22nd Southeast Asian Games Eight years of implementation of the 36/CP after 1995 has seen an equilibrium achieved, more or less, between state and society in their contest over pavement space. On the one hand, in wards (which has been the majority) where conditions allow, ward policemen and pavement order teams have been easy-going in their checks and demands to reclaim the pavement, a public space, from unauthorized use by the individuals. On the other hard, in a small number of wards and streets whose conditions do not allow, such as those in the middle of the city and close to important landmarks, policemen have been stricter. Campaigns usually produced good results at the beginning but petered out as the pressure from levels of authority eased off. A lengthy period of deterioration would then create pressure on the government to recommence stiff operations or a new campaign. The situation evolved, however, with the impending arrival of the 22nd Southeast Asian (SEA) Games. To be held in Hanoi, the Games’ impact on pavement life offered a slightly different perspective on state-society relations – that of a state capable of putting down its foot where it mattered. The government wanted to stamp its authority on street order to impress the thousands of foreigners who would stay in Hanoi for the Games for weeks. These efforts culminated in the promulgation of Decree 15/2003 on 19 February 2003, which was comprehensive in its treatment of traffic order and pavement order offenses. It was in fact a renewal of the 36/CP, except that fines were stiffer. In the months leading up to the Games and during the Games, many ward authorities in Hanoi began to clear the pavement. They banned parking of motorcycles along main roads and absolutely disallowed shops from displaying goods or using pavement space for their business. The
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 167
The pavement as civic space 167 strictest places were along Hue Street, an important southern entry into the city and the 36 Streets area. With the Decree 15/2003, patrols were much more regular, as I had witnessed in a few wards, and infringing roaming vendors and motorcyclists were hauled up and had their goods or vehicles retained. Further, the traffic police made traffic flow smoother by turning many two-way streets into one-way streets, and more policemen and ward personnel stood on road corners to enforce laws on traffic users and pavement activities. Yet, this strong state would also tolerate infringements at the margins, especially when the situation suits its objectives. It was still impossible to ban all roaming vendors in all areas, as marketing is an important need where there is a widespread lack of proper markets. The further one went out from the center and busy streets, the more lenient the wards were. During the SEA Games, revelers jubilant over Vietnam’s victories on the soccer field thronged the roads till late and needed to fill up stomachs before going home. Thus, during the SEA Games, supper shops were allowed to open till very late after midnight. During the celebrations, people got out of their homes and onto motorcycles to fill roads, but no policemen bothered about how vehicles were illegally parked on pavements, or whether drinks and noodle stalls should close by 11pm. Widespread traffic infringements were disregarded. It remains to be seen whether the efforts to maintain a strict regime on the pavement of major streets are sustainable in the long run, and hence, whether the state would be able to maintain a strong hand for long. For one, such intensive efforts come at a huge cost not just the employment of extra manpower, but also the more intensive use of manpower. This extra effort yields no significant extra income for law enforcers, especially if people know that the state is determined and would do their best to obey the law. Second, measures such as prohibition of parking along a number of major roads and streets where major shops are located would sooner or later meet with discontent and lobbying from shop owners. After all, they pay their wards a fee every month (collected in the name of keeping pavement orderly and clean) to use parts of the pavement and strict prohibition of such use would discourage shop owners from paying and would hurt ward officials ultimately.
Conclusion: some thoughts about civic space and civil society This analysis of Hanoi’s street culture illustrates several important features of civic space and civil society. One of the first issues is the way in which spontaneous markets can arise anywhere and anytime in Hanoi. If spaces for markets are also civic spaces (meaning spaces for the people), then markets traditionally are also the spaces where all kinds of people meet to buy, sell, eat, drink and sit down
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 168
168 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 8.3 Bia hoi (draught beer) shop, Yen Phu Street/Thanh Nien Street corner, Hanoi, Vietnam.
to discuss things. It is where society meets regularly for all sorts of purposes. Markets are, of course, not the only contemporary civic spaces, but one of the earliest forms that began when people needed to specialize and trade. Roaming vendors in Hanoi, when they are able to meet in large numbers, render a high degree of mobility to markets as civic space. If we accept the above premises, then we can think of civic space not as fixed physical places. Instead, we can think of civic space as being made out of existing physical space by people who need to do so, wherever and whenever. In a country with conditions such as strict political and social control, intolerance of political opposition and libertarianism, which is reflected in the planning for the use of public space, this agility seems important for civil society to develop. This agility is impossible for the state to prevent and for civic space supporters to plan. Markets alone are not civil society but the markets as civic space are available to civil society groups when they need to meet under cover from a prying state that is unfriendly to civil society. In a situation whereby people meet at public spaces such as the pavement to enjoy goods and services of the private sector as well as to discuss civic issues, market spaces can therefore double-up as civic spaces. The scene in Figure 8.3 is a good example.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 169
The pavement as civic space 169 Furthermore, what is interesting in Hanoi’s case is market space as civic space has been forced on the state, who basically could not provide alternatives, but is also very unwilling to clamp down hard on the “bursting out” (to use a Vietnamese term) of pavement activities, for fear of the consequences, one of which is massive social unrest. Where it suits the state, however, it has taken the initiative to promote primitive civil society groups and allowed them to earmark some space as their own which others may not infringe. The self-regulation groups are a case in point. Deciding to establish such groups is a result of the willingness to experiment on the part of the state, and to concede some space not under direct control of the state. The objective is for greater governance effectiveness. This willingness to experiment holds out hope for the development of civil society, if civil society can be perceived as helping rather than hurting the regime. However, it is also noted that the decision to favor selfmanagement came fairly late in the long history of the state-society contest on the pavement. This shows that a state used to wielding control will need time to relax its hold. Another issue is how civil society can arise from the granting of civic space. While civil society is still fairly limited in size and scope of development, it has nevertheless grown and is much freer to operate now, than during the late 1980s. This growth of civil society has been a result of the social welfare sector’s need for non-state actors and non-state funding that has arisen from the incompetence of the state. Growth of civil society in other arenas has been less or virtually absent, with some groups facing enormous difficulties in operations and others clamped down by the state. This development seems to be in opposition to the constant emphasis among urban planners and urban authorities for the need to have more civic space (open, healthy places) where people can gather and spend recreation time. That the voice is coming from within the state is surprising, and it reinforces the notion that disaggregation of the state in communist societies is a useful tool of analysis (Migdal 1994: 15). It allows us not to be captured by a state-society dichotomy, but it certainly does not clash with the reality that state planners are in some ways responsible for the creation of civic space. In the same way, when we look at how the state may be persuaded by civil society groups to allocate more civic space, a disaggregation of the state seems to be a good approach. In the case of the pavement of Hanoi, state disaggregation is an invaluable tool of understanding as one faces great unevenness in regime implementation, in time and in space. In this unevenness, the role of the ward as the local authority is important as it mediates between conflicting demands of state and society. In this same way, in any country with a similar context, civic space may be promoted through appealing to lower levels of state authority, based on knowledge of local conditions and local needs that the local authority can rely on to negotiate with the central authority in favor of more civic space.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 170
170 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Notes 1 Grateful acknowledgement is given to the Toda Foundation for helping to fund this research and for organizing and funding the Second Grand Conference in Vancouver. 2 Ha Noi Moi means “New Hanoi.” It is published by the party branch in Hanoi. 3 Tran Que Thuong was a policeman working in the Hoan Kiem District while Vu Dinh Hoanh was the Deputy Chief of Police of Hanoi City. 4 At the time this data was collected, the exchange rate was 1 USD to 11,000 VND.
References Bich Huu and Bich Huong (1997) Long dong . . . hang rong [Hard times fall on street vending]. Lao Dong Ha Noi, 17 January pp. 1, 10. Bui Ba Manh (1991) Doi tu quan giao thong nhan dan [The traffic self-management teams of the people]. Ha Noi Moi, 7 April, p. 2. Bui Danh Luu (1995) “Ket qua buoc dau thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP va Chi Thi 317/TTg trong ca nuoc” [Initial achievements of the nation-wide implementation of the 36/CP ordinance and the 317-TTg Instruction] Quan ly Nha nuoc, 13(10): 9–12, 20. Chi Thanh (1988) “Tu do, dan chu va phap luat, ky cuong” [Freedom, democracy, and law, discipline] Ha Noi Moi, 25 October. D.T. Phuong (1997) Lecture on Development of Hanoi delivered at Hanoi’s Institute of Sociology, 5 May. Dinh Huong Son (1990) “Ly va tinh trong viec chap hanh phap luat, bao ve trat tu va ky cuong xa hoi” [Reason and sentiments in carrying out the law, in protecting social order and discipline] Ha Noi Moi, p. 2, 12 February. Do Ngoc Duong (1995) “Can co nhung bien phap cu the va phu hop thuc te de bao dam thuc hien nghi dinh 36/CP” [Need for specific measures closer to reality to ensure that 36/CP is implemented] Ha Noi Moi, 30 October, p. 2. Ha Noi Moi (1990) “Ve quan ly duong, he pho” [On management of roads, pavement] 2 July, p. 3. Ha Noi Moi (1991) “Tang cuong quan ly he, duong pho o thu do” [Strengthen management of pavement and streets of the capital] 23 December, pp. 1, 3. Ha Noi Moi (1995a) “Thanh pho cho dung he o 57 tuyen pho de sap xep cac ho kinh doanh” [City allows traders to use pavement on 57 roads] 26 October, pp. 1, 4. Ha Noi Moi (1995b) “Thu tuong Chinh phu hop voi cac nganh, doan the ban bien phap trien khai Nghi Dinh 36/CP va Chi Thi 317/TTg ve bao dam trat tu an toan giao thong duong bo va trat tu an toan giao thong do thi” [PM discussed with branches and organizations on measures to implement 36/CP and Directive 317/TTg on traffic order and safety on the roads and in the cities] 16 June, pp. 1, 4. Higgs P. (1996) “The Footpath Economy and Beyond: Factors affecting Social and Economic Change in a District of Hanoi”, paper presented at the Asian Studies Association of Australia Annual Conference in Melbourne. Huong Thuy (1995) “Cac dai ly xo so se ban ve o dau?” [Where would the agents of lottery sell their tickets?] Ha Noi Moi, 10 July, p. 3.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 171
The pavement as civic space 171 K.D. (1995) “Tich cuc chuan bi cho ngay dau tien thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP cua Chinh phu” [Enthusiastic preparations for the first day of implementation of 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 29 July, pp. 1, 4. Kim Dung (1988) “Qua mot so chot trat tu giao thong thuoc quan Hai Ba Trung” [At a few traffic order hotspots in Hai Ba Trung District] Ha Noi Moi, 30 October, p. 1. Kim Dung (1992) “ ‘57’ lam duoc, phai giu duoc” [Achievements of 57 must be maintained Ha Noi Moi, 9 March, p. 2. Kim Dung (1995) “Nhom lien gia tu quan o cum dan cu so 2 phuong Ngo Thi Nham” [“Self-managed family groups” in Resident Cluster no. 2 of Ngo Thi Nham Ward] Ha Noi Moi, 22 September, p. 2. Kim Lien (1994) “Tuyen truyen nhieu nhung trat tu an toan giao thong van kem” [Much mass education but traffic order and safety still far from ideal] Ha Noi Moi, 11 May, p. 2. Koh, David (2000) “Wards and State-Society Relations in the Socialist Republic of Vietnam”, PhD Dissertation, Department of Political and Social Change, The Australian National University. Le Phuong Hien (1992) “Doi tu quan giao thong – trat tu phuong Cat Linh” [The traffic and order self-management team of the Cat Linh Ward] Ha Noi Moi, 8 January, p. 2. Ly Kien Quoc (1975) “Ba muoi nam cai tao va xay dung kinh te, phat trien van hoa cua nuoc Viet-Nam Dan chu Cong hoa (1945–1975)” [30 years of reform and building of the economy, developing the culture of the Democratic Republic of Viet-Nam (1945–1975)] Hoc Tap (8). Mai Hoa (1996) “Hang rong: chuyen nho ma khong nho” [Hawkers: apparently small but actually big matter] An Ninh Thu Do, 13 December, p. 3. Manh Hung (1995) “Lien ket thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP” [ Joint implementation of 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 28 July, p. 1. Migdal, Joel S. (1994) “The state in society: an approach to struggles for domination”, in J.S. Migdal, A. Kohli and V. Shue (eds.) State power and social forces: Domination and Transformation in the Third World, Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, p. 15. Minh Duc (1997) “Trat tu an toan giao thong” [Traffic order and safety] Nhan Dan, 13 January, p. 2. Nguyen Chi Tinh (1991) “Tam cho su dung via he mot so duong pho de quan ly nguoi buon ban” [Allowing temporary use of pavement along a few roads in order to manage traders] Ha Noi Moi, 30 January, pp. 1, 4. Nguyen Quang Hoa (1991) “Via he, duong . . .” [Pavement, Roads . . . ] Ha Noi Moi, 16 August, p. 3. Nguyen Quang Hoa (1995) “Luc cuc ‘36’ ” [Internal conflicts of “36”] Ha Noi Moi, 18 October, pp. 1, 3. Nguyen Trieu (1988) “Tren mot truc duong trong diem” [Along the axis of a few busy streets] Ha Noi Moi, 9 November, pp. 2, 4. Nguyen Truong Giang (1995) “Quan Thanh, 2 thang thuc hien ND36/CP” [Two months of 36/CP at Quan Thanh Ward] Ha Noi Moi, 9 October, p. 2. Nguyen Van Xay (1992) “Rat can ‘ba kiem tra’ trong thuc hien chi thi 57” [Real need for “three checks” in implementing Directive 57] Ha Noi Moi, 5 March, p. 1.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 172
172 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Nguyen Xuan (1982) “Pho . . . cho!” [Street . . . Market!] Ha Noi Moi, 11 June, p. 1. Nguyen Xuan Yem (1995) “Vi pham hanh chinh va cong tac giao duc y thuc, loi song theo phap luat cho cong dan” [Administrative offenses and work on education for citizens to cultivate consciousness and way of life that respects the law] in Dao Tri Uc (ed.) Xay dung y thuc va loi song theo phap luat [Build consciousness and way of life that respects the law] (Ha Noi: De tai Khoa hoc xa hoi Cap Nha nuoc KX-07-17, 1995) pp. 213–24. Nhom Phong Vien Ha Noi Moi (1995) “Ngay khoi dau” [The first day] Ha Noi Moi, 2 August, pp. 1, 3. P.Q. (1996a) “Hoan Kiem nhan dien hinh co quan xi nghiep tu quan thuc hien ND 36/CP” [Hoan Kiem District uses self-management model for state agencies and enterprises in implementing 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 10 August, p. 1. P.Q. (1996b) “Lien ket truong – phuong mot mo hinh can duoc nhan rong” [School – Ward alliance – a model that needs to be spread widely] Ha Noi Moi, 15 November, p. 2. P.V. (1986) “Phuong Hang Bai xay dung nep tu quan duong pho, lam chu so nha” [Hang Bo Ward builds self-managed streets and houses] Ha Noi Moi, 12 March, p. 2. P.V. (1995) “So ket mot thang thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP cua Chinh phu” [Preliminary review of the first month of implementation of the government’s 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 14 September, p. 1. P.V. (1996) “CA phuong O Cho Dua lam tot vai tro nong cot thuc hien ND 36/CP” [O Cho Dua Ward police performs its pillar role well when implementing 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 2 October, p. 2. P.V. and Quang Nghia (1983) “Hon 5.000 luot thanh nien, thieu nien va cac luc luong an ninh tham gia tuyen truyen giao duc nep song moi, lao dong xay dung thu do va kiem tra trat tu tri an o noi cong cong” [More than 5,000 youths, children and security forces participate in mass education on the new way of life, labor to build the capital, and checks on order and security in public places] Ha Noi Moi, 20 April, p. 1. Phan Thi Boi Hoan (1992) “Phuong Kim Lien voi chi thi 57” [Kim Lien Ward and Directive 57] Ha Noi Moi, 13 January, p. 2. Phan Tuong (1993) “Sau hai nam lap lai trat tu he, duong pho o quan Hai Ba Trung” [After two years of restoring order on the pavement and roads in Hai Ba Trung District] Ha Noi Moi, 13 October, p. 2. So Van hoa Thong tin and Thanh pho Ha Noi (1984) “Thu Do Ha Noi: 30 nam xay dung va bao ve che do Xa hoi Chu nghia” [Hanoi the capital: 30 years of building and protecting the Socialist system] (Hanoi) p. 91. Thach Lam (1943) “Ha Noi bam sau pho Phuong” [Thirty-Six Streets of Hanoi] (Saigon: Doi Nay). Thanh Chi (1991) “Trat tu do thi, mot viec cap bach” [Urban order – an urgent matter] Ha Noi Moi, 18 March, p. 2. Thanh Chi (1995) “Trat tu giao thong do thi o Ha Noi truoc va sau ND 36/CP” [Urban traffic order in Hanoi before and after 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 16 October, p. 2. Thanh Hung (1992) “Trat tu, ky cuong do thi lai bi buong long” [Urban order and discipline are loose again] Ha Noi Moi, 4 September, p. 2.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 173
The pavement as civic space 173 Thanh Mai (1992a) “Xung quanh viec thuc hien chi thi 57” [About implementation of Directive 57] Ha Noi Moi, 6 January, p. 2. Thanh Mai (1992b) “Thuc hien chi thi 57 o mot con duong” [Implementing Directive 57 on one road] Ha Noi Moi, 8 January, p. 3. Thanh Thuy (1994) “Thu xem tham nhung cap phuong den dau!” [Let’s see how deep corruption is at the ward level!] Ha Noi Moi, 1 July, p. 2. Thu Huong (1995) “Cac cap, nganh, doan the tich cuc trien khai thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP” [All levels, branches, and organizations enthusiastically prepare to implement 36/CP] Ha Noi Moi, 31 July, pp. 1, 4. Thuy Hang (1993) “Trat tu do thi o phuong Trang Tien” [Urban order at the Trang Tien Ward] Ha Noi Moi, 26 February, p. 2. Tien Chinh (1996) “Khong nen hoi: ‘Ton tai hay khong ton tai?’ ” [We should not ask “Should it or should it not exist?”] An Ninh Thu Do, 9 December, pp. 1, 3. Tien Phu and Phan Tuong (1993) “Qua 2 nam lap lai trat tu he, duong pho” [After 2 years of restoring order on pavement and roads] Ha Noi Moi, 29 October, p. 2. To Huu (1980) “May quan diem co ban ve may van de lon trong cong tac phan phoi luu thong” [A few basic points and a few big problems in the distribution and circulation of goods] TCCS, 8: 10–20. Ton Xuan Thich (1988) “Phuong Trang Tien giu gin trat tu cong cong” [Trang Tien Ward keeps public order] Ha Noi Moi, 28 October, p. 2. Tran Dung and Vu Long (1983) “Tu phuong Hang Bong . . . den phuong Phan Chu Trinh” [From Hang Bong Ward . . . to Phan Chu Trinh Ward] Ha Noi Moi, 19 April, pp. 2, 4. Tran Hung (1997) Hanoi Architecture University Presentation on 8 May at the Institute of Sociology, Hanoi. Tran Huy Lieu et al. (eds.) (1960) Lich su thu do Ha Noi [History of Hanoi the Capital] Hanoi: Su Hoc. Tran Que Thuong (1992a) “Phuong Hang Dao thuc hien co hieu qua chi thi 57 cua UBND Thanh pho” [Hang Dao Ward implements effectively Directive 57 of the City People’s Committee] Ha Noi Moi, 17 January, p. 2. Tran Que Thuong (1992b) “Nhin lai hai thang thuc hien chi thi 57 o Quan Hoan Kiem” [Review of two months of implementation of Directive 57 in Hoan Kiem District] Ha Noi Moi, 28 February, p. 2. Tran Thanh Tuong (1998) “Street vendors and taxes killing off markets” Vietnam Investment Review 8/6/1998, carried by Reuters, 8 June. Tuan Anh (1997) “Noi niem nhung nguoi lam kinh te via he” [The feelings of those working in the pavement economy] Lao Dong Ha Noi, 10 January, pp. 1, 7. Tuong Anh (1992) “Tong kiem tra, duy tri ket qua thuc hien chi thi 57/UB ve giu gin trat tu he, duong” [General inspection to maintain results of Directive 57/UB on maintaining order on pavement, roads] Ha Noi Moi, 16 September, pp. 1, 4. Uy ban Nhan dan Thanh pho Ha Noi (1988) “Quy dinh ve viec phat vi canh doi voi nhung vi pham Trat tu an toan giao thong trong thanh pho Ha Noi” [Regulations on penalties for common nuisance offenses against traffic order and safety in Hanoi] Ha Noi Moi, 8 October, p. 3. Vinh Yen (1995) “Can giu cho he thong, duong thoang o moi noi, moi luc” [Every pavement and road needs to be clear at all times] Ha Noi Moi, 31 July, p. 2. Vu Dinh Hoanh (1993) “Sau gan 20 thang thuc hien chi thi 57” [After close to 20 months of implementation of Directive 57] Ha Noi Moi, 9 July, p. 2.
9780415397896_4_008.qxd 07/09/2007 08:59 Page 174
174 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Vu Dinh Hoanh (1995) “Lam gi de thuc hien Nghi Dinh 36/CP cua Chinh phu co hieu qua cao?” [What is to be done to ensure implementation of 36/CP of the government is highly effective?] Ha Noi Moi, 1 August, pp. 1, 4. Xuan Ha (1997) “Giai quyet nan hang rong qua that khong de!” [Really not easy to solve the hang rong problem!] Lao Dong Ha Noi, 10 January, p. 2.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 175
9
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai Hanlong Lu
Introduction: the challenge of community organizations in China It is common knowledge that China has been undergoing rapid changes since the beginning of its economic reforms in the 1980s. These changes are mostly the result of the close link between the economic system and the social organization. The long period of a centralized planned economic system has caused China to exhibit many characteristics of a redistribution society. In contrast to the society with a market economy, the redistribution society dismisses the basic market principles and ignores the role of the market in the process of preliminary distribution of social resources. Instead, in an effort to achieve a justified social goal, this sort of society emphasizes the role of the state in controlling all social production resources, and advocates highly centralized production and distribution procedures. Since China completed its socialist reform in 1956, the Chinese economic system has been developed as the planned economic model, with the result that the state directly controls the country’s economic activities and dynamics. The social structure has also been changed along with the economic system. As a result, governments at all levels directly run all kinds of industries, practically control all socio-economic resources, and undertake all social responsibilities. The power of the government has increasingly penetrated into society. The overwhelming presence of state power has become one of the most important features of the economic redistribution system in China. Within this system, there has been little or no space for the development of civil society. At a basic level, the aim of Chinese economic reform is to “separate government and enterprise,” which means that the enterprise should become an independent entity in the market. Likewise, the goal of the grassroots social system reform is to make community an independent entity in the society and an alternative option of the work-units (danwei). The core of this reform is to “separate government and community.” This sort of reform is to re-adjust the relationship between the state and society, rather than simply redistribute intra-governmental powers. In other words, it requires the government to give away part of its powers to the society.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 176
176 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia This paper provides an overview of Chinese community development in recent years by analyzing the two facets of this social reform. At the structural or organizational level, the paper examines the case of Shanghai and shows how the Chinese Communist Party (CCP) and government have managed to reinsert its presence in community affairs after the local work-unit has become increasingly weakened as a result of these reforms. The second part involves a discussion of the community’s response to such institutional changes. Several important questions will be addressed in this paper. In the past, the work-unit was a fundamental mode of socio-economic organization of daily life, since this organization not only provided work opportunities but was also responsible for the workers’ social needs such as housing, education and security. Has the enlargement of the market meant that local residents are more inclined to take care of their own needs on their own? Are they less inclined to join government-initiated committees to take care of their social needs? Or are local residents likely to form their own associations to solve their own problems? Is there evidence of such organizations alongside state-sponsored ones?
Changing community organizations in China During the period of planned economy, the government serves people’s needs through two types of organizations. The first is the state-controlled enterprise system or work-unit administrative system, while the second part is the local government controlled residence committee ( jiedao-juweihui). Both the work-unit and the residence committee are within the control system of the Party-state (dangzheng). Before China’s 1978 reform, there were almost no independent social associations in the country except for state-controlled enterprises and local government controlled residence committees. In other words, China has a big state and a small society, where state power largely overwhelms the power from the grassroots level society. The CCP and the government directly enjoyed state power.1 In the eyes of those Party-state administrators, the whole society is their subordinate and is governed by them. The work-unit and the resident committee represent the presence of the state in the lives of the people. The work-unit organizes the production, while the resident committee supports the welfare needs of the community. In terms of hierarchy, three kinds of organizations are responsible for administration at the local level. The first type is the Party-state institution which exists at four levels: from the national level to the township/ sub-district level (see Figure 9.1). Major cities like Shanghai are at the provincial level, and they have two levels of elected governments: one is the municipal government and the other is the district government. For example, Shanghai currently has 19 district governments. Since the city is very large, the population of each district ranges unequally from 500 to 1,500 thousand. Each district government has several office branches in its
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 177
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 177
National Government CGOE Provincial/Municipality Government PMGOE District/County Government DCGOE Town Government
Street Office
TOE
Workers
Family
Unemployed, Disabled, etc.
Note: CGOE (Central Government Owned Enterprises) PMGOE (Provincial or Municipality Owned Enterprises) DCGOE (District or County Government Owned Enterprises) TOE (Town Owned Enterprises)
Figure 9.1 Hierarchical governmental management model during planned economy.
sub-districts. We call them sub-district committee ( jiedao, the Chinese term of Jiedao means “street”). The population of the sub-district committee ranges from 50 to 150 thousand residents. According to the research conducted in Shanghai, the CCP sub-district committee has established ten administrative offices, organizational departments and propaganda departments in the community to undertake more than 140 assignments. At the community level, not only the government administrative sectors have established their offices, but other agencies such as industrial and commercial departments, housing management department, police and hospitals have also set up their executive offices. Enterprises constitute the second kind of organizations in Chinese local society. They are mainly work-units. These work-units belong to various levels of government organizations, and are not necessarily within the jurisdiction of the aforementioned local Party-state institutions. The enterprises that are within the jurisdiction of the local Party-state organizations are neighborhood factories, welfare enterprises, and small-scale private enterprises. These enterprises stand at the bottom of social hierarchy and have very limited resources.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 178
178 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia The third kind of Chinese local society organization is the community mass organization. The residence committee is one of those mass organizations that are authorized by the Chinese constitution. According to law, every 100–700 households in the city should belong to a unit of the residence committee. However, most residence committees include more than 1,000 households, especially in big cities. The residence committee office is the public space for the residents. Also, there are some legitimate mass associations, such as the Organization for the Workers, the Organization for the Youth and Women, the Committee for the Elders, and the Homeowner Association. There also exist many informal mass organizations, such as friendship associations and resident interest groups. Under the planned economic system, the community mass organizations usually obtain their funding and human resources from the community’s Party-state system, and work under the leadership of this Party-state system. In Shanghai, the community Party-state system is defined as the government office and the CCP committee for the sub-district. The local Party-state institutions are at the heart of this three-tier local organizational system. Their relationship with the grassroots-level branches of other Party-state agencies (as mentioned in the first level of the hierarchy) forms the so-called “tiaokuai ” relationship (literally, the relationship between stripes and blocks). On the other hand, their relationship with the enterprises (as mentioned in the second kind of the hierarchy) is a kind of administrative relationship, where the enterprises have higher administrative rankings than the local Party-state institutions. Only the third kind – the community mass organizations – are under the leadership of the local Party-state institutions. Therefore, this hierarchy structure indicates that the community society is rather powerless and is simply derivative of the local Party-state institutions and is subordinated to the Party-state leadership. The features of this centralized planned redistribution social system bear many similarities to the way of management in the army. The operation of the Chinese redistribution economy depends on the policy orders from the national leaders to assign tasks and make arrangements (like the military orders from the top generals), rather than relying on free market signals. The basic necessities of life are supplied on the basis of fixed quota, which is the same as the wartime ration system when production is interrupted by war. In short, people’s daily lives are organized in a way as if they were under the threat of war. More importantly, the social organizational system in China also exhibits militarized features. The People’s Commune System carried out in rural areas since 1958 tried to rearrange China’s rural areas into a three-level militarized structure of “commune – production team – small production team.” And the urban enterprises have been organized into the highly structuralized “work-unit system.” Both of these organizational modes are multifunctional in the sense that they have to undertake not only economic but also social functions. Moreover, both of them have the characteristics
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 179
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 179 of military organizations in the sense that they are not only production units, but also production “rear” in that the provision of life security and other welfare services is included (Bian 1994). To put it aptly, the organizational method of both the People’s Commune System and the Party-state system is a copy of the military organization mode. The basic features of a wartime system forbid the existence of a private sphere, and sacrifice individual needs to the collective interests within the system (Lu 2000). Thus, before the 1978 reforms, the state and the Party totally controlled Chinese economic resources. Chinese social organization showed wartime characteristics. Almost everywhere, the public sphere was occupied by the government and could not be used for public gatherings. China’s economic reform has not only changed its socialist economy but also transformed the wartime social organizational system that was associated with it. Particularly, with China’s entry of WTO, Chinese economy has increasingly integrated into the world market. The reform has changed the Chinese economic system into a mixed situation in which new economic forms coexist with the state-owned form. Thus, China’s development over the past two decades is not simply the result of economic reforms, but significantly, it involves the modernization of the whole society. Notably, the process of marketization has led to reform of the housing system. Presently, all towns and cities in China have stopped the work-unit housing benefits distribution of housing, and the original state-owned houses have been sold to residents at discounted rates. For instance, about 70 percent of state-owned houses in Shanghai have been sold to their original residents and these people have become homeowners. With economic reforms, more than 50 percent of people in Shanghai are house owners. A recent urbanization and community research study conducted by the Shanghai Academy of Social Sciences indicates that housing property has a significant impact on people’s degree of satisfaction about their living conditions (see Table 9.1). As shown in Table 9.1, the citizens who have bought their houses with discounts during the housing reform are those who are most satisfied with their living conditions. They also give the highest scores to their community environment. These relationships are statistically significant. As more and more residents become house owners, they are banding together to form homeowner’s associations to represent and protect their interests. The house owners have become more and more concerned about their community because the community environment has a direct impact on the commercial value of their homes. According to the regulations of housing reforms, in residential areas where more than 60 percent of public housing has been privatized, residents are required to establish a homeowner’s association. The main function of such associations is to sign contracts with property management companies and to properly use the management fee. It also helps to write regulations on issues regarding public order, public sanitation, and the use of public facilities.2 These
4.66 35 1.14 4.65 633 1.35
2.74 35 0.66 2.94 633 0.73 4.65 1008 1.30 0.35
4.78# 178 1.25
2.50# 178 0.63
2.80 1008 0.73 0.000***
4.52b 162 1.22
Community safety
2.62a 162 0.73
Satisfaction on the house
4.28 1006 1.14 0.78
4.26 631 1.18
4.37 35 1.14
4.43# 178 1.01
4.27 162 1.15
Community attainments
3.82 1008 1.44 0.002**
3.72 633 1.48
4.09 35 1.38
4.17# 178 1.34
3.78 162 1.38
Environment and sanitation
5.40 1008 1.15 0.203
5.42 633 1.21
5.16# 633 1.28 5.11 1008 1.23 0.005**
5.03 35 1.25
5.35 178 1.04
5.46# 162 1.03
Daily-life convenience
4.40 35 1.54
5.06 178 1.04
5.10 162 1.15
Location within the city
Notes * p<0.05 ** p<0.01 *** p<0.001. a Satisfaction to the house is measured with a four-score measurement scale, from “1” as “the most satisfied” to “4” as “the least satisfied”. b Evaluation to different aspects of community life are measured with a seven-score measurement scale from “the least satisfied” to “the most satisfied”. These aspects of community life include community safety, community attainment, environment and sanitation, location within the city, daily-life convenience. # The number with a symbol of “#” indicates the highest score among different property pattern groups.
Source: Data compiled from author’s survey on urbanization and community in Shanghai.
Private property through market (Mean) (Case number) (S. E.) Private property through preferential purchase (Mean) (Case number) (S. E.) “Working units”-owned property (Mean) (Case number) (S. E.) Government-owned property (Mean) (Case number) (S. E.) Overall (Mean) (Case number) (S. E.) Sig. of difference among groups
Housing property patterns
Table 9.1 Housing property pattern and citizens’ evaluation on community life
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 180
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 181
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 181 associations solve new problems faced by the whole community such as garbage disposal, neighborhood safety and education of children. The establishment of the homeowner’s association indicates that it is possible to organize around the provision of collective goods. When all the housing was owned by the state and the work-units, the absence of private property rights led to a blurring between public and private spaces. This was vividly shown by the way that people used public space. The piling of household belongings and trash around doorways, stairs and corridors was a common problem in Shanghai. This not only blocked the traffic but also polluted the whole environment. But people tended to think that since the doorways and corridors were owned by all people, why not take full advantage of these public spaces? Consequently, although people were aware that it was not sanitary and secure to put private belongings outside their apartments, no-one was willing to individually deal with the problem. This situation has totally changed after the housing privatization. Now people have a clear idea of property rights. They are well aware that they only own the space inside their apartment doors and they share the space in the corridor with their neighbors. Since it is a public space, people feel that they need to solve public problems by creating a discussion forum. The housing privatization has created a clear line between the public and the private. Some homeowners have taken the initiative to organize meetings to discuss how to address the garbage disposal problem. Therefore, privatization can be conducive to creating a sense of collective ownership. In contrast; state-ownership can encourage people to squander social resources and ignore their own rights and duties. The recognition of such problems and the participation in such associations has greatly enhanced people’s common identity and cohesion (Lu 2000). With the rise of residents’ community awareness and the increase of their living demands, various community sub-cultures have been gradually taking shape. These newly emerged associations may be considered as constituting an emerging form of public sphere in the grassroots level of Chinese society, functioning between the state and society. In China, the Party-state system has largely intervened in people’s lives, “taking care of ” its people even in terms of their everyday life needs. Such a planned system emerged without a market economy, without the commercial media, and without the protection of a rational legal system. As the current reforms in China begin to incorporate these new elements, the power of the state is shedding its old militaristic characteristics and is evolving into a more professional bureaucratic system. All these changes are echoed in the changes of the community life. The economic reform, especially the privatization and commercialization of housing property, has made the management of housing estates no longer a government responsibility but a collective responsibility to be shared by homeowners. This is one of the most important social outcomes of China’s economic reform.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 182
182 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia In the next section, the community developmental model in Shanghai is introduced to provide a case study of how community relations are being reconstructed in the era of economic reform.
Shanghai model: the involvement of party and government in managing local affairs From the mid-1980s onwards, China’s grassroots level society has experienced a series of changes associated with urban economic reform. First of all, the independence of economic enterprises is central to the economic reform. The reform has focused on enhancing the economic function of state enterprises and reducing their social and welfare responsibilities. Alongside these reformed state enterprises are non-state-owned economic forms, such as foreign investment enterprises and local private companies. Unlike the state-owned enterprises, these new economic forms usually do not provide their employees with a range of benefits such as housing. The function of providing for such needs is no longer the responsibility of enterprises, but of the workers themselves and to some extent of the community. Thus with economic reform, housing, employment, and social security provision have become new social issues. Second, in order to cope with the problem of the aging urban population, providing social services for the elders has become an increasingly important task for the local community. As the life quality in Shanghai improves, Shanghai citizens increasingly demand a better quality of community environment with high standards of service. In response to these demands, the Party and the government have made great efforts to improve the community environment, entertainment service, and education, thereby largely enhancing the living conditions of the residents. The local Party-state system has played a critical role in managing these new tasks. In fact, the Party and the government use the same administrative methods to govern the community as they used on the work-units – to meet the demands of the residents through their sub-district office and their residence committee. However, the sub-district office and the residence committee have a relatively low position in the social hierarchy and have very limited resources, making it extremely difficult for them to undertake the increasingly heavy tasks. For example, on average, a typical sub-district office in Shanghai has a jurisdiction area of over 3.08 square kilometers. Some of the largest jurisdiction areas can be as large as 15 square kilometers, with the sub-district office managing some 147,000 households, while the smallest jurisdiction area is only 0.44 square kilometers covering 7,300 households. Recent research shows that the capital investments from the sub-district office for different community projects are highly unbalanced. This in part varies with the communities’ uneven economic conditions. But more importantly, it depends on the degree of willingness and initiative of certain sub-district leaders.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 183
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 183 With the changes of the grassroots level society, the local Party-state institutions are faced with serious challenges. Under the old system, they have low administrative positions, few resources, and are not closely connected to residents. More often, the staff in local Party-state institutions lack professionalism. Most job positions are directly appointed by the residence committee leaders. Most staff are retired workers who are old, unskilled and poorly educated. In order to improve the efficiency of community service, it is extremely important to get social administration to focus on the needs of the community. The success of organizational transformation relies on several factors. In 1996, the CCP Shanghai Committee and the Shanghai Municipal Government jointly launched the “Urban and District Work Meeting.” Both the CCP Shanghai Chief and the mayor attended the meeting, which seemed to be unusual for a routine work meeting. The aim of this meeting was to discuss how to construct an “urban people’s commune” in Shanghai. It reflected a historical turning point for Shanghai’s Party-state work because it indicated the concerted effort by the state and the Party to address local affairs. After the “Urban and District Work Meeting,” the CCP Shanghai Committee and the Shanghai Municipal Government jointly issued a paper Advice on How to Strengthen the Sub-district Construction, the Residence Committee and the Community Governance. This was the first time since 1949 that the CCP Shanghai Committee and the Shanghai Municipal Government issued a policy paper specifically trying to define the work of the sub-district and the residence committee. The paper proposes that Shanghai should establish a new system of “two-level governments, three-level governance,” instead of the old system of “two-level governments, two-level governance.” It explicitly points out that the CCP sub-district Committee and the sub-district office should assume functions as the government, fully responsible for organizing and supervising community service, public security, the development of responsible citizenship and the sub-district economic associations in jurisdictional areas. These responsibilities will be under the leadership of both the district and the sub-district governments. This new system aims to strengthen the capacities of the sub-district Party-state and the residence committee in a number of ways. First, the Advice allows the sub-district to create two non-leader job vacancies. This means that there are two more positions in addition to the Party-state leaders, and would enhance the organizational resources of the sub-district. Second, the Advice emphasizes the important role that the residence committee would play in ensuring the proper functioning of the organizational structure. It requires that each residence committee should have three to five professional leaders and several other staff. The salary of the staff in the residence committee is equal to the average income of Shanghai citizens. Since 1996, the sub-district executive offices assigned by the district governments have established linkages to every single sub-district. Over the past few years, every single sub-district has a local police station and the
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 184
184 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Industrial and Commercial Management Department, which did not exist in the past. In principle, all sub-district functional sectors are under the dual-leadership of both the sub-district and the district governments. In order to increase the financial resources for the sub-districts, the municipal government has assigned one to two percent of the district annual income to the community, specifically in support of community development. These measures transform Shanghai’s urban governance to the “two-level governments, three-level governance” model. The notion of community work has been established among the Party-state and the local community. In the past, the notion of community was simply related to the community welfare service of the civil administration. However, today, the community has become the “dragon head” or the pillar of the development of grassroots society. In this sense, all local Party-state sectors and all community associations will have to participate in the community construction and will volunteer to be part of the driving force of the community development. With the deepening of the reforms and the development of Shanghai, the functions of the community have been increasingly strengthened and enlarged with the development of several new initiatives. First, in order to meet the new demands, all districts see community construction as part of their job to establish a new system of urban governance. The sub-districts have come to play the same governance role as the firstlevel government. All government’s functional sectors have established their executive offices at the sub-district level, including Judicial Department, Industrial and Commercial Department, Real Estate Office, and so on. Each sub-district is completely in charge of its jobs. Moreover, the sub-district office has supervisory control over the leaders in these grassroots government agencies. Second, a number of local sub-district offices have played key roles in governing social affairs in Shanghai. These new local government offices, rather than the work-units, have taken over the responsibility of administering social services. Over the past few years, nearly all local-level sectors have obtained a good understanding of the needs of the local community. Some major social services, including social security and job placement, have been implemented at the community level. Originally, this sort of work was administered by several different agencies, making the bureaucratic process very complicated. Today, only the sub-districts take full responsibility for examining and approving these tasks. For example, the Labor Service Department has been established in the sub-district, and is in charge of the unemployment registration in the community and managing a job placement service. The districts have also launched a variety of new projects to meet the needs of the citizens. They have developed technical education programs, established community schools, provided medical service, offered judicial consultation, and so on. All functional sectors of social affairs have established their offices to serve the community and have become much more transparent to outsiders.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 185
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 185 Third, citizen involvement is also taking root in Shanghai. In 1995 Shanghai worked out a long-term development plan to involve residents, with an emphasis on the community as the starting point. As a result, community construction and the responsible citizenship program have been complementary to each other. In this initiative, Shanghai selects “the best model” sub-district and community each year as model zones for the rest to emulate. This selective process of the model zone building has mobilized community resources and has created a forum for community associations to share their financial and organizational resources and to coordinate activities. All sectors have incorporated the model sub-district construction project into their working agenda in an effort to improve the quality of life for the citizens. Fourth, based on the results of housing system reform, Shanghai tries to integrate and harmonize the functions of the homeowner’s association, the real estate development company and the residence committee. The commercialization reform since 1992 has produced social organizations such as the homeowner’s association in the community.3 According to the statistics from the Real Estate Administration Bureau, by the end of 2001, more than 70 percent of communities had homeowner’s association. Once people have their own houses, they develop a strong common economic interest. They thus begin to share a common identity of their community and start to be concerned about community affairs and developments, especially when government agencies lack the ability to deliver community services in a satisfying way. The new-style civic association represents the interest of the property owners, giving them the right to take initiatives such as choosing a preferred real estate services company to serve them. Nevertheless, the constitutionally authorized residence committee represents the interests of all residents in the districts (including house owners and renters). Finally, Shanghai not only emphasizes the crucial role of the Party organizations in promoting community development, it also encourages other associations to actively participate in community construction. The CCP Shanghai Committee attaches great importance to Party involvement at the community level and views Party participation as a practical goal of enforcing political power in the grassroots society. Through this system, the CCP has worked to represent itself in the sub-districts, government agencies and the residence committees, effectively making its presence felt in the community. Within these organizations, the CCP explores the effective forms for which the Party members of different organizational positions can participate in community development. In the meantime, the Party-led associations begin to work for the community. For instance, in Zhabei District, the CCP District Committee has proposed a policy of “Eight Entries” – suggesting ways in which values and ideas should enter into the community, selecting staff, evaluating leaders, and supervising activities. Through these efforts at the organizational level, Zhabei District did a good
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 186
186 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia job in enlarging the influence of the Party and in enhancing the community ability to strengthen the Party’s political power at the grassroots level. In sum, the key to Shanghai’s grassroots community construction is the Party-state construction. The main contribution of Shanghai’s reform is “two-level governments, three-level-governance,” that is, to move and deregulate the Party-state power to sub-district offices. Through the joint efforts from the third level Party-state system such as the sub-district offices and grassroots work-units of the Party-state functional sectors, the districts can be better governed and the life of the residents can be further improved. In addition, Shanghai has also created the idea of “four-level-network, five-level-floor-group.” The plan is to use the residence committee as the fourth level network, and all assignments can be implemented at the fifth level – each floor in a residential building. The goal of this line of thinking is to promote the Party-state administration. The premise is that the local Party-state should have the ability and financial resources to govern local affairs and to improve the well-being of the community residents. The current situation in Shanghai meets these two requirements. Over the past few years, the Shanghai Municipal Government has made great profit in managing the real estate of the city. The reforms of power distribution and power deregulation have also accumulated ample financial resources for the Party-state organizations, and in turn have improved the efficiency of these organizations. However, the mechanism of the Shanghai model is mainly driven by administrative changes. The problems of inefficiency and unsustainable development remain because the administrative mechanism is not very cost-efficient. Many projects of community development are conducted by the government, the costs of which are enormous. In order to establish a “model community” in Shanghai, the sub-district will have to expend more than 10 million RMB.4 And it will cost the sub-district more money each year to maintain such an honorable title.5 A model community has to meet numerous standards; one of those standards is to have certain public service facilities. The facilities include the office building of the residence committee, the social service center, the library, and the activity center for the elders. To construct these service facilities, the local government has to invest a significant sum of money. However, because the practice is for lower level authorities to obey the orders from the higher level, higher level governments usually simply make orders, while the sub-district government has to be solely responsible for the construction fees. Some community projects may be launched beyond their financial ability and the actual needs of the community. Some projects are launched only for the purpose of showing off, without taking into account the uneven capabilities and needs of different communities. In some cases, the projects were initially carried out for the purpose of bringing convenience for the residents, but the result turned out to be counterproductive. Even worse, the Party-state administration in China is still largely influenced by the will of the leaders, rather than
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 187
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 187 by law and regulation. Therefore, it is difficult to guarantee sustainable development when local construction is largely constrained by the personal will of some individual leaders.
Civic spaces and the emerging civil society Under the planned economy, the overwhelming presence of the government in all aspects of economic and social organizations was a central feature. Within this system, there was little or no space for civil society. Economic reform has allowed for an expansion of the market and the weakening of the work-unit system of social support. In the case of Shanghai, the response of the government and the Party has been to develop new organizations at the local district and sub-district level allowing the government to exert its influence at the community level. This remains an administrative change and it remains to be seen how effective this new system is in taking care of the new needs created by economic reform. More importantly, the emergence of the market in employment and housing has also created new opportunities for individuals and it is important to understand the responses of urban residents at the community level. In order to make full use of social resources, the government tries to directly use the market to achieve its goals. For instance, according to the residence committee regulations, the government should provide office buildings for the residence committee. In Shanghai, the average workspace for each residence committee is only 150 squared meters. Under the planned economy system, it was the work-units and the housing management agency that offered the workplace. With the commercialization of housing, the government no longer has the ability to provide a free work place, so it lets the real estate developer take over this provision. In every large commercial real estate, the developers are required to build the office space for the residence committee. With the improvement of living and economic conditions, more than 80 percent of housing units in Shanghai are now maintained by professional real estate management companies. The community sanitary and security problems are also addressed by professional companies. The developers usually pay special attention to create public activity space for the residents. For example, fukangli in Shanghai’s Jing’an District was originally a populous two-floor old shikumen-style lane.6 Recently, this site has been redeveloped as high-rises. To make sure that the residents would have enough public space, the developer built the whole first floor as a mix of commercial and open spaces with a view into old shikumen. The apartments actually start from the second floor. It makes the community not only modern, but also carries the traditional flavor. Many real estate developers regard the “community meeting place” (community center or club) as one of the most important selling points of housing projects. Urban residents usually do not want to confine themselves
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 188
188 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia to their own apartment. They need a common life and common identity within the community. Therefore, choosing a good community is an important factor in considering buying a house. The “community meeting place” and the community center are important places to demonstrate the social class of the community. Shanghai real estate consumers tend to believe more and more that the community should not only have a good natural environment, convenient location, and satisfying commercial and public services, but also should have humanized public activity space. Facilities such as the “community meeting place,” gym and activity center are indications of an affluent community life. Commercial interests may also weaken the influence of the government at the community level. For example, we have mentioned that the government requires the developers to offer office space for the residence committee. Because this will add more construction cost to the developers, some developers have been opposed to this policy. Some developers suggest that since they have already built the “community meeting place” within the residential area, they do not need to set up the residence committee office. Some homeowners even point out that since they already have the homeowner’s association to deal with community affairs, they have no need to establish the residence committee. Resident committees are typically more difficult to set up in more expensive housing projects. In the present environment where housing reform has led to the rapid growth of private homeowners who are more interested in maintaining their quality of life, the residence committee faces a tension with regard to its orientation. It can become a volunteer organization that represents residents’ interest and solves their practical problems, and be independent from the control of the government. On the other hand, it can retain its traditional form and act as a channel between the government and the people, but this latter form is unpopular with residents and an inefficient burden that needs endless investment from the government. Another trend for the government to develop community is to use the power from the civil society. This power is different from the power of the market. Mobilizing the community to address their problems is a difficult choice for the government. On the one hand, the government does not have enough budgets to meet the needs of people for public services. Thus the government wants to use social resources. On the other hand, the government worries that this will have negative effects on its authority if it relies on the civil associations to solve their own problems. Some problems that the government urgently needs to address cannot be solved by the community, such as the one-child policy, blood donation, the urban poor, and political mobilization. Just like all bureaucratic organizations, every government agency seeks for political accomplishment. They want to use the force from the grassroots society to achieve their political goals, but in the meantime, they worry that this grassroots force will become an organized social power that balances and supersedes the power of the state.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 189
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 189 Therefore, the Shanghai government is ambivalent about how to mobilize the power of the society to develop urban community. The most difficult problem is how to control and utilize the urban public sphere. The following are three different examples of the usage of the community public space. Community plaza Historically, the residential areas usually have their public plaza for residents’ entertainment and activity. Different residential areas have different types of public plaza. Old residential areas have lanes that evolved into areas for socializing by local residents; the workers’ residential area built after the CCP liberation is called “big backyard,” while the newly built commercial residential area has green space, a community activity center, and the community meeting place. All these different types of public space can be called a “community plaza.” The government maintains strict control over the activity of the community plaza. The local Party-state offices often launch cultural interaction activities on the community plaza. These activities are usually characterized by political propaganda and mobilization purposes in an effort to promote the Party’s recent policy. However, the residents are not very enthusiastic about this sort of political propaganda activity, and very few people use the plaza as a gathering and communication place. Instead, some community department stores sometimes invite famous stars to have shows on the community plaza, which attracts many residents. Another kind of “plaza” deserves our attention: the community Internet. Many newly built residential areas in Shanghai all have their own websites. The BBS is the communicational platform among the homeowners. People call it “air plaza,” which also means that it is a relatively free space for public discussion.7 Parks Shanghai has more than 133 government-administered parks. With economic reform, some parks such as Yu Yuan Garden at the Chenghuang Temple have been commercialized and have begun to collect administration fees and revenue from ticket sales. But most parks still rely on the government to survive. Because parks are precious public space for their surrounding residents and some new parks do not have walls, the government gradually allows parks to be open free to the public.8 So far, five batches of parks have been allowed to open. After opening the park for free, the government adopts an interactive model of “park, sub-district, and volunteers” to reduce the administration costs. The sub-district committee organizes volunteers to manage the park on a rota basis. These volunteers are usually the local residents. They wear the volunteering badges after finishing their morning exercises in the park and work to maintain the environment, security, and public facility of the park. This kind of three-part interaction model has been promoted across the whole city, and has proved to be quite effective.
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 190
190 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia In the meantime, some public-spirited citizens use this open administration system to organize some activities. For example, in People’s Park, a group of retired teachers and students studying abroad have volunteered to organize the “English study corner.” In the park located across Jiangxi Road and Jiujiang Road, some drama fans have organized the “drama corner.” And in Xujiahui Green, there has been “ballroom dance” evening party.9 Community school Recently, the community school has been widely promoted as one of the community construction projects in Shanghai. It uses the local resources of the primary and middle schools in the sub-district to offer some training and amateur courses for the residents. The three parties participate in the community school: the local Party-state (especially the Party’s propaganda department) is responsible for course setup and enrollment; the school is responsible for providing classrooms and education facilities; and the residence committee is responsible for organizing participants. The educational content of those community schools is quite diverse: from current affairs analysis to stock market analysis, from English, housekeeper and home management to calligraphy, drawing and drama. The teachers are all volunteers and are mostly local employees (for example, the local doctor can sponsor a “family health lecture”). Sometimes the community school can even invite well-known specialists. The community school promotes the idea of “never to old to learn,” meeting residents’ needs in a practical and entertaining way. The Shanghai Municipal Government also requires the public schools to open their grounds (e.g. basketball court, playground) during the weekends and holidays for public use in order to meet the needs of the youths. The local Party-state has played an important role in using community space through forging a partnership with the property management company, park authorities and schools. However, the Party-state remains a powerful administrative system, their objectives are not only to provide benefits to the public, but also to maintain political control over the public. Thus it is hard for the Party-state to organize programs that truly meet the needs of the community. The cost of organization is very high and the participation rate is rather low. Party-state staff tend to organize these activities under order from higher authorities and ignore the real effect of such projects. At least these public spaces are now open to the citizens. The problem is whether the community has the necessary initiative and autonomy to use these spaces.
From Party-state administration to community governance In conclusion, I do not think community construction could be totally independent from government instructions and its supports, because a
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 191
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 191 cohesive society requires good state-society relations, and many of the services are public goods which require government provision. However, I do believe that community will play an extremely important social role as an independent corporate entity. Once the community has become a public sphere of private life under the market economy, once a public sphere emerges as an intermediate power between the state and society, community governance will become a process of self-governance and all external forces will be auxiliary to it at best. In this chapter, I have suggested that the administration of grassroots society would indicate the characteristics and framework of China’s sociopolitical power and its political system, and would also show the features of the regime and basic political forms as embraced in the constitution. More specifically, the political life of the grassroots society should fully demonstrate the leadership of the CCP, the system of the People’s Representative Congress, the role of the government administrative agencies, and the Chinese democracy. Market reform has helped China gain some characteristics of modernity. The omnipotent government and the unifying social structure have turned into a three-part structure: the private sector, the government and the society. During the democratization process of China, the existence of the CCP is the special “fourth part” within the social structure. The political authority of this part makes it possible to coordinate the functioning of the other three parts. I believe this is the most important characteristic of Chinese politics that distinguishes China from the Western democracies. In a country that lacks a Western democratic tradition, maybe this is an advantage of Chinese modernity when China faces the challenge to transform to a modern market economy. Of course, if the CCP seeks to maintain such political authority, it must note that it should not only represent the interest of the government, and it should not overly rely on government power to perform its coordinating function. It must also represent the interests of and have an impact on the private sector. The community construction is a serious challenge to the CCP. It also provides the CCP with an opportunity to readjust its political role and authority. The community will be the political base for the CCP.10 The CCP and its members should act as a model and elite in the community. It is important to separate the role of the Party and the government and to emphasize the social role of the Party. As the market economy and democratic political system have further developed in China, the CCP, like the parties in other modern societies, will come to see the community as its major political and organizational resource. The legitimacy of the CCP will be dependent on and accumulated from the grassroots level society. We should recognize that in the political framework of a modern democratic society, the legitimacy of the ruling party comes not from within the government but from society itself. We should view the role of the CCP in community governance from the perspective of fulfilling the requirements
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 192
192 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia of the “three represents” and “ruling for the people,” as claimed by the CCP. The Party members must be the leaders in the community. The grassroots organizations of the CCP must take part in the community governance work. In order to realize its leadership in the community, the CCP will have to strengthen its social work ability. As the Party-state system has integrated into the community through the creation of the new local administration structure, economic reform has also given urban residents more choices about how to manage local affairs. The municipal government and the district government constitute the first and second level administrations in the society, but an important issue is the organizational work at the third level of society. Work at the third level of society is the fundamental force for community governance and is the inevitable social developmental trend in the market economic system. New forms of semi-private social associations are emerging as local residents begin to organize social activities apart from state intervention. Thus, there are two parallel processes occurring at the same time. On the one hand, the party and government have been effectively reorganizing existing structures to maintain their influence at the community level through the provision of various expenditures to meet the community’s social needs. On the other hand, however, there is a small but emerging effort among the local self-organized associations to carry out various social and recreational activities. How these two forms of social organizations relate to each other will be an interesting phenomenon to study because this indicates a changing state-society relationship and the role of the Party in China.
Notes 1 It is easy to understand that the state power of China was established by the armed revolution led by the Communist Party. 2 “Property Management Regulations,” the State Council, effective in September 2003. 3 According to Shanghai Residential Property Administration Regulations, all property administrative districts that sell public real estates up to 30 percent of total construction surface areas and sell commercial real estates up to 50 percent should establish homeowner’s association. 4 About US$1.25 million at current ( June 2006) exchange rate. 5 In present-day Shanghai, the average population of a sub-district is less than 100 thousand. Therefore, each family will have to spend hundreds of RMB in order to establish a “model community.” The sub-district will have to invest nearly a hundred RMB (US$12.50) on each resident. 6 Shikumen is a typical housing style in Shanghai during the 1920s. Most of them were built between the 1920s and the 1930s, and most of them were renovated or destroyed during the 1990s. To learn more about the common life inside the shikumen, please refer to Hanchao Lu, Beyond The Neon Lights, University of California Press, 1999. 7 One example of such a community website can be found at http://shbbs .soufun.com
9780415397896_4_009.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 193
Changing community relations and emerging civic spaces in Shanghai 193 8 Such as Yan Zhong Green at the center of downtown Shanghai, Huang Xing Green in Yangpu District, and Da Ning Green in Zhabei District, which are all parks built in the past five years. 9 These are not organized by the local Party-state, but are true civil associations. These associations are welcomed by community residents. 10 I also believe, to establish a “Party property” system is an important political challenge to the CCP, who is not able to represent the interests of the private sector under the market economy. This discussion is not included in this paper.
References Bian, Y.J. (1994) Work and Inequality in Urban China, Albany, NY: State University of New York Press. Lu, H.L. (2000) “Community Culture Construction in Pluralistic Economic Development”, Xinhua Digest, issue 10. Lu, H.L. (2003) “Three Transformations in Chinese Socialism”, Shanghai Academy of Social Sciences Working Paper no. 3, Shanghai: Shanghai Academy of Social Sciences Press.
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 194
10 From street corners to plaza The production of festive civic space in central Seoul1 Myungrae Cho
Introduction This paper examines the production of spectacular civic space in central Seoul by analyzing the spatial occupation of magnificent civic rallies along the national boulevard stretching from Kwanghwamun (the Korean equivalent Tiananmen in Beijing) to the City Hall Plaza. Also called the Kwanghwamun square or Kwanghwamun crossroads, this area2 is representative of a civic space of resistance in Seoul, where intense civic demonstrations against political oppression break out (Cho 2003a). However, during the 2002 World Cup games, this zone was repeatedly occupied by young soccer supporters, and in so doing, changed into a spectacular carnival. Since then, spectatorship in Kwanghwamun has been a recurrent phenomenon, with the result that this area has begun to change its spatial character from a civic political space to a festive civic space, attaining spatial authenticity as a public space where new civic identity has been inscribed. Coupled with urban planning, this spatial change represents a window to observe Korea’s changing civil society over the last few years, especially after the so-called IMF crisis and the growth of urban neoliberalism (Cho 2003b). By 2004 there was no officially designated public square or plaza for pedestrians to gather in this area. During the games and afterwards, rallies were initially allowed at the corners of Kwanghwamun crossroads, but this grew to incorporate a larger area The gathering climaxed with the occupation of a traffic circle called the City Hall Plaza, which is in front of Seoul’s city hall. The title of this paper, “From Street Corners to Plaza,” contains two meanings: first, the geographical movement of civic gatherings from the street corners of the Kwanghwamun intersection to the City Hall Plaza; second, along with this movement, the production of new civic (as well as festive) space in central Seoul. This paper is organized to elucidate the detailed aspects of this spatial change. Section two examines the historical form and function of the Kwanghwamun square as a prototype of public space in Korea, where domination and resistance converge. Section three analyzes Kwanghwamun’s
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 195
From street corners to plaza 195 transformation from a militant space of resistance into a festive space by taking two cases, the street occupation of the Red Devils (soccer supporters) during the 2002 World Cup games and the candlelit vigil campaign commemorating the death of two girls crushed by US vehicles. Section four looks into the production of new festive civic spaces involving contestation amongst the concerned parties. The final section tries to characterize the features of a new society that emerges through new civic spaces.
Kwanghwamun square: the space of domination and resistance and an imagined public space The kwanghwamun square: a prototype public plaza Kwanghwamun is the name of the main south gate (pavilion) to the royal Kyungbok palace of the Yi dynasty, which was built at the eco-geographical center of Seoul according to Chinese geomancy, also known as Fungsu (wind & water) in Korean. Kwang-hwa is a phrase of two words3 taken from the following verse: “shining the virtue or grace of the King into all corners of the country.” Hence, the gate facing south of the palace, having an open public space in front, was the place from where the monarch imposed his rule over the people. This front space4 was shaped as a square and also included a road that ran along both east and west sides of the ministerial offices of government, hence called Six-ministry road. The square was the widest public open space in ancient Seoul. The southern end of the square was sealed by a small yellow mud hill called Hwangtohyun, but connected east to Jongro, a main east-west street of central Seoul, along which the government permitted commercial shops to be erected on both sides. Since its inception, the Kwanghwamun square has functioned as a public piazza largely used for governmental activities, where royal families, government officials and yangban – politically influential noblemen – met and interacted. At the same time, the space was often used as a public place where the government proclaimed new public regulations, as well as a location where local intellectuals and commoners presented memorials to the throne or government officials. For these historical reasons, it has remained a symbolic space representing state authority and interaction between the government and people. An imaginary archetype of a public plaza has therefore been inscribed on Korean’s consciousness by historical spatiality such that, to the present day, people call this place “Kwanghwamun Kwangjang” (kwangjiang means “public plaza”). From Kwanghwamun to the South Gate: the street of power Kwanghwamun square has retained its square form, but lost its function as a pedestrian public piazza in 1905 when the square was opened south and connected as a trunk road to the South Gate of Seoul; former
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 196
196 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia location of Seoul Train Station, outside the Seoul castle and the Japanese military base at Yongsan, near the river Hangang. Nowadays, the section of the trunk road between Kwanghwamun and the South Gate has been designated “National Street”. This section is divided into two subsections. The first section is a street called Sejongro, 600 meters long and 100 meters wide, between Kwanghwamun and the Kwanghwamun intersection at the southern end of the old Kwanghwamun square. The space of Sejongro is superimposed on the Kwanghwamun square but much extended for the use of traffic, with 20 lanes. During the colonial period (1910–1945), it was an entry road to the colonial headquarters building and, after independence, became a state boulevard in front of the central government building,5 leading to the presidential office, a characteristic display of state power. Along Sejongro and nearby, there is a concentration of central government office buildings, 40 foreign embassies, including the US and Japanese embassies, head or branch offices of multinational corporations,6 a government-run cultural center (Sejong Cultural Hall) and the like. The second section of National Street is a street called Taepyungro, 1.1 kilometers long and 100 meters wide, between the Kwanghwamun intersection and the South Gate of Seoul. The City Hall of Seoul is 400 meters down along the east side of Taepyungro and has a traffic plaza in front of it. Korea’s leading newspaper buildings, a press center, the metropolitan council building (the original National Parliament building), foreign financial companies and foreign embassies, including the British embassy, are located in between the Kwanghwamun and City Hall. Hence, this section of Taepyungro is symbolic of the power of the press or public opinion. In the meantime, in between the city hall and the South Gate are the headquarters of Korea’s leading conglomerate companies including Samsung. Thus, Kwanghwamun is characterized as a space where Korea’s supreme power representing government, business, mass media and foreign forces are concentrated. The space of resistance Due to the concentration of power institutions, the road between Kwanghwamun and the city hall often turn into an arena where protest, demonstration and resistance against authority, whether against state or private organizations, are expressed in militant and conflicting ways. During the Yi dynasty, Confucian scholars and such leading intellectuals often gathered in the Kwanghwamun square and presented their commendation or appeal to the king. Sometimes the public broke forth in the square and expressed their political views against the king and government. One famous incident was the bloody collision between a group of urban commoners, mainly Confucian students, and the court army in 1519, when the commoners protested against the government’s decision to ostracize a respected scholarly politician (Cho Kwang Jo) who tried to reform the monarchical political system.
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 197
From street corners to plaza 197 In 1895 royal soldiers fought with the Japanese army who, with help from reformists in the Korean government, attempted to assassinate the Empress Myung Sung. After the annexation of Korea to Japan, the Japanese ruler removed Kwanghwamun in 1927 and put a colonial headquarters building in place, whose presence was seen as an expression of colonial oppression. Even under heavy surveillance, at a critical point in time like 1919,7 the square turned into a stage where protest and demonstration for independence from Japanese oppressive rule occurred, at the risk of protestors’ lives. In fact, under the colonial rule, the Kwanghwamun square was conceived of as an imaginary place of celebration where all Koreans wished that they could express the joy of liberation, an observation aptly captured by Shim Hoon, author of the famous modern novel Ever Green Tree (1935): If the day of liberation comes, I would like to run right away to the wide road in front of government ministries, cry with joy and tumble and toss on the surface. If I could not bear such overflowing joy, I would like to peel my skin off to make a drum with it, and, fling the drum around my shoulder, lead a procession. After independence in 1945, a period of political turbulence followed and Kwanghwamun square was continuously a focal point to gather people and stir them into angry protest against corruptive and autocratic politics. The 19 April Student Revolution in 1960 reached its peak in the Kwanghwamun square when an enormous number of students assembled therein and started a surging march towards the Presidential House but was met with police gunfire. This led to the toppling of the Lee Seung Man regime (1948–1960). One year after, the leaders of the military coup proclaimed their success at Kwanghwamun, but placed Kwanghwamun under close surveillance in order to crack down on any political rallies. Since then, police squads have been on constant patrol in this area, becoming a daily fixture in central Seoul’s landscape. However, with the advent of the 1980s, after a new military rule started with the 1980 military massacre in Kwangju, South Cholla Province, political protest and revolt became more militant, and there emerged varied strands of radical activism by unionists, students and leftists. Street-level struggles became the most important means to conduct resistant campaigns against state politics and hence the Kwanghwamun area emerged as an arena for clashes between civic protesters and state forces. The climax was reached in 1986 when, after President Jeon Doo Hwan (1981–1987) withdrew his promise for a direct presidential election, the urban middle class, especially white-collar salaried man and mostly conservatives came out to the Kwanghwamun square and joined political protests. This political event resulted in the turnover of power to the Noh Tae Woo government (1988– 1993), which in turn gave rise to a civilian government led by President Kim Yong Sam (1993–1997).
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 198
198 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia With the advent of the 1990s, the Kwanghwamun area became a more popular place for civic protests associated with various social issues like environmental problems, foreign trade, north–south unification, foreign labor’s human rights, employment and the like. The space has emerged as a typical civic space to express citizen’s view against or for all kinds of current-affairs issues in Korean society. The spatial conduct of resistance Thus public or civic resistance to domination, authoritarian oppression and illegitimate rule are a code of the Kwanghwamun area. Resistance is expressed in varied ways. The most common is political congregation, demonstration, and picketing. These activities are combined with such acts that demonstrators occupy symbolic sites such as the US Embassy, the statue of Admiral Lee Sun Shin and sometimes whole areas to fight the police squad in violent ways, throwing Molotov cocktails, setting fires in the middle of the road as a barricade, attacking with sticks against the riot police’s use of tear gas. The whole area becomes a battlefield, creating a vivid picture of street struggle released through the press to the rest of the world. Fighting between protesters and police squad is regarded as the act of civic resistance against the domination of state power which is symbolized by the Kwanghwamun area. Participants in civic resistance are mostly young students, civic activists, unionists, sometimes and the “neck-tie troop” comprised of salaried man and ordinary citizens. A small number of intellectuals and politically committed activists do participate in mass demonstrations. Most citizens remain bystanders. By 2004 there was no official public plaza in the Kwanghwamun area which could accommodate a large number of people to assemble but, nonetheless, almost every day various kinds of civic rallies take place here and there around the Kwanghwamun area. Of course, it is compulsory to acquire a permit for a rally from the police. Street corners, steps in front of Sejong Cultural Hall, a small plot near the entrance of government buildings, pockets of parks besides large buildings and the like are used as sites for civic gatherings. A few times a year, the roads are closed to vehicular traffic to enable the square to be used for festivals and public celebrations. An interesting phenomenon is that many public gatherings and campaigns such as trade union rallies start somewhere else and, after marching, end in Kwanghwamun.
The spatial expression of new civic life: the street cheering of soccer supporters and the candlelit vigil campaign Democratizing the Kwanghwamun space The Kwanghwamun area is still under full time police patrol and surveillance, although the police presence has been reduced compared to the past. The
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 199
From street corners to plaza 199 removal of the authoritarian capitol building (formerly the Japanese colonial headquarters) behind Kwanghwamun has brought a triangular mountain behind the Kyungbok palace into sight, rendering the landscape of the Kwanghwamun area more amiable to citizens. Moreover, many small public open spaces beside or in buildings, provided as an outcome of civic campaigns for securing “public open space” in private lots, has attracted more citizens to stay and linger in the Kwanghwamun area. The giant screens at the top of high rise buildings at corners of the Kwanghwamun crossroads have brought in many people when the screens broadcast sport games or TV entertainment programs. With these new spatial practices and experiences in Kwanghwamun, people’s perception of the area as an imaginary public space becomes revived, so that it stimulates citizens’ desire for using the Kwanghwamun area (especially Sejongro) as a liberated public space. In response to this citizens’ desire, the city government of Seoul, formed through local election from 1995, designates several days every year as car-free days for an imagined plaza of Kwanghwamun and opens Sejongro (the Kwanghwamun square) for citizens or civil organizations to hold cultural events to commemorate important dates like Environment Day, Thanksgiving, and Christmas. Experiencing the square in this way, citizens infuse their sense of space as a public plaza into the identity of this area. This has been simulated by civic campaigns that are conducted by a new type of NGO mostly involved in cultural movements,8 which demand the conversion of the Kwanghwamun area into a civic public space or piazza by relocating governmental and authoritative buildings like the US embassy. A leading slogan for this campaign is “let us give the Kwanghwamun road(Sejongro) back to citizens for their free use.” This has democratized the Kwanghwamun space. This changing spatiality of the Kwanghwamun area has been reinforced by the hosting of two mass rallies in 2002. The first one is the spectacular rally organized by the soccer supporter group called Red Devils during the Korea–Japan World Cup game in June 2002 and the second is the candlelight vigil campaign to mourn two school girls killed by a US military vehicle, held in December 2002. What follows attempts to trace the ways in which each of these two rallies occupied the area and to understand how the area has been changed in terms of its nature and function. The street cheering of Red Devils (soccer supporters) The 2002 World Cup games were held jointly in Korea and Japan between May 31 and June 30 2002. In Korea, games were hosted in ten cities, starting with an opening ceremony in Seoul. World Cup games are a typical world sports festival which tugs today’s cultural globalization. While games were being hosted, cities like Seoul attracted worldwide attention. The most impressive cultural capture of global attention was, among others, a scene of soccer supporters’ enthusiastic cheering in major streets, especially in the Kwanghwamun area.
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 200
200 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia This “street cheering” was entirely organized by a voluntary organization called Red Devils and reflects a new civic culture. To those who recall the Kwanghwamun area as a symbolic arena for citizen’s fierce struggles against political tyranny, it is a shock to see a crowd of soccer supporters yell out soccer players’ names instead of political slogans in such an insurgent civic space. The World Cup games have become an important stimulant to infuse a cultural desire of the new generation who has emerged as a new member of Korea’s ever changing civil society. Red Devils9 is one of the young generation’s civil organizations in pursuit of post-material and cultural values geared to their identity formation. It was formed in 1997 to support the Korean team participating in the 1997 World Cup games in France and the name Red Devils was chosen through a public contest on the Internet. For the 2002 World Cup games in Korea, the Red Devils had debated the best strategy on the Internet and finally released a notice to announce that members of the Red Devils should watch the games televised through giant screens at the corners of the Kwanghwamun crossroad. It was a start for Red Devils to assemble at the corners of Kwanghwamun. But as the Korean team progressed, the assembly snowballed rapidly and spread, at first, around the street corners, later on along both sides of Sejongro and Taepyugro, moving south where there is an large open space, the City Hall Plaza (14,548 m2), which is currently used as a traffic circle. Ten days after the games started, the Red Devils assembly in the Kwanghwamun reached one million and fans were allowed to occupy the City Hall Plaza. Since then the City Hall Plaza has been opened as a formal place for people to come and join the cheering and be entertained with cultural events. Assembly started from one day before a major match game and reached the largest number at 2 million. Assembling and cheering became more than just the support of games and turned into a grand festival as participants came wearing red shirts, painting their body, holding a national flag or other instruments for entertainment. Not only were members of the Red Devils involved in the assembly, but also ordinary citizens like couples, families, the elderly and even foreign residents and visitors. Before the games started, young artists always performed music and dance on a make-shift front stage. This kind of large-scale festival, where ordinary citizens, regardless of their age, color, gender and status, joined voluntarily, was the first ever mass event in Korean history. Before, during and after the festival, participants intermingled with others, singing and dancing together without feeling fear or threat in a space associated with surveillance and authority. The carnival has became a substitute for insurgence as the code of the Kwanghwamun space. Participation at an individual level was expressed as wearing red shirts or other festival costume, body painting, singing and dancing together and waving flags. Key expressions were rhythmical
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 201
From street corners to plaza 201 shouting of Daehanminkook (the country name of Korea in Korean), Victory Korea, Peace Korea and the like. Such key expressions reveal Korea’s strong nationalism cherished in the hearts of citizens, but a chauvinist kind of nationalism which was indoctrinated by authoritarian rulers. This nationalism or national identity expressed during the World Cup festival was also culturally refined to reveal an identity of Korea as a member of a global civil society (Smith 2001). The most revealing example was decorating one’s body with national flags and shouting together for the peace and harmony of the world. In this sense, the spatial occupation of Red Devils in Kwanghwamun including the City Hall Plaza was akin to the occupation by rebels of the Concorde Plaza during the French Revolution to express their rights to liberty. Carnival participants expressed their liberation from ideological and political restraints in Korean society and enhanced their collective identity in a global era. An ideological dilemma in Korea is so-called red complex, an ideological complex to avoid anything related to Marxist communism, which is a representative ideology of North Korea. No doubt, the spatial occupation of red color (Red Devils) in the nation’s square helped relieve the older generations of their red complex. Revealing all these spatially, the Kwanghwamun area has changed in its identity from Korea’s representative insurgent space to an emergent festive space. This is spontaneously created with the specter of carnival assembly but disappears afterwards in a physical sense. However it has left a strong image of the plaza in the minds of Korean people. In fact, after the World Cup games ended, a strong voice or consensus has been built for reshaping part of Kwanghwamun into a public space or a typical plaza, which does not exist in downtown Seoul. The candlelit vigil campaign While most people were indulging in the carnival, a tragic accident occurred on May 16, 2002: two middle-school girls on their way back home from school were crushed to death by a US army vehicle (tank) on military exercise. But due to people’s skewed enthusiasm for the World Cup games, the accident did not attract much popular attention. Almost six months after the games ended, a citizen put an article on the Internet to express his heartbroken view of the neglect of the tragic accident on November 27, 2002. In the article he suggested a candlelight meeting to commemorate the memory of the two girls’ death, by saying “let the Kwanghwamun area fill with our soul.” This suggestion was heatedly debated and spread rapidly among so-called netizens on cyber communication networks, and three days after the suggestion was made, many users participated by symbolically hanging a mourning band on the Internet site. On November 30, 2002, the first candlelit memorial meeting was held in what is called “the Kwanghwamun Plaza,” which is a small pocket of park
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 202
202 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia around the corners of the Kwanghwamun crossroads. Most participants were those who were on the on-line network of communication. The meeting was held every night and developed, after a week, into a big demonstration rally spreading from the crossroads along linked roads. On the very day, 100,000 citizens joined the rally and started to march along streets holding lit candles in a paper cup. The rally expanded quickly as participants from the World Cup games festival joined. However, unlike the World Cup festival, civil movement organizations, such as Korea University Student Association, National Committee for the Prevention of American Soldiers’ Crimes, Teachers Union and the like joined. Hence the campaign became radical in terms of slogans or objectives as conflicts emerged between the netizens who were without political stance and the NGO activists oriented to ideology and politics. While the campaign spread all over Korea, it became more radical and, later on, combined, to some extent, with the campaign for anti-Americanism and anti-Iraq-war. Nevertheless, the candlelit vigil campaign has remained as a new form of social campaign led by the new generation who rely on the Internet and who are less concerned with ideological and political issues. In fact, the campaign spread rapidly as many ordinary citizens participated, like young school girls, housewives, teachers, office workers, artists and so on. The ways in which the campaign was organized and carried out were based entirely on horizontal networks on a cyber space. This kind of campaign is characterized by the absence of a centripetal force or agent in the movement and is likely to lose momentum. However, this campaign could overcome such limitations. It could be done, among others, by putting traditional social values on the agenda and by calling for anonymous netizens to participate in real space, which is the Kwanghwamun plaza. The originator of the candlelight meeting was asked to come out and deliver his view on the campaign. In his speech, he emphasized that the campaign should be addressed to such social values as justice and democracy and, to do so, should rely on principles like nonviolence, peace, and non-obedience. He went on to say that all these should be demonstrated in the Kwanghwamun plaza and proposed a new campaign called “from (cyber) Cafe to Plaza.” He ended his speech by saying that for him the Kwanghwamun space should be a spatial emblem of Korea’s new civil society. Conducted in this way, the candlelit vigil campaign, continuing until the first anniversary of the death of the two girls, has led to a swing in orientation among Korea’s rapidly growing netizens from carnival celebration to civic duty. The Kwanghwamun area is a social space in which such new type of citizens are born and cultivated. Because of this atmosphere, the campaign attracted more citizens and culminated by occupying the City Hall Plaza. As in the case of the Red Devils’ soccer support festival, the assembly in the City Hall Plaza was frequently combined with participants holding hands and singing. The key means of expression in this campaign
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 203
From street corners to plaza 203 was waving candlelight in a cup as a way to express their prayer for the peace of the dead and a wish for no more accidents of a similar kind (committed by foreign troops). With waving lighted candles in the dark, the City Hall Plaza looked as if a joyful festival was going on. In fact, the space turned out to be a kind of liminal place where citizens expressed their desire for social justice and peace in such festive fashion. Hence the code of the plaza, at least for the space of the campaign, was the carnival or festive expression of solemn value like justice, peace and citizenship, that is an uneasy combination of the signifier (festival) and the signified (citizenship). As street-corner campaigns ended up as a plaza campaign, it has given rise to a festive civic space in central Seoul. Table 10.1 summarizes differences in the spatial expression of two mass rallies.
For the production of festive space Reborn into a civic space The Kwanghwamun area was from the outset a typical space of domination and power exercised by the state. So the ways in which power is exerted on the public determine how the space is formed and functions. To the extent that it is a space of state power or authority, it also is a space to accommodate the public’s insurgence and resistance against the ruling power. This has led to people’s perception of the Kwanghwamun area as a prototype of public space, giving rise to such popular belief that the space should be democratized along with the enhancement of civic rights. This popular belief makes the Kwanghwamun area a central arena of fighting between the state and citizens or the police squad and civic activists. By repeating this spatial practice, people provide the Kwanghwamun area with a status of imagined public plaza, in which citizens get together for the sake of protesting against political wrongdoing, debating national issues and expressing civic solidarity. This perception towards the Kwanghwamun area tends to reinforce itself as netizens, mostly the young generation, come out of the on-line space and use this imaginary plaza as a real space of communication. As the new generation, otherwise called the N-generation or the W(orld Cup)generation, becomes a new occupier of the Kwanghwamun space, it becomes also salient that the space is transformed into a new space representing the cultural code associated with the new generation, such as identity, jubilance, post-materialism, and depoliticization. So when the rally of the new generation takes place, it is natural that the space displays a carnival or festive mood that is produced through the active expression by the young generation of their cultural identity and not by an act of resistance or insurgency. Nowadays, the Kwanghwamun is more frequently used for this carnival purpose. The City Hall Plaza is especially permitted by the city government
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 204
Table 10.1 A comparison of the spatial expression of two rallies
Key stimulator Major participants Motivation
Means of communication Debating place Meeting place Major groups of participants Sizes of gatherings Geographical Spread Climax Major means of expression Expressions
Encounter with people State behind the scene Civil values expressed
Form of civic space Underlying ideology
Red Devils’ soccer support
Candlelit vigil campaign
Red Devils: a soccer-mad group N(etwork) generation, age 20s–30s support for a Korean team in World Cup games
a cyber debate chamber
Internet cyberspace street corners at the Kwanghwamun crossroad near electric light boards young people in group families older generation foreigners few thousand to 2 million street corners → pedestrian space along a national road, → the city hall plaza occupation of the whole city hall plaza red shirts in uniform body paintings national flag music bands Daehanminkook (Korea) Victory Korea Peace Korea
intermingle with joy supportive protective generational identity freed from ideological obligation national identity in a global age disenchantment of ideology (free from a red complex) spontaneously created with spirit a festive and discursive plaza urban neo-liberalism
Source: Author’s observations and estimates.
N(etwork) generation, age 20s–30s mourn and protest against the death of girl students by a US army vehicle Internet cyberspace street corner at the Kwanghwamun crossroad near the US embassy young students families civil activists few thousand street corners → march along major roads in downtown → the city hall plaza occupation of the whole city hall plaza candle light in a paper cup
punishment of American soldiers in Korean courts correction of unequal agreement on the status of American troops in Korea anti-Americanism intermingle with self-devotion supportive but policing generational identity freed from ideological obligation national identity in a global age disenchantment with pro-Americanism spontaneously created with spirit a festive and discursive plaza urban neo-liberalism
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 205
From street corners to plaza 205 of Seoul to host cultural events and hence gained a new name, Nanjang, meaning a festive place. However, festive activities in this space are only temporary, after which the space returns to its original use as a traffic plaza. This limitation has created an increasing demand to convert part of the Kwanghwamun area into an authentic public plaza where only pedestrians are allowed and civic acts like debate and demonstration are permissible. So far, two types of plaza have been proposed: the Kwanghwamun Plaza and the City Hall Plaza. The Kwanghwamun Plaza In 1997 the Seoul City government undertook a feasibility study on establishing a pedestrian zone along the central axis of Sejongro but almost gave up the idea because of potential resistance from central government and citizens. However, this initiative for an open public space has been kept alive by a NGO called Citizen Networks for Cultural Reform who proposed the Kwanghwamun Plaza . Since 1999, this NGO has carried out a campaign for changing the whole section of Sejongro into Korea’s representative plaza like the Concorde Plaza in Paris and Trafalgar Square in London. After the World Cup Games ended, a number of civic fora have been held to discuss ideas on the Kwanghwamun Plaza. Citizen Networks for Cultural Reform is the strongest advocate for a radical version of the Kwanghwamun plaza: reshaping the whole area of Sejongro including sidewalks into a full scale plaza and relocating all surrounding “power institutions” like central government offices and the US embassy. It is suggested that the project for the Kwanghwamun Plaza should be carried out as a combination of three different projects. The first one is a spatial project designed to transform the space of state into the space of citizen which functions as a cultural monument for the 2002 World Cup Games; the second is a generational project aiming at converting the passion of the new generation into the social energy for enhancement of cultural life in Korea; the third is a carnival project geared to stimulating festivity and conviviality in the everyday life of citizens. However, this civic vision for the Kwanghwamun Plaza as such is highly controversial, indicating that it can become a new locus of contestation between government and citizens over the character of the Kwanghwamun Plaza. This case has left us with a lesson that a public open space, as a space of civil society, can be easily created when civic power or demand for this are strong enough. The City Hall Plaza The City Hall Plaza was officially proposed by the mayor elect of Seoul City in 2002. By then there had been several attempts to rebuild the traffic plaza into a pedestrian square but without success. This idea had been strongly supported by a NGO called Urban Solidarity which led a Walkable
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 206
206 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia City campaign. During the 2002 World Cup games, the City Hall Plaza showed its potential for an authentic public plaza, as it functioned as a festive place where a small gathering of netizens at street corners blossomed into a spectacular assembly of participants. This experience created strong pressure for reshaping its form as a traffic circle into a public open space. The first and formal response came out, just after the end of the 2002 World Cup games, from the then elect mayor of Seoul, Lee Myung Park (2002–2006). As soon as he was elected, he proclaimed that the square in front of the city hall would be reorganized into a public pedestrian plaza. To keep his promise, he formed a committee in the Seoul City government which supervised the project. The committee’s first task was to hold a public design competition. The winning project was based on the idea that light is shed from the ground of the plaza, along which the pride and power of citizens spreads to the rest of the world. However this project was initially not supported by the Council of the Seoul City Government, because of its negative effect on a traffic situation downtown in Seoul. With support from civil society, Mayor Lee persuaded the Council and obtained approval in 2003. Yet, just one month before “Seoul Hi Festival” due on 1 May 2004, which was an official festival introduced by Mayor Lee as part of his election promise, the Seoul City government suddenly decided to construct the City Hall Plaza as a “lawn plaza,” instead of the chosen “light plaza.” The reason was the high cost and difficulty for construction and management. On 1 May 2004, the City Hall Plaza was opened with a new name of Seoul Plaza and used as a place for celebrating the holding of Seoul Hi Festival which runs for a month (see Figure 10.1). To provide legal guidelines for the public use of the plaza, the Seoul City government proclaimed a “Rule on the Use and Management of Seoul Plaza,” but without a sincere consultation with civil society. This became a cause for confrontation between the city government and citizens over defining and using the Seoul Plaza as an authentic public plaza.
On a new society: new generation, new ideology and new civility The culture of plaza Let us go to the plaza! This is a common phrase uttered after the 2002 World Cup. The plaza has become a new emblem to epitomize a new civic culture which emerged. It is quite common to read that the term “plaza” is contrasted with the term “secret room”. Until the 2002 World Cup games, Korean society was imbued with the culture of secret room. The World Cup became a catalyst for Koreans to emerge out from the dark recess and enter a bright plaza and more than 20 million Koreans took part in this symbolic emergence through their role as active supporters.10
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 207
From street corners to plaza 207
Figure 10.1 Opening day of Plaza Park, 1 May 2004.
The new generation With this new flourishing of civic culture, there has been a heated debate over the type of new society which has emerged. One of the key debates is on the new generation called “W(orld cup)-generation.” This new generation of young adults is often contrasted with the old generation in every aspect. The old generation consists of the population who achieved the miracle of Korean economic success but suffered from the stress of political and ideological obligation. They share a strong collective identity but lack passion on a personal level. For them, the Kwanghwamun area is an ambivalent space which imposes as sense of both docility and resistance. On the other hand, the new generation is mostly a cohort produced by Korean modernization and material and cultural affluence. Relieved from political and ideological obsession, they are libertarians easily engaged in communicating with each other. Cyber networks are an exclusive means for them to build their view and thought in a flexible way. They are addicted to pursing post-material values like code, symbol, discourse and the like but were forced to suppress their desire under the disciplinary influence of the old generation. The 2002 World Cup games got them out of this circumstance and stimulated them to express and pursue their distinct favor and value to the full. Compared with the old generation, they are individualistic but keep themselves within a community of consensus. For instance, they decorate their body to show their individuality but share the red color with a national flag in their hands. In this way they are
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 208
208 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia more expressive and articulate in delivering their view and thought and so are able to be more active members of civil society than their parent’s generation. This alludes to the fact that, with the new generation emerging, Korea’s civil society is undergoing a significant change in terms of its internal composition and dynamics. The Korean civil society is at most 15 years old if we accept the assertion that it began to rise from the late 1980s when a new urban middle class with civic consciousness come into being. This implies that the Korean civil society is far from mature and involves many contradictory elements, and therefore cannot play its supposed role as what Gramsci calls the third realm between the state and the private economy, where civic autonomy and cultural diversity are a key virtue (Cho 2003a). This immaturity and incompleteness of civil society prevents a settled spatial embodiment that has a distinctive and inclusive character. Indeed civic spaces in Korean cities are still deeply contaminated by the influence of intervening state as well as colonized by private and market interests. Ideological disenchantment If Korea’s civil society is to mature, enlightened citizens should be more rational in their social actions and be more aware of their responsibility for social justice and collective good. One of the primary qualifications for modern citizenship is the disenchantment of individuals from ideological prejudice or ideological irrationality. In this regard one can argue that Korean’s red complex has to be removed in order to enhance political and civic rationality (Hall and Gieben 1992). Seen in this perspective, it is remarkable that during the spatial occupation of two grand rallies in central Seoul, the new generation could overcome the burden of red complex in a festive (not serious) manner and go on asserting anti-Americanism with their own will, which is as much prohibited as the red ideology in Korea. This kind of ideological enchantment is an important emerging phenomenon and that can contribute to the diversification of civil society in terms of political and social ideology (Shields 1999). In Korea, the assertion of antiAmericanism represents an erosion of Korea’s post-war ideological doctrine of anticommunism and pro-Americanism. For the young generation who emphasize their identity, the anti-Americanism expressed through the candlelight vigil campaign is nothing more than articulating their identity in a collective but festive way. Neoliberal civility It may be too early to judge what Korea’s new civil society would be like exactly because it contains many contradictions. It may not be theoretically cogent to posit the W-generation as a critical constituent of new civil society. Their civility and collective action is far from stable and politically
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 209
From street corners to plaza 209 reliable (Cho 2003c). The key feature of civility is a modern citizen’s capability to judge and act in a rational way conforming to social values like democracy and justice. It seems that the civility of the W-generation is short of fulfilling such conditions in the sense that less than half of all Seoulite participated in the 2002 local elections in the middle of the 2002 World Cup games. What is more, the result of the election turned out to be very conservative in that for 22 of 25 districts in the Seoul metropolis, the candidates from a conservative party were elected as heads of district governments. It was a complete reversal of the 1997 election result. This result was not simply an accident, but rather a structural manifestation that urban politics tend to be captivated by neo-liberalism. This results from the change that urban daily life is reshuffled into a neo-liberal order under the influence of globalization. In a city like Seoul, this is an aftermath of the 1997 economic crisis, through which urban civil society has been permeated by neo-liberal values like market competition, cultural consumption, identity and the like (Cho 2003b).
Conclusion This paper has shown the interplay between space and society, by examining a civic space in central Seoul which has undergone a change from a typical resistant space to an emergent festive space in coupling with the maturing of civil society in Korea. Such civic space as Kwanghwamun is thus defined as not simply a passive container, but an active agent of societal change. However, such spatialization that is “social change via spatial transformation” is characteristically full of conflicts among the parties involved, as well as contradictions arising from its underlying ideological force. For the former, conflicts between old and new generations occur around the use and defining of civic space, whilst, for the latter, neoliberalism, as underpinned by globalization, penetrates and dissolves the collective nature of contesting civic space in the daily-life sphere. This means that civic spaces in an ever-changing metropolis like Seoul are a site of contestation around the ways of how society should be changed. Though reborn into a festive space representing the identity of a new generation, Kwanghwamun is to be shaped into an authentic form of civic space in which civil values are cultivated as a means to cope with the influence of globalization.
Notes 1 Grateful acknowledgement is given to the Toda Foundation for helping to fund this research and for organizing and funding the Second Grand Conference in Vancouver. 2 A detailed account of the geographical feature of the Kwanghwamun area appears in the following section. 3 Kwang means light, while Hwa means change.
9780415397896_4_010.qxd 07/09/2007 08:58 Page 210
210 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia 4 In traditional China, this space in front of the royal palace was built as the boulevard called Jujackdaro, along where the god called Jujack, a keeper of the south, was present. 5 This building was a colonial headquarter built in 1916 and converted into a national museum in 1986 after central government offices therein moved to a new town (Gwacheon) outside Seoul. It was demolished by President Kim Yong Sam in 1995 under the pretext of recovery of Korean history. 6 Ninety-five percent of foreign financial companies in Seoul are located around the Kwanghwamun area. 7 1919 was the year when the national protest for independence took place all over Korea. 8 A leading civic organization initiating cultural movement in Korea is Citizen Networks for Cultural Reform. 9 The name Red Devils was taken after Red Furies, which the Mexican mass media named Korea’s national youth soccer team who rigorously played in red uniform at the 1983 world youth match, like the Furies in Greek myth. 10 Given its role as the historical focal point for Korean soccer fans for the 2002 World Cup, Seoul Plaza was officially designated as a gathering point for the 2006 World Cup and street cheering by soccer fans was present during this period. However, the right to use this space was given (or sold) to a private consortium and it is still under police surveillance. While Seoul Plaza was still a focal point of festive gathering, this area has been penetrated by commercial and institutional powers. This means that Seoul Plaza looks like a public open space but is under heavy surveillance by a public authority. It is therefore a contradictory space.
References Cho, M.R. (2003a) “Civic Spaces in Urban Korea”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 419–32. Cho, M.R. (2003b) “The Financial Crisis and Neoliberal Urban Changes”, paper presented at International Conference of Regional Studies Association in Pisa, Italy, 12–15 April 2003. Cho, M.R. (2003c) “Flexible Sociality and the Post Modernity of Seoul”, in Korea National Commission for UNESCO (ed.) Korean Anthropology: Contemporary Korean Culture in Flux, Seoul: Hollym. Hall, S. and Gieben, B. (1992) Formation of Modernity, Cambridge: Polity. Shields, R. (1999) Lefebvre, Love and Struggle, London: Routledge. Smith, M. (2001) Transnational Urbanism: Locating Globalization, Oxford: Blackwell.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 211
11 Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis Merlyna Lim
Tracing the survival of civic spaces in Indonesian cities, particularly in Jakarta, this paper examines an underlying system between politics and urban spaces with political power as a driver behind spatial actions. Using the Indonesian case, this paper suggests that the creation of civic spaces during the political change in 1998 cannot be understood as an independent event that occurred in a certain time-space nexus, but should be read in the bigger map of the history of Indonesian socio-politics and in relation to global events. Chronologically examining the existence of civic spaces of the city, this paper argues that any provision of spaces for public use in the course of history are vital to the development of civic spaces for society. This paper also shows that a short and rapid process of abrupt social mobilization possibly leads to the creation of ephemeral civic spaces. As political change is accomplished, the sustainability of these transient civic spaces thus is very much dependent on the outcomes of power struggles between the state, civil society and corporate economy. Looking at the historical evidence of the emergence and re-emergence of civic spaces in Indonesia, this paper argues that the provision of civic spaces will continue to be an important element of democratization processes. In the struggle over power in creating, capturing, and expanding civic spaces, civil society alone cannot transform ephemeral civic spaces into sites for peaceful engagement in the public sphere. The state also plays a crucial role in governing the provision of and access to civic spaces through its powers of making and enforcing law to create non-commercial, safe, democratic and tolerant public spaces in the city. How to transform overtly contested, often violent, yet ephemeral sites of political action into routinely accessible spaces for peaceful accommodation of the rise of civil society is a central question in ongoing political reform in Indonesia.
Space and politics Space is inherently political; politics is inherently spatial. (Elden 2001: 6)
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 212
212 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Elden’s gloss of Lefebvre and Foucault’s thoughts cited above and a comment echoed in Harvey’s claim that “geographical knowledges occupy a central position in all forms of political action and struggle” (2001: 233) both underscore the truism that politics and spatial processes are inexorably intertwined. In his reflection on political theories, Elden (2001) argues that politics should be seen as spatial rather than polemical, a conclusion derived from Heideggerian rethinking of polis as the root of “politics.” Space should be seen both as the forum of inscription of polemical politics and domain or structure of politics. If following Heidegger’s “politics is spatial” (Elden 2001: 151) and Foucault’s “space is fundamental to any exercise of power,” (1984: 252) presumably a change in space would also indicate a political change, though the causality might not be so directly observable. Thus a deeper and more inclusive understanding about politics or space can be actually gathered by reading the spatial and political elements of change within a specific historical frame. This framework of thinking forms a project of spatial history in which both time and space can be incorporated. In this regard, space is not only used as an object but also as a tool for analyzing political developments and its phenomena. Echoing Elden, it is important to both “historicize space and spatialize history” (2001: 3). Problematizing the bond between space, time (history) and politics draws the consideration toward Jameson’s argument, which attempts to relate “sites of resistance” to the element of time. Following Lefebvre, Jameson (1991) argues that in order to help recover the sites of resistance, one needs “a new kind of spatial imagination capable of combining the past in a new way and reading its less tangible secret off the template of its spatial structures; body, cosmos, city, as those marked the more intangible organization of culture and libidinal economies and linguistic forms” (1991: 364–65). Here, Jameson tries to reinstate space at the heart of a dynamic conception of time-space relations. Jameson argues that the mapping of the individual by the spatial specificity of their subject positions is important to uncover the hidden human geography of power. By putting politics alongside spatiality, a discourse of democratization must include a discussion about “civic space” as a decisive factor of the rise of civil society. The term “civic space” is used here instead of “public space” to clarify the need for space in which civil society can engage in its daily practices of voluntary organization (Douglass et al. 2002). By overlapping the survival of civic spaces and civil society in the city we thus can examine important aspects of the space-politics nexus.
State, city and civic spaces in Indonesia While the concepts of civic space and civil society are new to Indonesia, just like they are to other Pacific Asian countries, both terms are intertwined and found in the course of Indonesian history from the pre-colonial to
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 213
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 213 the current reformation period. In any sociopolitical situation, even in the most repressive situation civil society and civic spaces always exist. Hegemony, after all, is never absolute and the resistance also cannot be totally subjugated. Moreover, life spaces for everyday practice of civil society exist even where not politically manifest. Thus, civil society exists in varying degrees in any territorial formation and this existence is reflected in as well as dependent upon the construction of civic spaces for its practices. This section briefly offers a chronology of civic spaces in Indonesia, focusing on Jakarta – the capital of Indonesia – starting from the pre-colonial period, followed by Dutch colonialism, Sukarno’s regime and Suharto’s regime. While not necessarily trying to provide a complete historical proof of the existence of civic spaces, this narrative reveals that any provision of space is essential for civic activities and social changes to flourish. Following on from the insights of Lefebvre (1991) and Foucault (1984), rather than being simply a pre-existing given or a backdrop of social action, the production of space is an active dimension of social life and change.
The pre-colonial Islamic period (1500s–1619) In the pre-colonial era, under the rule of Javanese/Islamic kings, public parks and plazas were among the major civic spaces. While the ideal or authentic civic spaces might not have existed, the civic characteristics can be found in many public spaces in many Indonesian cities. For example, Jakarta – originally Sunda Kelapa or Jayakarta – in the immediate precolonial period, in accordance with the Javanese town planning principles, featured a town center with alun-alun – a main square with the king’s palace on the south side and the mosque on the west side. While it, at any rate, did not function as a democratic space, alun-alun nonetheless had a more civic nature than its surroundings. This was the only square where the Sultan (the authority) met the people and conducted dialogue. The dialogue itself was never an actual two-way communication; it was very much ritualistic and ceremonious. Thus, like the Greek polis, while the form of this space is civic, the content itself is not necessarily civic in the sense of autonomy from the state or inclusion of all “citizens.” The civic-ness is symbolic but not authentic. The alun-alun was actually created as a space where the sacred and profane meet. For people in that period alun-alun was a symbol of the sovereign’s humility; people were invited to feel blessed in seeing and listening to their king in this space. Yet, certainly this is an inverse logic that was created by the authorities. Authority created this space to manipulate the people and legitimize its power. Accordingly, we can term this a “colonized civic space.” However, this kind of space, in contrast, can be a template for future civic actions – a proto civic space. In fact, in the history of popular movements in Indonesia, the alun-alun has always been the main site of people struggling against the authorities.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 214
214 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
The Dutch colonial period (1619–1949) With the coming of the VOC (Dutch United East India Company), the precolonial Islamic Sultanate of Jayakarta was torn down and renamed Batavia. Under the ruthless leadership of VOC fourth governor-general, Jan Pieterszoon Coen, Batavia was totally rebuilt to legitimize the existence of VOC as the Dutch Queen’s representative in its colonized territory. The totality of architecture and urban design reflected its new meaning as a center of the Dutch Empire, drawing from the imagination of the built environment to assert its being part of the presumed civilizing beneficence of the Dutch. Civic spaces, or more precisely, the proto civic spaces of the colonial period, can be found in public parks and squares. The Dutch colonial authority built major city squares that later became the city center of Jakarta under Indonesian regimes. The parks and plazas, For example Stadhuisplein and Koningsplein – all of which were the parts of two main squares of the ancient Batavia, were built mainly for the pleasure of authority and as a power symbol; however, these were also places where parades were held and common people went to take in fresh air. Ironically, as proto civic spaces, the parks and squares that the Dutch created later became the archetypical insurgent civic spaces1 where colonized people overthrew the very power of the Dutch who created these spaces. The most glaring example was the revolutionary episode of Ikada Square – formerly Koningsplein – now around the Independence Square or Monas Square. In September 1945, in this square – which under the Dutch rule functioned as the main square opposite the central administrative and governance building – assembled a gigantic meeting of 300,000 Indonesian people who amazingly knew where to gather together only by word-of-mouth. This meeting was followed by a series of meaningful independence struggles against the Dutch across the Indonesian cities, thus marking the beginning of the four-year Independence war between Indonesia and the Dutch from 1945 to 1949.
Sukarno’s Old Order regime (1949–1965) More than just establishing Jakarta, the capital city, as the center of Indonesia, Sukarno, the first president of Indonesia, conceived this city as “the beacon of the new emerging forces” (Asian–African countries). During the time of his Guided Democracy system, Sukarno decided to make Jakarta over as an ivory tower, a center of the new world with reference to non-bloc countries by putting all elements of the world’s architecture on the map of Jakarta. Many of Jakarta’s most famous landmarks are dated from this period: the Senayan Sports Complex; the first of its luxury hotels, the Hotel Indonesia and its beautiful roundabout (Figure 11.1); Indonesia’s first department
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 215
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 215
Figure 11.1 The Hotel Indonesia (HI) roundabout (traffic circle).
store, Sarinah; the Conefo building, now the Parliament House; the biggest mosque in Asia, Istiglal; and a remarkable collection of crude, powerful statues in the “heroes of socialism” tradition. His ultimate monumental legacy was the National Monument, or Monas (Figure 11.2), erected in the center of the Koningsplein, once the main square of colonial Jakarta. The center was renamed Independence Square as a commemoration of the independence struggles in which Sukarno himself acted as supreme leader. Sukarno did not build many modern buildings, with the exception of a few early grand buildings but, instead, revived the site of Old Batavia and removed traces of the colonial period by transforming the face of Dutch architecture into socialist art and architectural traditions of monuments and statues. In his city, Jakarta, Sukarno wrote the meta-narrative of a creationist myth of Indonesia with himself as the grand creator. He wrote it in the spaces of his people’s daily life. He stated that “problems of identity are problems of daily life”; (cited in Leclerc 1993: 52) therefore, such monuments are needed to function as a constant tribute to the sense of unity, national identity and himself. It is important to note that Sukarno’s awareness of “nation building” by covering Jakarta with monuments to symbolize him and the nation’s spectacular triumph and achievement took place during the weakest period of his presidency (Kusno 2000). The Jakarta-centered nationbuilding project was born largely in the period when a series of separatist
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 216
216 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 11.2 National Monument (Monas) in Independent Square.
movements threatened the central government; while in addition, Sukarno’s economic policy gave rise to accelerating inflation and economic stagnation. Thus, for Sukarno, the spectacular spatial representation of Jakarta was significant in reconstructing and restoring his power during the deep legitimization crisis. As Sukarno revived Jakarta’s parks and squares, he did not treat them as civic spaces for the people, but rather for people to meet him and maintain his power as part of his “populist” political strategy. However, for the average person, those parks and squares where Sukarno gave his long rhetorical speeches were kept as memorable spaces, the spaces where the supreme leader fed the spiritual hunger of his people (ironically, people were in physical hunger since the economy was left greatly underdeveloped). By his appearance in these parks and squares where hundreds of thousands of people stood and applauded his revolutionary speech, Sukarno felt that he was “the tongue of the Indonesian people”; he is not only a representative, but actually the people. (Sukarno 1959 cited in Hanna 1961) Thus, these parks and squares can be categorized as a “quasi civic space,” the space that acts as a semblance of civic space on behalf of people, but not for people.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 217
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 217
Suharto’s New Order regime (1965–1998) Suharto, who took power from Sukarno by the bloody coup known as the G30S/PKI2 event in 1965, did not tear down the urban spaces and architecture of the Sukarno’s Old Order or remove its identity. Rather, he brought alive and maintained the old-order-ness as the “other” that was labeled “negative, evil and dangerous” as opposed to his new-order-ness. Paradoxically, among the strongest spatial negations against Sukarno is Monas, the supreme legacy of this first president. Rather than demolishing Monas, Suharto renovated it and put the diorama of the G30S/PKI event in the Monas’ underground museum as a remembrance of the evilness of Sukarno and his communist party (PKI). Suharto also built the Crocodile Hole memorial which is laid out at the so-called “spot” where the six generals and one junior officer were killed by the members of PKI (according to the story by New Order), symbolizing the sacrificial offering which inaugurated the New Order regime. Maintaining horror and threat thus gave the sense of unity for Indonesians, and strengthened Suharto’s legitimizing identity over the archipelago. Suharto ruled the country from 1965 until 1998. During his guidance, Indonesia, particularly Jakarta, went through several phases/types of spatial development as follows: 1970s During the oil-boom period of the 1970s under Suharto, Jakarta’s Governor, Sadikin (1966–1977), set out to change the city’s image. He repaired roads and bridges and built schools and hospitals, but also took cruel and muchcriticized measures to eliminate the “eyesore” of street peddlers and becak (trishaws) from central areas and declared Jakarta as a closed city to immigrants. While cleaning the city from becak can be seen as one of some ways to provide more space for modern public transportation, it can also be read as a way to cleanse Jakarta from any symbol of backwardness and poverty. Operating becak had come to be regarded as a dead-end occupation for males in the same way that prostitution has been viewed for females in Indonesia ( Jellinek 1978: 184; Murai 1982: 139). The “Free from Becak” operation continued to be a main issue in each development phase of Jakarta and became a part of Suharto’s politics of marginalization during the New Order era. One very important project carried out in this oil-boom period was the realization of the first lady’s idea of a Miniature Park of Beautiful Indonesia (TMII). TMII, a cultural park consisting of 26 traditional houses representing 26 provinces of Indonesia, offered a spatial allegory about being Indonesian, which is “unity in diversity,” and at the same time also presented the acceptable limits of Indonesia’s cultural differences. By clearly defining the spatial boundary of Indonesia by providing a miniature of the islands of the archipelago in the middle of this park and which cultures were “in” Indonesian culture, Suharto had marginalized the rest as the “other.”
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 218
218 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia It is essential to remark that Indonesian civil society in the 1970s mostly originated from universities and religious institutions. However, civil society’s attempts to confront the state failed due to effective military and police oppression. The set of ministerial decrees known collectively as “Normalization of Campus Life – Coordinating Body for Student Affairs” (NKK/BKK) was issued in 1978 and formally prohibited students from engaging in political activities on campus and made university administrators answerable to military authorities and to the central government in Jakarta for violations of the restrictions. This marked the death of civil society as an active political force in Indonesia and the disappearance of campusbased civic spaces of all types. 1980s The glorious oil-boom era, however, did not last long. In the mid-1980s the price of oil drastically fell, thus in practice Jakarta stopped physically building the city due to consequential budget shortfalls. Suharto handled this situation by activating his social foundations whose activity basically was to collect donations from Indonesians.3 Suharto also commanded Indonesian cities, particularly Jakarta, to continue developing culturally and socially. Towards this end, Jakarta’s governor, Bang Noli, declared the “socio-religious” development of the city (Bappeda 1998). In line with the socio-religious theme, through one of his foundations, Yayasan Amal Bakti Muslim Pancasila (YAMP), Suharto located hundreds of mosques with homogeneous architecture across the country. Up to 1999, already more than 990 YAMP mosques (Figure 11.3) had been built. This mosque has a Javanese type of roof ( joglo) and standardized dimensions. With the homogenous form and design, this mosque became an institution that disciplined the community who used it. In his YAMP mosque, Suharto co-mingled faith with the state, thus magnifying the state’s identity and transforming it into an intangible spiritual level – the divine – and instilled in people the associated fear of divinity with his rule. By locating this mosque in every community, Suharto also created spaces where people disciplined themselves in cultivating their social lives to be in accordance with the will of dominant power. However, Suharto’s franchise mosque was just one of various instruments of the state’s orchestra to maintain its legitimization over spatial territory. In this period, President Suharto sought to create such a panopticon (Bentham 1843; Foucault 1979; Lim 2002) of surveillance and fear through written, verbal and hidden rules that controlled physical spaces as well as mental spaces. Although many public spaces existed, they functioned to encourage only those activities that symbolically supported the regime. By staging events in these spaces to extol the New Order government as the primary source of Indonesian identity and progress – For example national programs of Monday flag ceremony, Friday morning exercise and
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 219
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 219
Figure 11.3 Suharto’s franchise YAMP mosque.
Sunday morning mass jogging – proto civic spaces were used to manipulate and control the people (Lim 2002). The building of a panopticon of constant surveillance over space was particularly manifested in the national security system that Suharto applied. Among some effective apparatus were: (a) rukun tetangga (RT) system and (b) siskamling (neighborhood security watch); both are based on the Japanese method of getting people to spy on their neighbors; the siskamling system also even empowered irregular militia to maintain public order, also (c) “any guest who stays for more than 1X24 hours should be reported” (Figure 11.4) – a uniform signboard located in all streets and neighborhoods which instructed the citizens to report any strangers in their area (Lim 2002). All of these are part of the national system of panoptic surveillance where the state can see without being seen and expand its control through the fear of its imagined, as well as real presence, which was greater than its actual physical capacity to enforce its rule (Foucault 1979). These activities were used to create an illusion that the state took care of its people by providing secure and safe spaces. 1990s The major downturn of the oil market in 1986 made the growing pressure for change in economic policy inevitable. Global financial deregulation in
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 220
220 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 11.4 The Panoptic signboard.
early 1990s increased the foreign direct investment flow into Indonesia and marked the beginning of a new era in market freedom and privatization in Indonesia. This was followed by strong economic growth, which finally abruptly ended in 1997 with the onset of the Asian crisis. During this period of strong economic growth, Indonesian cities, especially Jakarta, enjoyed a phase of tremendous physical reconstruction and expansion. In the early 1990s skyscrapers mushroomed along the main streets of Jakarta. High-rise condominiums and shopping malls emerged everywhere. The liberalization of land ownership in 1993 was followed by the growth of giant real-estate complexes in the outer area of Jakarta. While Suharto handed the development of Jakarta to the private sector, the development process was run according to Suharto’s orders, rules and aspirations. Thus, while being able to turn Jakarta into the modern city that symbolized prosperity and economic development, Suharto was also able to claim his authority over space.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 221
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 221 The panoptic surveillance of the state and global economic flows made Indonesian cities, particularly Jakarta, during Suharto’s regime lose hope for civic spaces. Space for society was filled with the images and signs of the state and the corporate economy, leaving civil society with no autonomous spaces. Welcome to the Orbapolis, the city where people are owned, protected and controlled by Orba, the New Order.4
Suharto’s late days: the breaking of social contract The crisis that hit Asia in the late 1990s brought Indonesia down to its lowest economic level since the latter days of Sukarno. The maelstrom of political and financial problems hammered the economy and sent foreign investors running for shelter abroad. During this crisis, the state physically stopped building the country. In March 1997 Jakarta’s governor Soedirja declared the motto “Strong in Faith” as a sign of the spiritual – rather than material – building of the city. This was in line with Suharto’s decision to build only one (but an important) grand building, the Bayt Al-Qur’an Museum, which is the biggest Al-Qur’an museum in the world (Bappeda 1998). This was meant to shift people from economic issues to spiritual ones and gain people’s sympathy by creating a sense of national religious pride. However, this kind of manipulation no longer worked. As the economic level hit rock bottom,5 the social contract between the state and society was broken, and the trust of society in the state sharply declined.
Reformasi 1998: the emergence of insurgent space For decades, civil society in Indonesia had been politically dormant. The lack of civic space, tight state information control and the violent practices of the armed forces made civil society movements fail. Press and media freedom was non-existent; thus dialogue between the state and civil society in the media was absent (Lim 2002, 2003). However, the social and economic crisis that hit Indonesia, coupled with the intrusion of alternative information from emerging uncensored media like the Internet (Hill and Sen 2000; Lim 2002, 2003), gave momentum to civil society, and found unity in challenging the authoritarian state under Suharto. One important dimension that contributed to the rise of the civil society movement during this crisis was the emergence of the, Internet café, or warnet (Figure 11.5), as a new civic space. Cyber café chains were accessible by the majority of Indonesian Internet users. Hundreds of warnet in major cities of Indonesia provided spaces for Indonesians, especially students, to gain access to various controversial information (mostly anti-Suharto) that was not available from mainstream media (Lim 2002, 2003). On top of that, warnet also had become a space for political dialogue among Internet users as well as activists. Warnet also became the civic space for activists to coordinate and mobilize their movements.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 222
222 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 11.5 Warnet.
The intensification of information intrusion, dialogues among activists and people, and the decline of the economic situation provided a venue for civil society to help Indonesian city spaces into spaces of resistance, particularly in Jakarta. The accumulation of collective resistance reached its peak in May 1998. Every day, from students to lecturers, from whitecollars to becak drivers, from mothers to teenagers, all filled the streets, squares and parks to create insurgent spaces, where “civil society rises up to confront the state” (Douglass et al. 2002: 354). The state’s spaces were radically transformed to be the people’s spaces. The major proto civic spaces that symbolically and historically represented the central power of state within the city of Jakarta, such as the Hotel Indonesia (HI) roundabout (Figure 11.6), Monas square and the Parliament House (Figure 11.7), turned into the major insurgent spaces for toppling the Suharto regime.
Transient civic spaces in “demopolis” Since political reform struggles in the late 1990s, Jakarta has become a “demopolis” – literally a “demos’ polis” – a city ruled by people, or a democratic city; and a demo-polis, a city always teeming with demo-nstrations. Street demonstrations were held every day and became something of a routine.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 223
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 223
Figure 11.6 Hotel Indonesia (HI) roundabout in Thamrin-Sudirman Jakarta intersection was filled up by thousands of protestors, May 1998.
Figure 11.7 The Jakarta Parliament House swarmed by hundreds of thousands of student protestors, May 1998.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 224
224 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Before 1998, by constructing Suharto as the enemy, various elements of civil society found a sense of unity; yet they came from different ideologies with different vested interests. While any difference within groups is seen as a problem for collective identity formation, recognizing an external difference can assist in highlighting external similarity, thereby strengthening group cohesiveness and the ability to act in a unified manner. However, this kind of bond is weak and vulnerable. The downfall of Suharto eliminated the bond between groups and differences among them subsequently emerged and escalated. At the same time, the civic spaces created before and in 1998, were revealed as having been ephemeral: the civic-ness created in these spaces was momentary and transient. As the struggles between the state, civil society and corporate economy persist, a new phase of conflict over control of transient civic spaces of the city is creating a new crisis. The uncivil society and the state appear to dominate those spaces, turning them into either propaganda spaces or spaces of conflict and intolerance within civil society.
Spaces of conflict and intolerance Although civic spaces were created for political revolution to take place, they did not continue to be spaces for civil society to continue struggling for democratic reform after the fall of Suharto. While the state is weak, the frontline of the 1998 political reform, the student movement, continuously confronts the state without clear visions and is adding to the chaos. At this juncture, individual interests take priority over the political agenda of civil society while communal interests pit elements of civil society against each other over issues of race and religion, undermining the “civil” attributes of society (Lim 2002). In this situation, another aspect of the contemporary network society – communal resistance – which opposes not just the state, but also other segments in civil society that do not share the same beliefs can emerge to step in to create new civic spaces. The story of Laskar Jihad (LJ, Jihad Troopers) is one extreme example. LJ was among the most radical Islamic groups in Indonesia, formed in 2000 as a reaction to the Christian–Islam conflicts in the Moluccas. This group had various activities to disseminate its ideology as well as recruit members, raise funds and gain popularity. This group used to put its volunteers at traffic lights to collect donations, held giant meetings in public places and rallied to call for jihad against presumed enemies of Islam. In the LJ case, civic spaces were transformed to be spaces for communal violence (Lim 2002).
State’s propaganda spaces Following Suharto’s downfall, the new, semi-democratic state lacked a clear political agenda or strategy and placed society in a chaotic socio-
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 225
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 225
Figure 11.8 The newly renovated HI roundabout, Jakarta, January 2003.
political-economic situation without consistent state policy or direction. This in turn resulted in more demonstrations. In Jakarta, people keep thronging the civic spaces to demand a better situation for Indonesia. The state is aware of the existence of civic spaces and the importance of these spaces in social mobilization. At this stage, the state feels threatened and directly attempts to re-legitimize its identity by re-capturing these spaces. Using “renovation” as a pretext, the state, under local authority, governor Sutiyoso, turned the main insurgent spaces of the 1998 political reform – Monas Square and HI roundabout – into what Flusty terms “interdictory spaces,” spaces that “intercept and repel or filter would-be users” (1994: 16). The renovation project of the HI roundabout in 2001–02 changed the surface around the fountain from a circular walking surface into a slanted, constantly wet surface splashed by a powerful fountain (Figure 11.8), rendering this major demonstration area both physically and ideologically “slippery” – a space that “cannot be reached, due to contorted, protracted or missing paths of approach” (Flusty 1994: 17). Using the term “disciplining public space,” the governor of Jakarta gated Monas Square with high fences and put security guards at each of its two major entrances (Figure 11.9). By renovating this square, the state did not simply make this public space cleaner and more orderly, but also directed its redesign against its use for legitimate protests.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 226
226 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 11.9 The fenced Monas Square, Jakarta, January 2003.
Everyday form of resistance: from anti-war to “drilling” dance Despite the use of spaces for communal violence and state propaganda, the spaces that were opened by the political reform in 1998 can never be shut down, though ephemeral in terms of engagement in the public sphere, they continue to be spaces for the people. People have gained knowledge that they own these spaces and have rights to use them to show resistance. People have become addicted to demonstrations. People just join any protest that taps into their identities. Conversely, these spaces invite people to join in creating new identities. When the government under President Megawati raised the price of oil, telecommunications and electricity tariffs, students, becak drivers, laborers and other society interest groups gathered in public spaces and streets to protest. The society knows that, through mass protest, people could gain power and influence state policy. When the US attacked Iraq, some groups initiated the peace movement against the war. Monas Square and HI roundabout, again, became the civic spaces where hundreds of thousands of people expressed their disagreement toward US policy. On 30 March 2003, hundreds of thousands of people
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 227
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 227 clothed in white joined the “Million Person Protest for Peace,” a protest for peace against the Iraq attack, by walking from HI roundabout to Monas Square and ending at the US embassy. This was the biggest anti-war mass demonstration in Indonesia. A unique mass protest happened in May 2003 when Indonesia’s Islamic clerics and organizations banned Inul Daratista, a singer, from performing because her gyrating hip movement, which Indonesians call “drilling,” is considered to be pornographic and forbidden by Islam. Inul is a young woman who has taken dangdut, a unique cross-cultural blend of Arabic, Indian and Malay music – once denigrated as the music of the lower classes – to the center stage of national entertainment. By singing songs primarily identified with the “little people,” she captured Indonesians’ imagination, making her an instant icon of the people and a symbol of freedom. When she was banned, many social groups stood up to defend her and protested against those clerics and organizations (Suryakusuma 2003). On 3 May 2003, with mobilization mainly taking place via the Internet and cellular phones, one feminist group called upon hundreds of people to gather at the main roundabout of Jakarta – the HI roundabout – to support Inul. A number of Indonesian women even performed a three-minute “drilling” dance during this demonstration (Waspada 2003). Based on these examples, it is realized that the civil society and society are plural and diverse. The city is the melting pot of diverse elements that provides the material for the otherness of visibly different identity groups. While these material manifestations of otherness can enrich the city’s social and cultural wealth, unfortunately, some of these diverse groups are each drawn into themselves, nursing their anger against the others. In this regard, nevertheless, as Sennett (1970: 162) argues, by bringing them together in the forums of expression in civic spaces, the conflicts expressed will be increased but the possibility of an eventual explosion of violence will be decreased. Echoing Sennett’s attention to disorder and conflict in space, Lefebvre suggests that the possibility of violent dispute may well be the chief democratic virtue of city life. He argues that liberty engenders contradictions which are also spatial contradictions; “urban conditions, either despite of on by virtue of violence, still, tend to uphold at least a measure of democracy” (1991: 139). Therefore, in the chaotic demopolis of Jakarta, the awakening of civic spaces gives a sign of hope that democracy will rise; yet, there still is a long way to go. The actors in the city, especially the state and civil society, should work together in creating more civic spaces, as well as keeping existing civic spaces tolerant, safe and inclusive.
Conclusion Using the chronological narratives of the use of spaces in Indonesian cities, particularly Jakarta, this paper attempts to recognize that “space is fundamental in any exercise of power” (Foucault 1984: 252). Since power is
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 228
228 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia integral to historical processes, space necessarily becomes a factor of analysis. In particular, each of the spaces examined in this paper shows that concepts of space and place are intimately bound up with the constitution of social identities and action. The histories attaching to the spaces concerned suggest that social identities are frequently forged in conflicts over the shaping, boundaries, ownership and meaning of places. While these conflicts are often about the defense or assertion of particular group identities, they also act to bring into view the naturalized and conventionally invisible identities of those with power and authority. This paper also suggests that successive shifts from the pre-modern approach to the modern and ultimately to the postmodern, should not be conceived as just aesthetic or epistemological but also as material, sociopolitical and historical. While the principal insight of the postmodernist “spatial turn” remains of central importance to urban studies, especially to urban historians, history itself is a set of social processes that require spatial as well as temporal analysis; the issues of the ownership and meanings of space are deeply embedded in historical conflicts and processes. In a more radical sense, writing the histories of people require integration with histories of places. This paper, using the case of civic spaces in Indonesia, provides detailed instances of the ways in which space and place have been bound up with the formation of identities and historical conflicts and struggles over power. It is important to remark that in this paper, the main spaces that emerge and re-emerge in each slice of time are repeated, e.g. Monas Square and HI roundabout. While the paper does not try to comprehensively historicize these two spaces, by locating the spaces of Jakarta city in the development of politics, the creation and transformations of these spaces are revealed as historical moments. At the same time, by looking at these spaces in analyzing the identity of politics of Indonesian regimes over time, this paper also spatializes history. In light of the dangers that seemingly appear on the horizon for Indonesia, a question arises concerning whether the idea of civil society and civic space – however effective it was in helping to bring down Suharto’s authoritarian regime – will turn out to be in the building of democracy. This paper argues that it will not turn out to be useless. Rather, the concept of civil society and civic space will retain its validity, both as an instrument of analysis and as a program of practical action. Nevertheless, its internal content has changed. The civil society of 1998 was a projection of a vision into the future that rested upon an extraordinary emotional unity. The civil society of more than ten years later cannot and should not base itself on emotions, but rather on the building of carefully nurtured institutions of tolerance, upon the practical realization of ethical and humanist values, and on the inclusion of as many as possible numbers of people in public life. The main task now is constructing democratic mechanisms of stability, such as constitutional checks and balances, good
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 229
Transient civic spaces in Jakarta demopolis 229 governance, civic education in the spirit of respect for law and the encouragement of citizen activism. In the case of Indonesia, the weak state has, as a target of protest, merit in terms of instituting and developing non-corrupt administrative democratic institutions, but it does not hold the level of hegemonic power anymore as it did under Suharto. The intruding yet obscure power of growing dominance actually comes from the corporate economy, which just flows into all spaces through global and local channels without any significant resistance (other than through its perceived association with America). In dealing with the power of the expanding corporate economy, civil society should not keep acting in knee-jerk opposition to the democratic state, but needs to find ways to cooperate with it by subordinating the economy to social needs rather than the reverse (Polanyi 1944). It no longer has to be a kind of “parallel polis” but can simply be part of the polis constituted as a public sphere with direct as well as indirect citizen participation. Insurgent spaces will always have their importance in political change, but what is equally needed is for the city to provide and secure for all the people as many authentic and enduring civic spaces as possible. These may be embodied in parks, plazas, sidewalks and other spaces as well as cyberspace. In this regard, civic space should be the space of peace for both state and civil society to exercise their relationship and to interact with daily mutual understanding. In the end, in the light of hope for democracy, a robust civil society is needed to offer the best prospects for overcoming the divergence of state and society and bringing citizens into active engagement in public life to establish an idealistic civic space, a public sphere. Only under such conditions can democracy be made secure and lasting.
Notes 1 For further details about “insurgent space,” see Douglass et al. 2002. 2 This term was created by Suharto. It is an abbreviation of Gerakan 30 September/ Partai Komunis Indonesia. It can be translated as “30 September Movement/ Indonesian Communist Party.” 3 According to the examination of the State Court in 2000, from October 1985 to August 1999 Suharto had been allocating a large amount of money from these social foundations to some companies owned by his children and cronies (Gatra 2000). 4 Abbreviation of Orde Baru (Indonesian), translated as “New Order,” the name of Suharto’s regime. 5 In June 1998, the number of people living under the poverty line reached 79.4 million, or 39.1 percent of the total population. This was nearly the same as Indonesia’s condition in 1976 (BPS 1998).
References Anderson, B. (1991) Imagined Communities: Reflections on the Origin and Spread of Nationalism, London: Verso. Bappeda (1998) Jakarta Membangun, DKI Jakarta: Bappeda.
9780415397896_4_011.qxd 07/09/2007 08:57 Page 230
230 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Bentham, Jeremy (1843) “Panopticon”, in J. Bouwring (ed.) The Works of Jeremy Bentham, Volume IV, Edinburgh: William Tait. BPS (1998) Statistik Kesejahteraan Rakyat 1997, Jakarta: BPS. Castells, M. (1997) The Power of Identity, The Information Age: Economy, Society, and Culture, Oxford: Blackwell. Douglass, M., Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Civic Spaces, Globalization, and Pacific Asian Cities”, International Development and Planning Review, 24(4): 345–62. Elden, S. (2001) Mapping the Present: Heidegger, Foucault and the Project of a Spatial History, London: Continuum. Flusty, S. (1994) Building Paranoia: The Proliferation of Interdictory Space and The Erosion of Spatial Justice, Los Angeles, CA: LA Forum for Architecture and Urban Design. Foucault, M. (1979) Discipline and Punish: The Birth of the Prison, New York: Vintage Books. Foucault, M. (1984) Foucault Reader, P. Rabinow (ed.), New York: Pantheon. Gatra (2000) “Dakwaan Suharto: Jerat Panglima Besar”, 41/VI, 26 August. Hanna, W. (1961) Bung Karno’s Indonesia, New York: American Universities Field Staff Inc. Harvey, D. (2001) Space of Capital, New York: Routledge. Hill, D. and Sen, K. (2000) Media, Culture, and Politics in Indonesia, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hindley, D. (1964) The Communist Party of Indonesia, 1951–1963, Berkeley, CA: University of California Press. Jameson, F. (1991) Postmodernism: The Cultural Logic of Late Capitalism, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Jellinek, L. (1978) “Circular Migration and Pondok Dwelling System”, in P.J. Rimmer, D.W. Drakakis-Smith and T.G. McGee (eds.) Food, Shelter and Transport in Southeast Asia and the Pacific, Department of Human Geography, Australian National University. Kusno, A. (2000) Behind the Postcolonial: Architecture, Urban Space and Political Cultures in Indonesia, London: Routledge. Leclerc, J. (1993) “Mirror and the Lighthouse: A Search for Meaning in the Monuments and Great Works of Sukarno’s Jakarta, 1960–1966”, in P. Nas (ed.) Urban Symbolism, Leiden: E.J. Brill. Lederach, J.P. (1997) Building Peace: Sustainable Reconciliation in Divided Societies, Washington, DC: United States Institute of Peace. Lefebvre, H. (1991) The Production of Space, London: Basil Blackwell. Lim, M. (2002) “Cyber-civic Space: From Panopticon to Pandemonium?” International Development and Planning Review, 24(4): 383–400. Lim, M. (2003) “The Internet, Social Network, and Reform in Indonesia”, in N. Couldry and D. Miller (eds) Contesting Media Power: Towards a Global Comparative Perspective, Oxford: Rowman and Littlefield. Murai, Y. (1982) A View from Ordinary People, Tokyo: Jijitsushin-sha. Polanyi, K. (1944) The Great Transformation, Boston, MA: Beacon Press. Sennett, R. (1970) The Uses of Disorder, New York: Vintage. Suryakusuma, J. (2003) “A Singer’s Gyrating Rattles Indonesia”, International Herald Tribune, 14 May. Waspada (2003) “Aksi Tiga Menit Dukung Inul”, 2 May.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 231
12 Creating new civic realms in a global city-state1 Limin Hee
The use of the term “civic spaces” defines those spaces in which “people of different origins and walks of life can co-mingle without overt control by government, commercial or other private interests, or de-facto dominance by one group over another” (Douglass et al. 2001). The prior assumption to this definition is that a thriving society needs inclusive spaces in which to flourish, and that such spaces are sine qua non for the emergence of better governance, livability and a healthy economy (ibid). Such spaces are, by this definition, not the same as, but has as its subset public space, as the latter (by definition of public) precludes forms of civic space which may exist in privately owned or privately managed spaces such as those of commercial developments, universities, religious institutions, private housing and such. In this paper, my definition of “civic spaces” would also encompass those spaces which may be perceived as private, such as those developed by private interests for purposes of commercial activities. As long as such spaces enable different groups of public to co-exist and potentially allow differences to be understood, they constitute the civic spaces included in this discussion. According to Lofland’s (1998: 51) definition of public realm, which I find similar to the notion of civic spaces adopted in this discussion: Public realms are social rather than physical environments; that is, they are not geographically rooted . . . a space – even a legally public space – dominated by private or intimate relationships constitutes a private realm; a space . . . in which neighborly or work connections are in the majority is a parochial realm; only in spaces – legally public or otherwise – where strangers and/or categorically known others have the relational edge does the public realm exist. The importance of creating these spaces in the city in the context of globalization cannot be overemphasized as they constitute sites of the social construction of identity formation and place-making – re-centering the city not so much as nodes of spatial distribution of power within the new world economy, but themselves as the conduits enabling such a framework.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 232
232 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Only the existence of public spaces and facilities that are accessible, safe, versatile and possessing aesthetic quality and a symbolic import – i.e. culturally significant – creates centrality. Because urban centrality in the sense of a condensation of the city, is not so much the node for bringing together the flows of metropolitan space as the place for meetings and identities, the expressions of civic sense and the substrata of the city’s marketing and patriotism. (Borja and Castells 1997: 161) However, viewing urban resistance of localities to the homogenizing trends of global forces is problematic in that one is cast in opposition to the other, presupposing a binary structure of dominance and resistance. It is necessary to redefine such an opposing relation of forces, as both the global and local are not singular, totalizing entities, but are constituted by historically contingent agencies shaped variously by political, economic and social networks which operate at different “scales of social practice” (Smith 2001: 106). If we accept this premise, then the false separation of the global and local is erased, to re-emerge as articulations of meanings and practices which intersect at the scale of the city to create particularized dynamics of place at particularized historical moments.2 As such, civic spaces within the city take on multiplicities of identities as they are the result of specific interactions and articulations of contemporary “social relations, social processes, experiences, understandings”3 that come together in time. As such, civic spaces within a city like Singapore do not need to conform to a coherent identity but are contingent with the everyday practices of global and local scales, the intersection of these being at the scale of the city, in which these spaces are created. Our discussion of civic spaces in Singapore is thus situated in this shifting and dynamic context. Restoring identities to local culture, the revival of collective memories and the re-enchantment of place are often the thrust of urban restructuring in the building of the new symbolic cultures of cities. In Singapore, the development of the city center has come full circle: while in the 1950s and 1960s, efforts were concentrated on hollowing out the city for its redevelopment as the economic engine of the fledgling city-state, planners have now realized the importance of bringing back vibrant places in the city. The new centrality of cities, as prophesized by scholars of global cities (Borja and Castells 1997; Sassen 1998), need to be pre-empted by making cities more civic, not less, along with the development of thickly laid networks of mobility. The new importance accorded to civic spaces and urban aesthetics again foregrounds the meaning of cities as the sites of meeting and the creation of civic sense and identity, as well as in imaging the new centrality of cities, i.e. for its symbolic value in the promotion and expression of citizenship. Here, I examine four different instances of such dynamic processes at work, each foregrounding some aspect of the new significance of civic spaces, and argue that the forces of globalization can
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 233
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
233
have a positive effect on city spaces if these are, in the broadest sense of the word, consciously “designed,” to remain relevant as local spaces and as inclusive environments. Thus, global flows are cast discursively as potential enablers of civic identity, and civic spaces as sites which can contribute positively to the discourse on globalization.
Colonial, post-colonial and global space – the Padang When Sir Stamford Raffles implemented the Town Plan of Singapore in 1822,4 it was modeled to facilitate administration and maximize mercantile interest, as well as to ensure public order and to cater for the accommodation of the principal races in separate quarters. Central to the plan was a public open space on the north bank of the Singapore River around which stood the colonial edifices of government offices, church and court house. These symbols of British governance were flanked on the east by the expansive European Town. Much of the plan for public spaces in the central area focused on the parks and open green spaces, such as the Padang,5 Fort Canning Hill and Pearl’s Hill, as well as the Esplanade, a waterfront promenade. In effect, the plan specified the spatial configuration of the town’s urban development and fields of influence of the various repositories of power and governance. The public spaces served also to provide the foreground for the symbols of colonial order and governance – visible signs of Raffles’ vision for a new trading settlement that would fulfill the promise of being the “emporium and pride of the East” and “a place of considerable magnitude and importance”(Buckley 1984 [1867]). At its inception, the Padang as a space already embodied the iconography of the theater of power, the symbolic space of the seat of government, and its physical manifestation of dominance. It is no wonder that a statue of Raffles himself was erected in the space in 1887,6 seemingly to contemplate on the visible expanse of the British Empire. The space continued to retain its symbolic value as the venue for formal visitations by British dignitaries, including the Prince of Wales, and as a ceremonial space for special occasions like the Queen’s birthday. At the same time, it was the forecourt of the Cricket Club, the veritable playground of the colonists in their leisure pursuit – of a pastime totally inaccessible to the local population. Yet, the beginnings of a power contestation were evident – the Padang was also used by rich local merchants in a show of extravagance in throwing huge banquets for friends and associates. The symbolic value of the Padang was not lost to those with the desire to spectacularize wealth or power. Significantly, the Padang was the symbolic venue of the surrender of the Japanese in 19457 – with an elaborate victory ceremony and celebratory march-past, culminating in the public punishment of the Japanese prisonersof-war who were made to toil in hard work, just as they had subjected the locals to during the Occupation. The “toil,” as a public spectacle in the
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 234
234 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 12.1 Open spaces in the Raffles Plan.
Padang, was totally symbolic, watched by many who had suffered during the war, as the POWs were made to dig trenches on the Padang which served no real municipal purpose. Following soon after, the Padang was once again the venue of the victory rally of the first elected legislative council of the new self-governing nation in 1959 and the site of numerous political rallies of the dominant political party – the People’s Action Party (PAP). Singapore was a highly volatile place in its early stages of self-rule, as it was faced with a housing shortage, unemployment and racial tension. The new government also had to face a rising Communist faction which was active in the Malayan countryside. The 1950s were, otherwise, an interesting era. The Padang became a “people’s place” and a “site of representation” – in the sense that it became the venue of symbolic confrontation between the masses and the government, as in the case of the Nantah8 students’ peace rally and the march of banned societal groups. At the same time, the space was “appropriated” socially, with roadside stalls accessible to the masses such that the Padang functioned not just as a symbolic venue, but also as a social venue – a lived space – in the city. The political climate
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 235
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
235
Figure 12.2 View of the contemporary Padang, and part view of Suntec City on left.
changed significantly with the stabilization of the economy and by the 1980s, the Padang served a completely different role once again. The annual National Day Parade, which was held at the Padang, served to galvanize Singaporeans in the celebration of nationhood through stunning celebrations that took place in real space, and at the same time, broadcast live nationwide – collapsing time and space in a shared visual spectacle that firmly established the Padang as the quintessential civic space of the city-state. Through the technology of live broadcasting, the Padang was rooted in the minds of people as the symbolic space of collective nationhood. The location of the Padang in the area identified by the Urban Redevelopment Authority (URA) as the Civic and Cultural District in 1988 gave the space its new role as a site for culture. Events like “Bubble Dance,” “New York Philharmonic Concert” and “Merlion Week Concert,” among others, took pride of place on the Padang. High profile recreational events like the 1985 Davis Cup tennis finals were broadcast to the world, and with the City Hall, Supreme Court and towers of the Central Business District as its backdrop, they announced to the world that Singapore had arrived in the global arena. It is not surprising that the Padang is featured as the “poster space” of the URA’s new concept plan 2001, with its banner of “Towards a Thriving World-class City of the 21st Century” against the backdrop of both historical buildings and skyscrapers, creating just the right mix of history, identity and modernity in a single package.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 236
236 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia In many post-colonial cities, colonial structures are often appropriated for new uses and re-invented with new meanings. The colonial buildings around the Padang were perhaps seen as being the most neutral repositories of governance in the context of an ethnically diverse population. The neo-classical City Hall and the Supreme Court formed the backdrop for national celebrations and pageantry at the Padang. In fact, many Singaporeans felt that colonial buildings and spaces merit their place in the cityscape due to their fine architectural qualities, without associating them with any negative connotations of a colonial past ( Yeoh and Kong 1995). Hence, for the government, political legitimacy did not come with the wholesale removal of the colonial legacy, but that buildings and the built environments inherited from the colonial era could be divested of association with imperial glory and re-invented with new significance. An earlier survey (Huang, Teo and Heng 1995) had found that the average Singaporean expressed a deep-rooted attachment to the architectural heritage of the district and that the development of the area had added to the citizen’s pride regarding the district – embodying the transformation of Singapore from colonial city to global city – representing shared historical experiences culminating in nationhood and economic prosperity. The study also found that there was a need to share the power of defining landscapes and the need to recognize and capture the actual meanings and values that people invested in places. As an established civic space, the Padang no longer sees as many spectacles as it had in history – the National Day celebrations have moved to the National Stadium as the location had grown too small for the masses who clamor for a seat at the event. There is a more relaxed ambience here, perhaps in part due to the very established position of the ruling party9 – there is no need for continued public spectacle and show of power as the space itself has already embodied the successes of the hegemonic state. Instead, we find the occasional school rugby match on the green or quaint cricket games of the still functioning Singapore Cricket Club – perhaps now serving transnational cricket players. There is renewed interest in the “soft architecture” of the city – “its feel and atmosphere” and its “sense of community and citizenship” and not simply the creation of spectacle and imagery or the commodification of cultural form. New experiences of the city are created through the incorporation of new functions in civic spaces, and the example of the Padang has shown how such a space has flowed through different periods of history and yet maintained its local relevance while now becoming part of the global spectacle in the “sale” of places.
Suntec City: private provision of social infrastructure? Traditional definitions of the civic realm would exclude private commercial buildings, developed with private funds and catered to commercial rather
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 237
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
237
than institutional or community interests. However, I would like to include the Suntec City development as a case in point that these delineations of public vs. private interests do not hold, when the civic realm is defined through programing and experiential parameters rather than purely as physical spaces. The Suntec City Complex in Singapore is located on reclaimed land at Marina Center, next to the Civic and Cultural District. One of the first events that was hosted by its convention facilities was the inaugural meeting of the World Trade Organization (WTO) in 1996. This was the event that hallmarked Singapore as a “world-class” convention city, a status that has now been firmly established within the global flow of conventions and the communities of convention-goers. As testimony to the importance of stellar convention facilities in boosting and in promoting the global-status of cities, Singapore’s elder statesman, Minister Mentor Lee Kuan Yew himself was responsible in the actualizing of the project. In 1984, he had invited a select group of top Hong Kong businessmen and professionals to Singapore with a view to garnering their long-term investment in Singapore to revive the then sluggish economy.10 Arising from this, the Suntec City Consortium was formed in 1988 to develop Suntec City, then the largest single commercial project undertaken by the private sector – in the league of urban mega-projects. The development, an integrated business, entertainment and convention destination, wired-up with advanced infrastructure for TV, Cablevision, Teletext and ISDN for video conferencing cost S$1.8 billion. It comprises a total gross floor area of 490,000 square meters of offices, convention space, auditoria, shopping mall and atria spaces – with convention spaces taking up 110,000 square meters. The master plan for the development was the collaboration of American architects I.M. Pei and Partners and Tsao and McKown of New York, while Tsao and McKown, as design architects, worked closely with local architects, DP Architects, Singapore, on working drawings and authority approvals. While Suntec City, as an urban mega-project created by members of the global “epistemic communities,”11 seemed to have the makings of yet another self-contained nexus in the global flow of information, people and events – a kind of global infrastructure which may have little to do with its urban and civic context, the development has made some laudable efforts to contribute to the city in some unexpected ways. It is a case study of perhaps how collective spaces, such as shopping complexes, can develop into a new public domain through cultural programing. Nested at the center of the development is a large fountain that has been proclaimed to be the largest in the world. With time and through programs arranged through community and arts groups, the fountain plaza has become a place in the city which many Singaporeans identify with. In fact, an urban legend hinged on Chinese feng shui beliefs has been created around this feature: touching the water in the fountain located strategically within an
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 238
238 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia open-palm framed by the five towers and convention hall, would help one accumulate wealth. Everyday, hordes of locals and tourists alike perform the strange ritual of circling the fountain and getting their hands wet – there is even a live webcast of the fountain in action on the Internet.12 Arts groups have also gravitated towards the development, and have on occasions staged “live” performances at the fountain, which are accessible and free for all.13 In playing its role to nurture the emerging arts culture in the city, Suntec has hosted, at no charge, installations of works of young artists on its premises. The lobby space of the Suntec Mall has also been offered for use at no charge by educational institutes and community groups to stage exhibitions. Programs held at the Suntec, such as competitions and day-long events, have also been extended to the larger community of schools and tertiary institutions in Singapore. Although one may criticize the mall at Suntec as yet another addition to the increasing numbers of sites of consumption in the city, it has become a favorite haunt of Singapore’s “heartlanders,”14 especially with the opening of Carrefour, an international hyper-mart chain. While the convention center hosts highprofile international events, populist exhibitions like international car shows are big draws for the local population, bringing them back into the city, which has become increasingly alienated due to the rise of suburban centers. The complex is, at the same time, the high-profile workplace of producer sectors and the burgeoning IT industry15 as it provides work for thousands of lower skilled workers in the service industry. In other words, Suntec City has not just become another space in the city situated within the global space of flows – it has somehow situated itself within the social life of the city and provided new experiences for those who may not have grown up in the city16 to appreciate the collective memories offered by the city in the past. The development has, through its role as a private provider of social infrastructure in the city, been able to partake of the new evolving civic culture in the city, and thus locate itself in the space of places as a relevant part of the lives of the average Singaporean. A case in point would be that the Millennium 2000 celebrations in Singapore were staged at new and perceivably “hip” spaces in the city, such as Suntec City and Orchard Road, and not in the formal and symbolic spaces significant in the past – such as the Padang17 and City Hall. The simultaneous “live” telecast of the Millennium event around the world embodied at once the spectacle of a virtual global space along with all other such spaces in the world, and yet remained a locally significant space of shared experiences at the same time. The case illustrates an example of the inclusion of private for-profit enterprise within the realm of civil society, in the voluntary provision of social goods (Beito et al. 2002) through the production of a new kind of civic space in the city. The dynamics of such a production of civic space has been one which has benefited both private interests as well as those of the public; the former by generating profits
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 239
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
239
from increased customer traffic and building goodwill; the latter with its new social engagement with the city.
Orchard road – space for consumption or place of representation? Orchard Road’s history is rooted in its colonial past from 150 years ago, an avenue servicing the plantation estates of British colonists, in an area prone to flooding and crop diseases, due to the propensity for cultivating monocultured cash crops. While the area became increasingly an abode for elite colonial residences in the late nineteenth and early twentieth century, the avenue, being located along a canal and therefore not desirable for the development of residences, became a commercial strip. The 1980s and 1990s saw the further development of Orchard Road as a shopping district, boosted by the arrival of regional visitors hot on the heels of waves of cash-rich Japanese tourists and well-heeled Europeans. Orchard Road has since grown incrementally to become the most fashionable shopping street in Singapore today. The attraction for many is not budget-priced goods, which are available widely in other parts of Asia, but the large range of fashion labels available; the sheer floor area of retail promised by the lining up of malls one after another, and perhaps the pleasant shopping environment along the tree-lined tropical boulevard. Orchard Road, in other words, has developed somewhat along the lines of the homogenizing retail environments that are replicated in so many shopping districts around the world, replete with outdoor cafes and the ubiquitous golden arch. However, the area is hardly the dull “consumption-scape” that it is made out to be – if we adopt Appadurai’s ethnoscape18 (Appadurai 1990) as the operative field. The ethnoscape of Orchard Road consists of the unstable landscape of elite expatriate workers of the professional or managerial class who reside in prime residences on and around Orchard Road, tourists from around the world, and since the 1980s – a growing presence of Filipina domestic workers who appropriate both the indoor and outdoor spaces at Lucky Plaza19 as well as the prominent open space immediately opposite the complex, on weekends. This menagerie of global culture is inevitably inserted into the space of consumption along with the well-heeled locals who can be found here. While there had been no complaints regarding the presence of other groups, the growing presence of “guest workers” in the form of off-duty domestic maids on weekends incurred the ire of the Management of Lucky Plaza, such that they put up signs and stationed security guards to keep Filipina maids off the premises. This, however, had the unexpected result of protests being raised by some of the building’s tenants: For the past four Sundays, signs have been popping up in Lucky Plaza, telling people not to loiter in the shopping center. But the management
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 240
240 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 12.3 Orchard Road “consumption-scape”.
committee’s “public relations” effort and the attempts by its security officers to clear the passages of people are making some shop-owners see red. They complain that security officers are chasing away their biggest group of customers on Sundays – the Filipinos. In a circular to shop-owners dated March 24, the management committee said that certain retailers had not been able to carry on their businesses as usual on Sundays, because “the center is packed with jostling crowds, many of whom are seen loitering around or meeting friends.” “Loud chit-chat among them also affected business transactions, with shop fronts and doorways blocked by throngs of loiterers,” it added. For proper housekeeping and maintenance, it said, the security officers have been told to prevent obstruction to entrances. It said that since crowd control began on March 1, the situation on weekends has “improved greatly.” Not so, said Mr Dave Foo, who owns several shops, including a remittance agency, there. “I don’t understand why they are driving away our best customers. Sunday is the only day where the maids are allowed to come out and the locals don’t come on that day, so why do they have to set up such
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 241
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
241
a policy?” he said. “If the center really wants to clean up its image, it should tackle the problem of touting and over-pricing. Driving away potential customers is not a solution.” (The Straits Times 30 Mar 1998) In a letter to the Forum in The Straits Times, a reader notes the ambivalence of the Singaporean to the Sunday enclave phenomenon: Filipino maids? They moved their staging post several times in Orchard Road long before it became a habit for foreign workers to seek companionship among their own kind on their day off. If policies on foreign labor change, it is not improbable that Sunday enclaves will emerge over time for Myanmar or Indonesian workers. Not ghettoes – by design, these [spaces] can never establish themselves in Singapore – just gathering places. Can one assume from the occasional [very occasional] release of bile in letters to newspapers or in Feedback Unit sessions that Singaporeans are largely tolerant about these intrusions in their pristine midst, or at least indifferent? It is hazardous to generalize about any given situation. I have mentioned in past commentaries that the lack of instant but professionally-done polls here on issues of public interest makes it necessary for opinion makers to rely on their instincts to an unreasonable degree when trying to divine specific trends. We accept the risk that we may stand revealed in all our folly. On the matter of foreign workers, my gut feel is that the unsympathetic view taken by a Straits Times reader (Chong Ryh Huei, ST July 19) is indicative of a wider disaffection towards menial workers from around the region. (The Straits Times 27 July 1997) From these anecdotal accounts (for the lack of proper polls), it seems that property owners and some strata of the local population are certainly not in favor of the visible and social appropriation of the space on Orchard Road by these workers from the lower circuits of the transnational economy. However, the phenomena spells out the powerful need for social space and social representation by a group that has been largely marginalized by the middle-class population who, being the employers of these workers,20 have in fact been responsible in bringing these workers into the service economy. These Filipinas, in many ways form the “invisible economy” of the city-state, the substrate for enabling and liberating many women from the home to join the workforce as active contributors to the Singapore economy. Gupta and Ferguson’s (1997) conceptualization of emergent transnational social relations and identity formation is helpful in providing a framework for understanding the case of Orchard Road. By blurring boundaries, the processes of globalization have initialized new social constructions of imagined spaces, in which the processes of new identity formation have
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 242
Figure 12.4 Filipino workers outside Lucky Plaza on Sunday.
Figure 12.5 Filipino workers in the almost hidden pedestrian alley between the large complexes of Wisma Atria and Ngee Ann City.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 243
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
243
Figure 12.6 Filipino workers in the green space behind Orchard MRT Station.
created new inclusions and exclusions – entailing the creation of otherness through the cultural redefining of outside. In trying to establish a social space for themselves, the Filipinas have, by virtue of their association with Lucky Plaza, chosen Orchard Road, the ultimate showcase of consumptionscape in Singapore, as their nesting area. The alternate indignation, ambivalence or sympathetic support of the local population for these temporary enclaves reflect somewhat the state of civic society in Singapore, and it is phenomena of this nature that such aspects of society can surface. When the owners of Lucky Plaza had prohibited the Filipina workers from “hanging out” at the premises, the social space of these workers shifted to and indeed colonized new areas – witness the groups that loiter in the hidden alleyway leading from Wisma Atria to Orchard Boulevard and also in the open green spaces round the back of the Orchard MRT Station. These new colonized realms of the Filipino community have not appeared in the commercialized public spaces on Orchard Road, but instead developed within the slips and cracks of homogenized and programed spaces. What have been evidenced are perhaps the unmooring of identities of these marginalized workers from their home localities and their consequent making of new claims on the city, where their networks and employment opportunities have transplanted them (Sassen 1998: xxxii). These new claims
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 244
244 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia in the city involve complex notions of identity, community and entitlement (ibid) which are in their formative stages. Orchard Road is the site of contestation and site of representation of these groups of workers. Hajer and Reijndorp (2001: 89–90) argued that the importance of public spaces and thus civic spaces dwelt not with the use of the space itself, but how different groups share the space. The crux of the matter, perhaps is not so much about meeting as the opportunities that friction between groups with different cultural, economic and social backgrounds offers in the possible “shift” of perspective: “through the experience of otherness one’s own casual view of reality gets some competition from other views and lifestyles. That shift of perspective is not always a pleasant experience” (ibid). The case of Orchard Road as the contested site for the creation of new civic identities resultant from the global flow of people and identities presents new opportunities and challenges for the emergence of civic spaces in the commercial heart of the city. If allowed to develop and mature as a civic space, Orchard Road will be the veritable theater of the convergence of the many circuits of global flows and consumption, a place where the local encounters the global, and where narratives of difference can be played out in public spaces. Orchard Road is the virtual liminal space of a global city, i.e. a sort of boundary condition where different worlds of urban inhabitants come into contact and engender some kind of reaction – through not always positive, but certainly important experiences in the building of civic realms.
Public spaces in public housing – new breeding grounds for civil society? The role of public housing in the political economy of Singapore, the global city, has been a critical one. The planning, implementation and management of the large-scale housing programs has been considered the bedrock of the stable political environment and economic development of the city-state. Castells has described the following in the case of both Singapore and Hong Kong: What we call the Shek Kip Mei Syndrome is a model of development in which the state integrates economic growth and social stability through its planned intervention in the urbanization process, setting up public policies that structure collective consumption in a way that contributes both to human capital formation and to social integration, as the twin pillars of the process of state-led economic development in the new conditions of the world economy. (Castells et al. 1990: 333) The use of public housing for social integration has been a conscious goal of the public housing program since the 1970s, with the implementation of
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 245
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
245
Figure 12.7 A precinct, the basic unit of planning in new towns.
explicit policies to ensure the dispersal of residual ethnic enclaves within public housing since 1989.21 However, the use of public housing spatial forms and spaces as the sites for community building was introduced only in the 1980s with the use of the precinct as the basic unit of planning for the new towns. It repeated itself in clusters of two to four hectares serving 400 to 800 families housed in four to eight blocks of flats. Each precinct had a precinct center which might include small games courts, children’s playgrounds or landscaped gardens. The idea behind the creation of the precinct was to encourage meaningful social interaction among residents through the shared use of this focal point of activity at a scale which residents could recognize and understand. The precinct space and facilities were planned with the expectation that residents using them will come into social contact with each other, and in so doing, develop a sense of belonging to their individual precincts. Unlike the other physical planning elements, the precinct is a spatial engineering strategy to effect the achievement of social goals. (Teo 1996: 279–94)
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 246
246 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia To trace the development of the precinct form and space would be beyond the scope of this paper, but suffice to say, the general trend in its formal development had been towards a much higher degree of enclosure and definition. This is in part due to the perceived need to make precinct spaces more private so that “access would be modified to restrict non-residents to public areas within the block.” It was felt that in order to stem the flow of residents from public to private housing, it was necessary to provide the “ambience and amenities that private properties, such as condominiums currently do.”22 It should be observed that the precincts in the newer estates tended to be ends in themselves and often did not connect to other spaces but were more often than not almost totally enclosed by the surrounding buildings. The aspirations of planners to create communities through spatial means after having ensured the dispersal of ethnic groups within proportions consistent with the larger demography were not met with the desired results. The use of the precinct public space has been on more of a recreational than social basis, and these spaces have hardly become part of the social life of its residents23 – the community is imaginary rather than real, and served more as a unit of planning than as a real functional social unit. Generally, there is very little evidence of widespread citizen or civic participation in either the shaping or organizing of public spaces in public housing estates. The spaces are public mainly because members of the public can use them as long as they subject themselves to the rules that have been set by governing agencies like the Housing and Development Board or the Town Councils (Ooi 1990). Apart from such passive response to the access of public spaces, the citizenry contributes relatively little to the way in which these spaces can be made socially more significant. The lack of civic engagement among public housing residents in their estates has contributed to the debate about the depoliticization of the citizenry because the state has been so effective in pre-empting the politicization of its many material needs, including first and foremost, housing (Ooi and Hee 2002). Rather than decry the increased “privatization” of communal public space and the lack of real communities within the spaces designed for such, is it possible to recast this scenario as one of unveiling possibilities for the creation of civil society? In terms of the maintenance of new towns, the government has already devolved the day-to-day functioning of these to the town councils, which have been empowered to handle finances and resources in managing the new towns and even in limited upgrading works to improve neighborhoods. Such a decentralization of power from the main housing authority to these town councils started from 1988, and their corollary Citizen’s Consultative Committees (CCCs) at the new town levels and Residents’ Committees (RCs)24 at zonal levels can be further extended to the precinct level with the empowerment to improve the living environment. Beito et al. (2002: 8) discuss the view that
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 247
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
247
rather than undermining community, civil society may take root in the communal spaces, facilities and institutions now taking shape in response to market demands. A possible example of this is enhanced political participation by property owners in the direct governance of their major financial assets, their homes. Although the contexts of this discussion were the Common Interest Developments (CIDs) in America, the same scenario may apply to these increasingly perceived-as-private units of space within public housing.25 Fogel (2000) argues that what appears at first as “an escape from community life could in fact become an escape to community life.” Most ideally, such types of civic engagement could revive voluntary groups and cultivate the growth of a civil society that would, in many ways, take over the roles of the welfare and regulatory agencies of the state (ibid). If precinct residents were to run and manage their own precincts, many would begin to take an interest in how the spaces and amenities are deployed and in future developments of the precinct. The long-term goals of creating a viable community that, through the sharing of resources and the empowerment to shape its spaces may yet emerge. Such small-scale empowered communities could also tap into their local knowledge and be flexible to cater for local preferences than state authorities or even the new town levels.
Civic spaces in a global city The four case studies discussed in this paper demonstrated the transformations that civic spaces have undergone within the time frame of Singapore’s globalization in the new world economy, and that these spaces are historically contingent in their roles as civic spaces – not timelessly embedded as spatial phenomenon. However, it would be essentialist to attribute all these changes solely to the abstract concept of globalization, for globalization intersects with local histories, political and cultural institutions and spatial narratives to create the unique experiences of each city. The agencies of the state and civil society are embedded in the situated discourse of globalization and in the creation of space and place. In the landscape of the global city, the power of the symbolic economy of place is objectified in social power and not in design, as argued by Zukin (1996: 144): Power over the landscape has always determined what will be seen and not seen, who will occupy certain spaces, and what – or who – will be relegated to the margins. In these terms, it is clear that framing is not controlled by those who design or even those who build, but by social groups and institutions that compete to appropriate space. Although the rhetoric of competition may emphasize design, design is only one means of legitimizing a claim to control space.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 248
248 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Design or urban intervention, as spelled out by Zukin, has as its new role in somehow legitimizing social control or injecting meaning into space of flows, in creating place-ness – or in Deleuzian terms, in inscribing smooth “global” space into striated “local” space and vice versa. The urban intervention to the historic site of the Padang had been to re-program space with new uses and new meanings, so that it remains relevant to those who may not share the symbolic memory of the place. The transformation of a colonial space to its post-colonial status as the symbolic space of nationhood, and then as the spectacular space of the global city (through the incorporation of technology in space26) has shown how historic spaces can continue to have civic importance in the global city. The renewed interest in place and tradition could be seen in the framework of what has been called post-modernism – that if modernism was driven by universalizing forces, then post-modernism was about situating difference and particularity (Robbins 1993) within the new spaces. The argument was that as cities became increasingly global and homogenous, it had become necessary to re-image the city and manufacture distinctions – that is, again, creating heterogeneous striations within the smooth and undifferentiated. Restoring identities to local culture, the revival of collective memories and the re-enchantment of place are then the thrust of urban planning in post-modern cities. Suntec City demonstrates the experiment to “go beyond nostalgia and market forces” (Castells 1996: 204) in order to infuse “a new tension between individual creation and collective cultural expressions in order to reconstruct meaning in our environment.” Through a combination of spaces accessible to the public and programatic involvement of the larger community, the project has been able to insert itself into the social life of the city instead of being just another urban mega-project in the landscape. The URA, the principal planning agency in Singapore, had since 1993 incorporated in its planning guidelines measures to encourage private provisions of public spaces in new developments. By making spaces on the ground floor accessible to the public at all times, or by opening up internal spaces directly fronting public open space for public use and access, developers gain extra floor area allowances for their developments, as these areas will not be subject to built area calculations.27 The voluntary provision of public good by private developers also establishes goodwill with the public, which by itself is a public good. A further improvement in the provision of such spaces in the city can perhaps involve public participation in the design of such spaces, such that public needs and private provisions can reach a stage of higher convergence. Orchard Road presents a case not so much for design or state intervention, but for civil society to emerge from the discourse on difference and representation in the city. Orchard Road remains the quintessential shopping space in the city for many middle-class Singaporeans, but if this segment of the population insists on occupying its own enclosed network with as
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 249
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
249
little friction as possible with other groups, then this is indeed a sign of the diminishing of the civic realm. Hajer and Reijndorp (2001: 116) argue that the experience of the public domain is poised between “friction and freedom,” balanced between the tension of a “confrontation with the unfamiliar,” while at the same time is the “liberation of the experience of a different approach.” This in turn translates spatially to not so much the actual layout of separate spaces, but rather a conscious design of different spaces and their interrelationships, to enable social and cultural exchange. Just as the monoculture of crops in the earlier orchards had not thrived well, so there is a need to create variegated spaces on contemporary Orchard Road to cater to the alternate “publics” within the local and global ethnoscapes. Along with the spatial restructuring of housing, it may be timely for the state to consider devolving the control of shared space and amenities, within parameters, to resident groups. Decentralizing of some level of control to resident groups may be an avenue to cultivate the growth of civil society, especially with regard to making the immediate environments more relevant to the specificities of needs of small groups of residents. Instead of reading the increased privatization of space as a decline in community, these may instead be opportunities for a new form of engagement of the community with their living environments – the corollary being the home-owners’ associations of private developments. The civic spaces in the public housing landscape would then be fertile ground for increased citizen participation in time to come, in the public sphere of the global city. In the cases discussed here, where the policies regarding civic spaces are grounded in the specificities of the context, we may perhaps present some generalities regarding the provision of civic spaces in metropolitan restructuring – but always bearing in mind the civic and cultural institutions and contexts that these are often embedded: •
•
The historic preservation of civic spaces by those who have the powers to frame their vision of these spaces have to be grounded in the contemporary contexts of these spaces – if the society at large were to still find these spaces relevant and meaningful. It may be necessary to reimagine new and appropriate functions for these spaces, as historically significant spaces may not hold the same meaning for many, especially with the increasingly transitional, transient and diverse population of cities in the global age. Public–private collaborations in the creation of new civic spaces in the city may be a significant avenue to involve new urban mega-projects in the building of new communities in the city, to de-alienate the city for many who have been displaced from it to make way for these projects, or for those who see the city merely as a place for consumption of material goods. These new inclusive civic spaces may be the result
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 250
250 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
•
•
of voluntarism from private businesses, or created through involvement with civil society groups. The state may introduce planning incentives for provision of public spaces within private developments, or relax zoning guidelines to enable private enterprises to take a more active role in the provision of public goods. Design may play a significant role in creating spaces in the city accessible to all, and which are perceptibly, not just physically, enabling as sites of representations of identity and difference. The planning and design of streets and public spaces should not just cater to a select group of the population, but should have amenities and attractions for different groups within the ethnoscape and local populace. Empowerment of home-owners’ associations within housing clusters may be one way of eliciting citizen participation in the betterment of their living environment. Community and civil society is not voluntarily spontaneous, especially in new living environments where many have been displaced from previous settlements or locations.
The thrust of this paper has been to recast civic spaces of the global city as landscapes of opportunities for new ways in which the state, businesses and all facets of society may engage with each other and with the city. Clearly, it is no longer possible just to focus on forms, but to realize the need to scrutinize the processes in which forms and spaces are created within the new global economy. Only then would a new discourse on globalization emerge on the level of place instead of at the abstract levels of flows of information and money. Instead of being a feature of the new economy of advanced capitalism, civic spaces can be the new capital of the global economy, in the creation of the new centrality of cities.
Notes 1 My gratitude and acknowledgements to Professor Diane Davis and her input and advice as I started developing this essay at MIT in her course, “Cities and Globalization”, in the fall of 2002. Grateful acknowledgment is also given to the Toda Foundation for organizing and funding the Second Grand Conference in Vancouver, at which this paper had been presented and subsequently further developed. 2 Such a definition draws from Massey’s view of place within the context of the global and local. See Massey 1993, p. 61. 3 Ibid, p. 66. 4 Earlier, in 1819, the British, through the agency of the East India Company, had signed a treaty port agreement with the then Sultan of Johore and the local Malay Chief. Stamford Raffles was then Lieutenant-Governor of Bencoolen, off Sumatra. The period of colonial rule was thus considered to be from 1819–1959, with a disruption during the Japanese occupation from 1942–1945. 5 Padang is the Malay word for “field.” 6 The statue has since the early 1900s been relocated to the foreground of Victoria Memorial Hall.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 251
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
251
7 The Japanese occupied Singapore from 1942–1945. 8 The only Chinese university in Singapore then was Nanyang University, shortened to “Nantah” in local lingo. 9 The PAP had been the dominant political party in Singapore for the last 37 years, without any significant challenge from opposition parties – perhaps a phenomenon unique in the league of democratic nations. 10 From Lee Kuan Yew’s foreword in Suntec City’s launch booklet, 1997. 11 A term coined by Peter Haas (1992) to describe the elite groups of professionals who are linked globally in the specialized knowledge which they profess within specific fields. 12 www.sicec.com 13 The populist drama of Action Theatre and the Singapore Repertory Theatre (SRT) have performances which are no longer confined to conventional proscenium spaces; site-specific works are common, including at the Suntec City fountain, among other venues in the city. 14 A term used to describe the majority of the population who reside in public housing new towns. 15 Suntec has now the self-proclaimed alternate identity as the “vertical Silicon Valley.” 16 Many young Singaporeans live and go to school in the new towns, and may go to the city to shop – a rather limiting experience of the city. 17 It should be noted that Suntec City and the Padang are in close proximity in physical urban space, almost diametrically opposite one another. 18 Ethnoscape has been defined by Appadurai as “the landscape of mobile people within the global system including tourists, immigrants, refuges, and those who have to move or those fulfilling the fantasies of wanting to move. Ethnoscape involves tension between motion and stability, and such groups can rarely let their imaginations rest for long.” 19 Remittance facilities which these workers use to send money back to the Philippines are largely located in Lucky Plaza. 20 It is common to find working-couple households with children, who employ domestic workers to help out with child-rearing and domestic chores. 21 These rules regarding racial mix intervene at both new town levels and at the level of individual blocks, and are enforced when properties are exchanged on the market. 22 It is in the interest of the one-party government to maintain the large proportion of the electorate within public housing as this is where the political legitimacy of the party is the strongest. Voting for the PAP ensures the continued good maintenance and price-stability of the flats within the political ward. 23 This is a finding from a research project which I am currently conducting – an investigation into the relationships of design, use and social significance of public spaces in housing. 24 Currently, the CCCs play, as its name suggests, a role in the feedback and dissemination of information, while RCs have little empowerment to make any significant change, with a largely social role of organizing zonal parties. See Ooi et al. 1994: 47. 25 I would like to point out at this point that public housing flats in Singapore, unlike in many parts of the world, are owned by the residents, rather than rented. As such, the ownership of the flats enables citizens to hold a stake in the country’s development – through their fixed property assets. 26 Live broadcasting, in this case. 27 1993, URA guidelines on provision of GFA exemptions.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 252
252 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
References Appadurai, A. (1990) “Disjuncture and Difference in the Global Cultural Economy”, Theory, Culture and Society, 7: 295–310. Beito, D., Gordon, P. and Tabarrok, A. (2002) The Voluntary City: Choice, Community and Civil Society, Ann Arbor, MI: The University of Michigan Press. Borja, J. and Castells, M. (1997) Local and Global: Management of Cities in the Information Age, London: Earthscan Publications Ltd, with the UNCHS (Habitat). Buckley, C.B. (1984, new edn.) Anecdotal History of Old Times in Singapore: from the foundation of the settlement under the honorable the East India Company on February 6th, 1819 to the transfer to the Colonial Office as part of the colonial possessions of the Crown on April 1st, 1867, Singapore: Oxford University Press. Castells, M. (1996) “Globalization, Flows and Identity: The New Challenges of Design”, in W.S. Saunders et al. (eds.) Reflections on Architectural Practices in the Nineties, New York: Princeton Architectural Press. Castells, M., Goh, L. and Kwok, R.Y.W. (1990) The Shek Kip Mei Syndrome: Economic Development and Public Housing in Hong Kong and Singapore, London: Pion Limited. Douglass, M., Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2001) “Proposal for Research in Pacific Asia Cities: Civil Society and Civic Spaces in a Global Age” (unpublished working paper for symposium), Singapore: National University of Singapore – Institute of Policy Studies, Singapore. Fogel, R.W. (2000) The Fourth Great Awakening, Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. Gupta, A. and Ferguson, J. (1997) “Beyond ‘Culture’: Space, Identity, and the Politics of Difference”, in A. Gupta et al. (eds.) Culture, Power and Place, Durham, NC: Duke University Press. Haas, P. (1992) “Introduction: Epistemic Communities and International Policy Coordination”, International Organization, 46(1): 1–35. Hajer, M. and Reijndorp, A. (2001) In Search of New Public Domain: Analysis and Strategy, Rotterdam: NAi Publishers. Huang, S., Teo, P. and Heng, H.M. (1995) “Conserving the Civic and Cultural District: State Policies and Public Opinion”, in B.S.A. Yeoh and L. Kong (eds.) Portraits of Places: History, Community and Identity in Singapore, Singapore: Times Editions. Lofland, L.H. (1998) The Public Realm, New York: Walter de Gruyter. Massey, D. (1993) “Power Geometry and a Progressive Sense of Place”, in J. Bird et al. (eds.) Mapping the Futures: Local Cultures, Global Change, New York: Routledge. Ooi, G.L. (1990) “Town Councils in Singapore – Self-determination for Public Housing Estates”, Occasional Paper no. 4, Singapore: Times Academic Press for Institute of Policy Studies, Singapore. Ooi, G.L. and Hee, L. (2002) “Public Space and the Developmental State in Singapore”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 433–47. Ooi, G.L., Siddique, S. and Soh, K.C. (1994) Management of Ethnic Relations in Public Housing Estates, Singapore: Times Academic Press for Institute of Policy Studies. Robbins, K. (1993) “Prisoners of the City”, in E. Carter, J. Donald and J. Squires (eds.) Space and Place – Theories of Identity and Location, London: Lawrence & Wishart. Sassen, S. (1998) Globalization and its Discontents. New York: The New Press. Smith, M.P. (2001) Transnational Urbanism: Locating Globalization, Oxford: Blackwell.
9780415397896_4_012.qxd 07/09/2007 08:56 Page 253
Creating new civic realms in a global city-state
253
Teo, S.E. (1996) “Character and Identity in Singapore New Towns: Planner and Resident Perspectives”, Habitat International, 20(2): 279–94. The Straits Times (1997) “Foreign workers and compassion – remember our ancestral past”, letter from Chua Huck Cheng, 27 July. The Straits Times (1998) “Sunday blues for loiterers”, 30 March. Yeoh and Kong, L. (1995) Portraits of Places, Singapore: Times Editions. Zukin, S. (1996) “Power in the Symbolic Economy”, in W.S. Saunders et al. (eds.) Reflections on Architectural Practices in the Nineties, New York: Princeton Architectural Press.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 254
13 Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) From a historic plaza to a civic space Pornpan Chinnapong
For more than 220 years, Sanam Luang (literally meaning “the Royal Ground”) has served Thai people of all social ranges – from the King to the layperson – for several kinds of activities. The plaza has been used for many different purposes for various occasions, most prominently the many major events of national and international significance relating to both royalty and the people. Throughout Thailand’s political history and up to the present day, Sanam Luang has been used by “pro-democratic citizens as an insurgent political stage as demonstrated in many severe uprising incidents” (Wirojthammakul 1998). The following overview of the socio-spatial functions and historical evolution of Sanam Luang illustrates the site’s rich history as a civic space as well as the emergent civic functions of the site. The story of the site is also, in many ways, the story of Bangkok, which for the last 220 years can be divided into four periods. They are: 1) 2) 3) 4)
the the the the
city establishment period; Westernization period; political reformation period; and contemporary period.
Historical evolution and the spatial functions of Sanam Luang Urban space is a physical product that not only reflects but is an integral part of the social and political relations of the city. As Douglass and Kim (1997) explain, the physical urban landscape of a city shapes human events, just as these events reshape the city form. As spatial organization is socially constructed, the evolution of urban space collectively creates its own pattern of urban history, or “the path of the city” as termed by Charoensin-Oran (2000). Investigating the local characteristics of Sanam Luang along with the development of its city, Bangkok, beyond its short-term process is therefore a prerequisite to the analysis of the study space.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 255
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 255 1) The city establishment period (King Rama I–III: 1782–1851) During the period of city establishment by the first Rama King of the Chakkri Dynasty, Bangkok was considered the royal city, a space constituted by royal ceremony (Askew 2002). Sanam Luang was planned and built in a cosmological pattern resembling that of Ayutthaya, the former capital of the Kingdom of Siam (now Thailand). Sanam Luang was an open space located between the Frontal Palace and the Royal Palace, situated in the inner city of Bangkok (encircled by a river and city moats, later called the Rattanakosin Island area). The open field was originally designed exclusively for cremation ceremonies of the king and the royal family. Accordingly, in the past, people named this open space “Tuuk Phramen,” after its specific function literally meaning the field for royal cremation ceremonies. Tuuk Phramen, at that time, was about half the size of the present area and trapezoid-shaped, unlike the current oval shape as shown in Figure 13.1. During the reign of King Rama III, due to intensive diplomatic communications and negotiations with neighboring countries, particularly with regard to the territorial issue with the Khmer, Tuuk Phramen was modified to be a paddy field. By and large, the strategy was to show that Siam had full potency in terms of food provision (Manasnorm and Wongthet 1980). In addition, King Rama III organized the Royal Ploughing Ceremony, meant to be an auspicious event for farmers and all inhabitants. Therefore, in the early period of city development, the Royal Ground was used exclusively for “royal” events and royalty-related events. 2) The Westernization period (King Rama IV–VI: 1851–1925) Paddy farming on the site in front of the palace continued in the period of King Rama IV. Tuuk Phramen (or Sanam Luang) at that time had a group of temporary structures and royal pavilions for the king to view the rice paddies and to attend the Ploughing Ceremony. The buildings also included pavilions for performance stages – to hold rituals related to the ceremony according to Brahmin belief – and some rice barns on the periphery. Since the name “Tuuk Phramen” was no longer consistent with activities on the site and was not propitious to farming, King Rama IV gave a new name for the ground, “Sanam Luang,” meaning “The Royal Ground,” in a declaration in 1855 (Maneekarn and Jumpa-ngaen 1994: 62). In the mid-nineteenth century, the interference of European imperialism was predominant in Southeast Asian countries, including Thailand, as the country began to open up to the world economy with the signing of the Bowring Treaty of Trade and Commerce with Britain in 1855. Even though Thailand was never colonized, Thailand adopted westernization in many ways, including both city and country development. Major planning projects took place in Bangkok in this period, including transportation,
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 256
256 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 13.1 Detail map of Rattanakosin Island area in 1896 (2493 B.E.) showing the original trapezoid shape of Tuuk Phramen/Sanam Luang.
electrical, and water supply systems as well as city beautification projects. As a result, Bangkok’s urban landscape was dramatically transformed by being modeled after the image of European cities. When King Rama V returned from a visit to Europe in 1897, he demanded the removal of the existing structures from the open plaza in front of the Royal Palace since paddy farming in Sanam Luang was not as important as it was in the past. In this process of modernization, the king
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 257
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 257 also demanded the construction of a grand boulevard as beautiful as those in the developed countries he visited and named it Ratchadamnoen Avenue (“the royal procession road”), linking the Royal Palace with a new palace (the Suan Jitratda Palace) and a new aristocratic suburb (dusit) on the north of the old palace. Sanam Luang was enlarged in this period, when King Rama V commanded the removal of the existing citadel and some other structures in the Frontal Palace and cancelled the secondary king position (upharat), who had occupied the Frontal Palace. Sanam Luang was redesigned and extended to the north, to the former site of the Frontal Palace, and the newly-built Ratchadamnoen Avenue to the west. Sanam Luang was physically transformed into an oval shape and encircled with two rows of tamarind trees covering an area of 27.2 acres (68 rai) (2000 BMA Statistics 2001), the same size as it is today. It was the first time that Sanam Luang’s landscape was designed as a Western-style plaza with greenery, similar to some squares and open public plazas in European cities – a complete change from the traditional swampy paddy field. Following the modernization and city beautification concept of King Rama V, major transformations of Bangkok’s urban landscape during the late nineteenth century took place. As it was the first time that a western-style urban design scheme was formally implemented in Bangkok, the construction of Ratchadamnoen Avenue – including the expansion of Sanam Luang – have been described as the first urban design program in Thailand (Office of BMA 1996; Limtanakul 1994). This city beautification project in Thailand is comparable to the “City Beautiful Movement” of the United States of almost the same period – although it was much smaller in scale and occurred several years later due to the time lag of information transfers. During the modernization period, many new activities took place at Sanam Luang, such as home welcoming ceremonies on the occasion of the king’s return from abroad; the Bangkok Centennial Celebration in 1882; the first grand National Exhibition to show local Thai products which lasted three months; and the celebration for the 25th centennial of the Buddhist era. With its open space and greenery, Sanam Luang was also used as a site for golfing, horseracing and kite flying. These activities were foreign sports firstly adopted in Thailand around this period ( Jiwakul et al. 1982; Wirojthammakul 1998; National Archives of Thailand 1996) when Thailand began to open to a broader world economy. The activities were largely played among foreign crown servants and Thai elites. Although the new activities at Sanam Luang during this period were basically derived from external western influences, almost all activities were mainly organized due to the king’s demands and still chiefly attached to the royal and/or the elites. Sanam Luang during this period therefore still can be perceived as an exclusive space for royalty; at the same time, it was a space colonized by many new foreign activities supported by a new economic regime.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 258
258 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Westernization and modernization from the mid-eighteenth century into the early nineteenth century was a considerably important point of socio-cultural transformation that not only changed Bangkok’s urban landscape, but also many other aspects of Thai society, including a reformation of the Thai political system. 3) The political reformation period (King Rama VII–IX: 1925–34) The shift in political system from absolute to constitutional monarchy with the success of the coup d’état of 1932 significantly transformed Bangkok’s urban fabric, especially the city core area around Sanam Luang, which was surrounded by government agencies. Some of the major projects under the governmental policy-oriented developments in Rattanakosin Island were, for example, a construction of the Democracy Monument in 1939 in the middle of the Ratchadamnoen Avenue to commemorate the introduction of the constitutional monarchy, and the building of the Throne Hall (Anantasamakom Palace) in Italian Renaissance-style architecture to seat the national legislature. Beyond the change to its configuration in the prior period, Sanam Luang was also modified in its functional use. In socio-symbolic contrast to its original function as the royal cremation grounds, shortly after the political reformation, Sanam Luang was used as a location for a cremation ceremony for “the commoners,” on 17–18 February 1933 (Ruengkittiyotying 1997). The cremation was for the heroic soldiers who had sacrificed their lives during the fight against the Lord Bovordej Rebellion. However, for this event, the cremation pavilion was situated in the northern section of the Sanam Luang area instead of the southern section in front of the Royal Palace, which had always been used in cremation ceremonies for the king and the royal family. This implied that the southern portion of land was consecrated for the highest royal class. In cremation ceremonies for commoners in later periods – i.e. for the soldiers in World War II and for insurgent heroes in 14 October 1973 – the cremation pavilions were also located in the northern section of the space. Noticeably, social class separation between the royals and the commoners was symbolically expressed by spatial discrimination in the use of land in ritual ceremonies. Ruengkittiyotying (1997) also pointed out that cremation for commoners at Sanam Luang was always for those who had sacrificed their lives in major political events of the nation. The relation of political events with the space was then collectively established through these rituals. One new political activity that took place at Sanam Luang during this period was public free speech. In that period, the activity was termed “Hyde Park” by the Thai people, after the famous British park, which is renowned as a place for public speech. Public free speech was introduced for the first time in Thailand at Sanam Luang in 1957, during the term of Prime Minister Field Marshal P. Phiboonsongkarm, when he permitted
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 259
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 259 politicians to deliver political speeches. Sanam Luang was chosen to be the venue for this event, and has continued to serve this purpose to this day. Dr Khien describes the unique characteristics of the site: Sanam Luang is the place where political gatherings traditionally take place . . . It is a wide area and is adjacent to Thammasat University, which can used as a shelter if it rains. It is not far from the Democracy Monument, a symbol of the libertarian democracy that many politicians and activists yearned for. Sanam Luang is a sacred place and the fountain of political freedom. (Theeravit 1997: 40) After Thailand’s political reformation, Sanam Luang was described as a “democratic exchange place” (talard prachatipatai) (Manasnorm and Wongthet 1980: 8). Besides its existing and expanding functions for various kinds of social and cultural activities, the open plaza became a political arena for “democratic community” and the meeting place for people from all walks of life who are interested in politics. Accordingly, the content and the function of Sanam Luang was increasingly changed to be a more inclusive space for citizens, and might be described as “an early official political civic space of the Thai nation” since the major reformation of Thailand’s political system. 4) The contemporary period (King Rama IX: 1934 – present) Although modern developments take place around Bangkok and urbanized areas extend toward periphery suburbs creating new commercial and business urban centers, the centrality of Sanam Luang as an urban center for socio-cultural, historic and political events nevertheless remains. This is due to its location surrounded by important governmental agencies, cultural tourist attraction spots (i.e. the Royal Palace and the Emerald Buddha Temple), two major universities, the Democracy Monument and other major political strategic sites. It is also a popular location as a public transportation hub for public bus transfers. Sanam Luang is therefore always lively, abundant with a diversity of people. The vast open space of Sanam Luang was once the site for a popular weekend marketplace, starting from 1957 until its cancellation by governmental authority in 1982 when the Bangkok Bi-centennial Celebration was held. For the cleanliness of this important historic place, the market was then relocated to Jatujak weekend market, which still exists. Sanam Luang was registered as a national historic conservation site by The Fine Arts Department, announced in the government gazette on 13 December 1977 (The Fine Arts Department 1982: 549). Since then, the historic plaza was designated as a public park for recreation, prohibiting any economic business on the site.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 260
260 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia One of the most important activities occurring at Sanam Luang is political activity, i.e. political gatherings and public speech, continuously practiced since Thailand’s shift in political regime. Political mobilization among university students and public citizens demanding democracy without military dictatorship or any totalitarian aspects took place many times at Sanam Luang, including the three most important political incidents in Thailand’s recent political history, i.e. 14 October 1973, 6 October 1976 and the Black May incident of 1992. The site of these and other major political mass gatherings extended to the nearby areas of Ratchadamneon Avenue, the Democracy Monument and Thammasat University, making these areas political landmarks of Thailand’s path toward democracy (Dovey 2001). Since the major shift in the political system, besides the royal ceremonies that continue, (i.e. the Ploughing Ceremony and the Royal Cremation Ceremony), Sanam Luang is also used as a site for many new activities of governmental and national significance, including public holidays and national celebration events; for example, New Year Celebration, Thai New Year or Songkran Celebration, Constitution Celebration and other public festivals. The site was also used as a soccer field and occasionally for free public concerts and a place to organize a World Guinness Record of 46,824 people dancing aerobics together in 2002 (Daily News 2002b). Since the political shift, “popular” activities have been increasingly evident at Sanam Luang. At present, according to a Bangkok Metropolitan Administration (BMA) enactment, Sanam Luang is designated as a public park and is categorized by its main function as a special-use park or multi-purpose park (2000 BMA Statistics 2001). The agency responsible for giving permission for site accessibility beyond general recreational purposes is the BMA Social Welfare Department. The BMA local district office (Phranakorn District office) is in charge of the site’s cleanliness and its order, including the prohibition of any economic activities. However, we can still find street vendor activities and some services, including Thai massage, fortunetelling, kites for sale and mats for rent. Sanam Luang has also been a home for the homeless, who mostly come from rural provinces, despite BMA’s efforts to eliminate this problem by providing other areas for these people. Regarding the conceptual use of the site, BMA provides the northern plot of Sanam Luang for public activities, including recreation. The southern portion of the site in front of the palace is reserved for royal activities and to maintain an impressive urban vista toward the Royal Palace and the Emerald Buddha Temple, which are major cultural and tourist spots. This spatial differentiation in the use of the site has been the practice for a long time, including in the period that Sanam Luang was used as a site for a weekend market. It can be said that the northern portion of Sanam Luang is provided for “popular” use and the southern portion is for
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 261
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 261 “royal” use. This socio-spatial separation along the social class division still exists in Thai society.
Sanam luang and its civic function: political dimension Along Thailand’s political transformation, Sanam Luang was used many times for mass gatherings, especially those of national democratic insurgency. The 24-hour accessible open plaza was occasionally designated as a beginning point of citizen movement. The northern portion of the ground in particular was used as a location for a political stage for speech delivery for citizen mobilizations, practiced since the period of Prime Minister Field Marshal P. Phiboonsongkarm. Sanam Luang therefore functioned as a civic plaza, comparable to European piazzas as civic forums in the medieval and Renaissance periods (Boonchuen 2002). Other nearby sites should also be noted in terms of their political dimension and relation to Sanam Luang. Due to the geographical proximity described earlier, Ratchadamnoen Avenue and the Democracy Monument are also strategic locations of civic movement in Thailand’s political history since the “royal ground” has been used as an initiating location for citizen mobilization. From observation of past political incidents, the direction of the people’s movement usually starts from Sanam Luang and heads toward Ratchadamnoen Avenue, to other strategic places of citizen insurgent activities, such as the House of Parliament, Equestrian Monument plaza, Government House, Throne Hall, Suan Jiratda Palace and particularly the Democracy Monument, which is Thailand’s political landmark for the pursuit of democracy (see Figure 13.2). In the 1992 Black May incident, Sanam Lunag was used as a venue for public speeches before there was citizen movement along Ratchadamneon Avenue toward the Democracy Monument. Black May took place around Sanam Luang, the Democracy Monument and other strategic locations – the traditional choice for mass gatherings, citizen movements and confrontations between the military and people – according to past political history. As described earlier by Theeravit (1997: 40), “Sanam Luang is a sacred place and the fountain of political freedom.” The consecration of space and its unique spatial characteristic are conceivably consistent with Foucault’s concept on “heterotopia” (cited in Charoensin-Oran 2000). As space is socially constructed, its socio-spatial construction collectively makes urban space a production of society. Moreover, heterotopia functioning as a “signifier” (Foucault cited in Charoensin-Oran 2000) can give meaning to space or create a sense of place to human perception. In the case of Sanam Luang, owing to the major, sometimes bloody, political incidents of citizens demanding a democratic civil society occurring many times on the site, the political meaning of the place is vivid in local people’s memories. Sanam Luang is hence conceivable as a landmark of political
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 262
262 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia
Figure 13.2 Politically strategic locations and directions of citizen movement.
insurgent activities of Thai citizens, being the epicenter of political activities of people in the nation, which is essential for the flourishing and rise of civil society. This geo-history of Sanam Luang from the 1970s illustrates the evolution of the site that underwent socio-political changes toward democratic civil society in Thailand. It demonstrates the transformation of the site from a “royal ground” for royal ceremonies, to a site for “governmental” activities, and then to a space for “popular” and “civic” events. This also reflects the shifts in authoritative powers or the rights over the space from the king to people. In conclusion, the socio-spatial functions of Sanam Luang shifts from an exclusive “royal” (luang) space, to a “government” (rath) space, to a “civic” (raad ) space, deriving a new meaning to space for citizens. However, the above explanation does not imply the demise of older forms of power, or that those different authoritative powers and rights over the space are exclusive and separate. Instead, these powers still co-exist in present Thai society, but the newly emerging citizen power, particularly that of the rise of civil society, has been increasingly realized in Thai people’s experience since the shift in political regime. In a globalizing world, in addition to local and national powers and authorities, there is an emerging kind of external power that occupies and
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 263
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 263 manipulates the content and form of urban space in many cities of global interest. Today, global economic forces affect local authoritative powers both directly and indirectly. In the case of Thailand, the government has proposed some strategies to promote Bangkok as a tourist city following national development policies in pursuit of economic recovery since the 1997 economic crisis. These include the “Visit Thailand Year” and “Amazing Thailand” government campaigns, which have had direct influences on Bangkok’s urban landscape, especially in the inner historic core area, the site of many important tourist spots. Sanam Luang, located in the midst of this historic town zone, is directly subjected to the external force of global economy as well.
Sanam Luang in the age of globalization and urban development plans for Bangkok Under the present global economic influence, government agencies have prepared the “Bangkok Towards a City for Global Tourism” development plan in order to induce foreign investment to these localities. These plans include the proposed construction of many mega-projects emerging around Bangkok and peripheral suburbs, such as Nong Ngu Hao second international airport; Rama III, a new global financial and commercial center, and the new Bangkok Transportation Hub at Pahon Yothin. These urban development plans, influenced by the global economy, will affect absolutely Bangkok’s urban form. In the particular case of Sanam Luang, global economic forces have shown their strong relationship to local public policies and plans in permitting the use of Sanam Luang. Some BMA plans that give privilege to tourist activities have affected public accessibility to the site. A recent regulatory enactment has closed this public space, which used to be open 24 hours, and prohibits all activities after dark in order to reduce the site’s high crime rate. This action at the same time serves to exclude homeless people, street vendors, and prostitutes from the tourist spot. Consequently, the action has not only further marginalized these vulnerable groups but has also affected the rest of the residents of Bangkok – almost 10 million people – by limiting the use of the public urban space. The use of Sanam Luang is being limited in its availability for Thai civil society as a civic space. This plan was implemented for a short period during the period of the former BMA governor Samak Sundaravej and was then cancelled due to its lack of effectiveness. However, the plan took effect again recently during the current Governor Apirak Kosayodhin. Global economic influence by way of global tourism also illustrates its strong relations in a previously proposed plan by Governor Samak for an underground parking structure to serve tourist buses in the Rattanakosin area. In the detail of the proposed plan, the project involves building a two-storey, 12-meter deep structure in the northern section of Sanam
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 264
264 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Luang. The upper floor would be three meters high, accommodating 590 cars as well as shops and a large shopping mall. The lower floor would be a 5-meter high space accommodating 282 coach buses for tourists (Kiatwateerattana 2002: 1–2). However, the project brought about negative criticism, evident in an academic discussion on the topic of “Kut Sanam Luang Ruue Ja Pen Rueng Luang Nai Karn Kaae Panha,” (Whether or not digging the Royal Ground is a deception in problem solving) organized by university students at Silapakorn University on 9 March 2001 (Kiatwateerattana 2002; Muang Boran Information Center 2000; Promsa-art 2001). The discourse points to many possible problems that may follow if the project is implemented; for example, the loss of cultural and historical value of the conservation site, the loss of public space for local people by yielding to the need for vehicle space particularly for foreign tourists, the engineering risk due to an underground aquifer of the nearby Chao Phraya River, and pollution and traffic problems due to the clustering of the vehicles on the site. Moreover, if built, the plan would not provide adequate space for vehicles. In conclusion, from the discussion, the plan for the parking structure was not an appropriate solution for solving traffic problems; it might create other problems instead. Furthermore, there was no public hearing organized by BMA for this project. The process of inviting the private sector in the design and implementation plan was also under controversy on its transparency, because the previous BMA Governor specifically assigned a French company who initiated the idea and earlier proposed the plan to the Governor (Thairaj 2001). The foreign company offered no charge on construction costs, but requested for a monopoly on benefit costs from parking and shop businesses for 20 years after construction (Kiatwateerattana 2002; Promsa-art 2001). Seemingly, it would be a commodification of one of the most significant national conservation sites yielding to the power of foreign investment. However, the project was halted due to criticism from the public including from the Rattanakosin Island Committee for Bangkok city development (Khaosod 2002). In the present world of economic globalization, the privatization of public space (Banerjee 2001; Boonchuen 2002) and commodification of the city (Douglass 1997) are global trends that increasingly occur in many cities – particularly those that focus on economic and materialistic growth pursuits, rather than those which also incorporate the goals of social and cultural sustainability of local citizens. The loss of urban space for public and civic activities necessary in nurturing civil society is one of the negative outcomes from the trends we should be aware of. Development that aims solely for economic growth and physical urban growth, instead of the socio-cultural quality of life for people, entails a risk of losing the local self-identity of cities. This could happen especially in some huge urban development projects favoring homogeneity of western city images presently
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 265
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 265 taking place in and around Bangkok. Some important civic spaces of which the significant historic conservation site, like Sanam Luang, are also affected by the global forces of capitalism by way of city development in serving global tourism industry. Urban design is currently carried out in a context of international globalization. We have seen the global–local relations as illustrated in a Bangkok case study in this paper. From a perspective of urban development in an era of globalization, we should therefore be aware of unwanted outcomes that may happen along with the developments under global economic pressure and global trends. In the process of urban development and urban design in fostering civil society, the need for spaces for civic activities should not be neglected; instead, we should create more opportunities for inclusive social engagement in order to rebalance the global economic spaces and spaces that nurture local cohesiveness in Thai society.
References 2000 BMA Statistics (2001) Department of policy and planning, Bangkok Metropolitan Administration, Bangkok. Askew, M. (2002) Bangkok: Place, Practice and Representation, London: Routledge. Banerjee, T. (2001) “The Future of Public Space: Beyond Invented Streets and Reinvented Places”, Journal of the American Planning Association, 67: 9–24. Bangkok Metropolitan Authority (2000) BMA Guideline on Permission for Activity Organization on Sanam Luang Area (2000) [brochure] (in Thai), 25 May, Bangkok. Bangkok Metropolitan Authority (2001) 2000 BMA Statistics, Bangkok, Bangkok Metropolitan Authority. Boonchuen, P. (2002) “Globalization and Urban Design: Transformations of Civic Space in Bangkok”, International Development and Planning Review, 24(4): 401–17. Charoensin-Oran, C. (2000, 2nd edn.) Development Discourse: Power, Knowledge, Truth, Identity and Otherness (in Thai), Bangkok: Wipasa Press. Daily News (2002a) “Pup Kep Krong Kran Tee Jod Rod Tai Sanam Luang” (in Thai), [Freeze Sanam Luang underground parking structure project], Daily News, 17 September. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 29 January 2003). Daily News (2002b) “Tum Lai Sathiti Lok Tenn Aerobic” (in Thai), [Breaking the world record in aerobic dancing], 24 November. Douglass, M. (1997) Urban Design in a Global Age – Creating Civic Space for Livable Cities, the Nagoya International Urban Design Forum 1997, 6–9 October, Nagoya. Douglass, M. and Kim, W.B. (1997) “Culture and Urban Future in East Asia”, in W.B. Kim, M. Douglass, S.C. Choe and K.C. Ho (eds.) Culture and the City in East Asia, Oxford: Clarendon Press. Douglass, M., Ho, K.C. and Ooi, G.L. (2002) “Civic Spaces, Globalization and Pacific Asia Cities”, International Development and Planning Review, 24(4): 345–62. Dovey, K. (2001) “Memory, Democracy and Urban Space: Bangkok’s ‘path to democracy”, Na-Jauu, 17, Bangkok: Thammasat University Press.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 266
266 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Jiwakul, K. et al. (1982) “Conditions and typologies of markets in Bangkok: A case study of Sanam Luang” (in Thai), in Markets in Bangkok: growth and development, research paper sponsored by Research Fund Department, Chulalongkorn University in the occasion of Bangkok Bi-centennial Celebration, pp. 198–204. Khaosod (2002) “Mati Kummakarn Harm Kut Sanam Luang Jod Rod”, (in Thai), [A committee’s resolution prohibits digging the Royal Ground to build parking lots]. Khaosod, 27 March, 6. Kiatwateerattana, T. (2002) “Larn Jod Rod ‘Tuuk Pra Maen’ ” [pamphlet] (in Thai), [“Parking lots at “the ground for the royal cremation ceremony’ ”], Krungthep Turakij, 19 March, pp. 1–2. Limtanakul, W. (1994) “The Effects of Modernization to the Neighborhood (Yaan) System of Communities in Bangkok”, unpublished M.Sc Thesis (in Thai), Department of Sociology and Anthropology, Thammasat University, Bangkok. Manasnorm, T. and Wongthet, S. (1980) Het Kert Ti Sanam Luang (in Thai), [Incidents at Sanam Luang], Bangkok: Graphic Art. Maneekarn, S. and Jumpa-ngaen, S. (1994) “Sanam Luang” (in Thai), Mai Hed Muen Krung Rattanakosin Song Roy Pee, [A Note of Bi-centennial Celebration of Bangkok], Bangkok: Odien Store, p. 62. Muang Boran Information Center (2000) “Punha Yang Mee Ti Sanam Luang” (in Thai), [“Problems still exist at Sanam Luang”], Muang Boran, Bangkok: Muang Boran Press, 26(4): 123–5. National Archives of Thailand (1996, 2nd edn.) Sung Kom Thai Samai Ratchakarn Ti 5 (in Thai), [Thai Society in the Period of King Rama 5], Bangkok: The Fine Arts Department. Office of Bangkok Metropolitan Administrations (BMA) (1996) The Report on the Development of the Mid-Ratchadamneon Road in occasion of His Majesty the King’s Golden Jubilee Celebration 1995–1996 (in Thai), Bangkok. Promsa-art, S. (2001) “Kut Sanam Luang Ruue Ja Pen Papp Luang Nai Karn Kaae Panha” (in Thai), [“Whether or not digging the Royal Ground is a deceptive image in problem solving”], Lok Si Keaw, 10(2): 16–17. Ruengkittiyotying, N. (1997) An Urban Life Pattern: A study from the case of Sanam Luang as a public urban space (in Thai), unpublished M.Sc Thesis, Faculty of Sociology and Anthropology, Thammasat University. Sundaravej, S. (2002) Pee Ti Song Nai Kortomor Karm Kit Ti Young Kow Nar Kup Panha Ti Laae Hen: Bantauk Chean Rai Ngan Jark Puu Wa Samak Sundaravej Lae Kana Tuen Tan Puu Pen Jow Kong Sit Leunk Tang Nai Kotomor (in Thai), [The second year at BMA with progressive ideas and the apparent problems: the report from Governor Samak Sundaravej and the team members to BMA voters], Bangkok: K.P. Printing. Thairaj (2001) “Tum Mai Tuuk-Yindee Tum Hai Tuuk Tonk Samak Yun Mai Kit Sokapok Kut Sanam Luang-Chun Jat Aat Seur” (in Thai), [If not right, welcome to make it right. Samak furiously argues he doesn’t corruptly plan to dig Sanam Luang.], Thairaj, 1 February. Online. Available HTTP: (accessed 17 September 2002). The Fine Arts Department (1982) Jod Mai Hed Karn Anuruk Krung Rattanakosin (in Thai), [Krung Rattanakosin conservation report], published in the occasion of Krung Rattanakosin Bicentennial Celebration, Bangkok: National Archive Division.
9780415397896_4_013.qxd 07/09/2007 08:55 Page 267
Bangkok’s Sanam Luang (the Royal Ground) 267 Theeravit, K. (1997) Thailand in Crisis: A study of the political turmoil of May 1992, Bangkok: Institute of Asian Studies, Chulalongkorn University. Tontiwittayapitak, W. (2000, 2nd edn.) Roum Laed Naeu Chard Cheau Thai (in Thai), [The assembly of Thai flesh and blood], Bangkok: Sarakadee Press. Wirojthammakul, K. (1998) “Sanam Luang in the past” (in Thai), in Reung Loau Chow Wang [Stories of people in the palace], Bangkok: Nam Fon Press.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 268
14 International meetings and dissent The city as political space for global issues Joseph Boski
Civic spaces, particularly insurgent civic spaces, are usually found in cities.1 They are also most evident at certain moments – Boston in the 1770s, Paris at various times, the “people power” of Manila, the overthrow of Suharto in Jakarta, and Tiananmen Square in 1989. In the last several years international meetings have been key sites of insurgency for the global justice movement – the World Trade Organization (WTO) meetings in Seattle and the Group of Eight (G8) meetings in Genoa are the most well-known examples. These demonstrations of global dissent are mischaracterized by a myth of violence; they can be described more accurately as convivial gatherings by erstwhile global citizens.2 However, trends in the security and location of international meetings, via the domination of urban space or the (dis)location of meetings to remote areas, are limiting possibilities for proximate protest. This chapter discusses these trends in control and resistance, their spatial dimensions, and the prospects of the use of the city as political space. Following this introduction, there is a brief discussion of globalization and governance. The next section describes the importance of face to face interactions for global governance institutions and the opportunities these represent to a dissenting public. Following that is a discussion of the locations of global governance meetings. Next, the convivial (Peattie 1998) aspects of “global justice” demonstrations are discussed (“anti-globalization” is a misleading term).3 The global justice movement includes what participants view as attempts at direct democracy as well as an aesthetic that includes street theater. These require the creation and use of insurgent civic spaces. The fourth section deflates the myth of violence that arose with the Seattle protests. That is followed by a discussion of trends in state actors’ reactions to global justice demonstrations, focusing on dis-location of meetings to remote locations. The concluding section discusses how planning committees could facilitate rather than eliminate the use of the city as a political space for global issues.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 269
International meetings and dissent
269
Global governance? No single conception of globalization should be considered of paramount importance or accuracy as social theory. Rather, it is likely that a diversity of conceptions can each provide useful insights. One empirical trend, however, stands out: the expansion and intensification of urban-industrialcapitalist based state and market systems – contemporary urbanization. For the purposes of this paper, globalization should be understood in broad terms – economic, social, political, and/or technological processes that affect more or less the entire world or are affected by processes that are global in that sense. Urbanization is the most prominent empirical manifestation of these processes. For this paper, governance should also be considered in broad terms. For Rosenau, global governance is not limited to governments, but also includes other channels of command and “systems of rule at all levels of human activity – from the family to the international organization – in which the pursuit of goals through the exercise of control has transnational repercussions” (2000: 181). Rosenau’s broad conception of global governance encourages one to consider institutions and actors that might otherwise be neglected. It also implies that global governance systems can and do exist despite the lack of a global state. Therefore, the term global governance in this paper refers to a system of command channels and institutions that affect more or less the whole world, or can be viewed as part of a system that does so or which has transnational repercussions. In this discussion, for example, the Asia Pacific Economic Cooperation (APEC) is considered a global governance organization despite not having a global scope in the strict geographical sense. It globally affects and is affected by ideological and economic processes. Also, organizations such as the World Economic Forum (WEF), despite the fact that it is not a government institution, can be considered a global governance institution, as can non-governmental organizations (NGOs) such as Oxfam. However, these latter two examples do not have the direct control channels of more government-based groups.
International meetings: coordination of the global governance system Globalization processes require coordination. This coordination by global governance institutions requires face to face meetings, analogous to the needs of economic actors described in Sassen’s work on the global city (1991, 2000). For Sassen, cities, especially large cities, are nodes in spatial networks that facilitate the globalization of social, economic, and political processes (1991, 2000). One aspect of the contemporary form of these cities is a resurgence or creation of central business districts and other special zones to facilitate face to face contacts. Globalization processes require new and
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 270
270 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia intense spatial configurations for coordination. Coordination of global networks of finance, production, or politics relies in large part on new telecommunications infrastructure including the Internet, but person to person social interactions remain essential. Indeed, coordination across great distances in particular requires intense face to face interactions (Sassen 1991, 2000). Global governance must also grapple with the spatial logics of contemporary globalization processes, including the need for face to face meetings for coordination. Global governance institution headquarters tend to be clustered in major cities, but not necessarily those considered among the top tier of global cities; for example Washington and Geneva not necessarily New York, London, or Tokyo. However, they are also part of a nodal urban network with the same benefits of face to face contacts among decision makers and an adequate, specialized labor pool. Headquarter sites, however, have not become as highly contested as meeting sites. The ephemeral, intense, and visible nature of meetings represent unique opportunities for mass demonstrations that headquarters do not offer. The ephemerality of meetings also allows global governance institutions to avoid cities that are activist nodes. Meetings need not be held in major cities. However, when they meet elsewhere there are two very significant costs involved, financial and social. These are discussed in the next section, which attempts to describe the geographical pattern of global governance meetings including the recent trend of dis-location to remote sites.
The global geography of summits and meetings The geographical pattern of global governance meetings reflects an aspect of globalization that some observers call “triadization,” the relative dominance of North America, Western Europe, and East Asia globally in economic as well as political and other arenas (Ohmae 1999; Swyngedouw 2000). Headquarters of global governance institutions tend to be located in certain cities in Western Europe and the United States: the WTO in Geneva, the OECD in Paris, the UN in New York, the World Bank and IMF in Washington, with East Asia notably lagging. This spatial concentration of global governance institutions should be a surprise to no-one. However, the legitimacy of these organizations as somehow representative of the world is, geographically at the very least, open to serious question. Meetings of these institutions often occur outside of their headquarters locations. The meetings could be, and in some sense are, ways of opening the institutions to broader audiences – including broader geographical audiences. These often high profile meetings are opportunities for civil society actors, especially formal ones who often attend in some capacity, to attempt to act as global citizens providing input to the global governance system. This active involvement, however, is generally limited to an elite
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 271
International meetings and dissent
271
Table 14.1 G8 summits, 1975–2005 Year
Site
Year
Site
1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990
Rambouillet, France San Juan, Puerto Rico, US London, UK Bonn, West Germany Tokyo, Japan Venice, Italy Ottawa-Montebello, Canada Versailles, France Williamsburg, US London, UK Bonn, West Germany Tokyo, Japan Venice, Italy Toronto, Canada Paris, France Houston, US
1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005
London, UK Munich, Germany Tokyo, Japan Naples, Italy Halifax, Canada Lyon, France Denver, US Birmingham, UK Cologne, Germany Nago, Okinawa, Japan Genoa, Italy Kananaskis, Alberta, Canada Evian-les-bains, France Sea Island, Georgia, US Gleneagles, Scotland, UK
Source: Adapted from University of www.g8.utoronto.ca/summit/index.htm.
Toronto
G8
Information
Center,
http://
Note: Years in BOLD are clear cases of dis-location of meetings to remote areas to limit protests.
segment of civil society. Involvement is both passively and actively discouraged for everyone else. It is passively discouraged by geographical concentration not only of headquarters, but also of meetings. Meetings tend to occur in the “triad” areas of Western Europe, North America, and, to a lesser extent, East Asia. It is also passively discouraged by maintaining websites and publishing most documents predominately in English, but rarely in non-triad languages. Active discouragement takes the form of eliminating proximate spaces for social protest with absurd levels of security or locating meetings in inaccessible areas. At a macro-scale, this can be seen by the remoteness of some of the locations for recent meetings: the 2001 Asian Development Bank meetings in Honolulu, the 2001 WTO meetings in Doha, Qatar, the 2002 G8 summit in Kananaskis, Canada, the 2002 APEC summit in Los Cabos, Mexico, and the 2003 G8 summit in Evian-les-Bains, France. These remote or unfamiliar locations are in stark contrast with meetings in earlier periods often being held in capital cities such as Paris, London, and Tokyo. Table 14.1 lists the locations of G7/G8 summits from its founding in 1975 to 2005. Since 2002, summits have been held in relatively remote locations and it is no secret that this was done to limit controversy and protest. When the Canadian government decided to hold the G8 summit for 2002 in the remote Rocky Mountain region of Kananaskis, it was clear that relative isolation was the major factor in site selection. The rhetoric used by the Prime Minister was of returning the G8 meetings to a less formal, less media-focused event (Reid 2001), in essence a less public event.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 272
272 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia Kananaskis is a good location for removing the event from the public and from public protest. Kananaskis is thousands of kilometers from the major population centers of Eastern Canada and hundreds of kilometers from the relatively politicized population of Vancouver. It is also far from major population centers in the US. The nearest city is Calgary, 90 kilometers away, where most protests eventually were held. Its location nestled in the mountains also makes it easy to limit access. The summit site itself was surrounded by a 6.5 kilometer (four mile) security radius, guarded by Canadian military and Royal Canadian Mounted Police and off-limits to any unauthorized person. Space in this context, though, is more than merely physical location – proximity, distance, topography. It is also social location. Kananaskis is in the relatively conservative, oil-wealthy, business-friendly province of Alberta. Prior to the event, the entire province and Calgary in particular lacked a significant social infrastructure for activists. The relative lack of capacity and experience among local activists coupled with physical remoteness contributed to a smaller and less influential political debate overall on important issues regarding global governance. A year after the Kananaskis summit, the 2003 G8 summit was held in the small French town of Evian-les-bains, population approximately 7,500. This small spa resort town is nestled between the French Alps on the south, expansive Lake Geneva to the north, and the Swiss border to the east. It is only 45 kilometers (28 miles) from Geneva, but the border separates it from that city. The nearest large French city is Lyon, about 200 kilometers (125 miles) away. Paris is 580 kilometers away (360 miles) (Evian Tourism n.d.; G8 Evian n.d.). A list of noteworthy events other than the G8 summit held in Evian in 2003, according to the Evian Tourism website, includes the French Hairdressing Festival, a rally cup race with vintage cars, an antique show, a golf tournament, fireworks on the lake, and a Japanese arts festival (Evian Tourism n.d.). The town has no capacity to host the tens or even hundreds of thousands of French citizens, other Europeans, and others who desired to publicly demonstrate their dissent with the G8. The limits of Evian as a host site are further illustrated by the fact that the international media center for the event was 6 kilometers (4 miles) away from Evian in the town of Publier (G8 Evian n.d.). The location resulted in relatively minor protests – including cross-border protests in Switzerland. The US hosted the 2004 summit on a small island off the coast of Georgia, a politically conservative area. The 2005 summit in Gleneagles, Scotland, was also a site remote enough to allow security forces to deny access to protesters. Instead, protests were held in the nearby city of Edinburgh. More prominently, Bob Geldof, Bono, Madonna, and others held concerts in London, other cities in G8 countries, and in South Africa. These were to pressure the G8 to end poverty in Africa. The “Live8” concerts are inspirational in some ways – over 26 million text messages were sent in support, a sort of mega-virtual petition drive (BBC 2005). On the other hand, the
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 273
International meetings and dissent
273
Table 14.2 APEC ministerial conferences, 1989–2005 Year
Site
1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005
Canberra, Australia Singapore Seoul, Korea Bangkok, Thailand Seattle/Blake Island, US Jakarta/Bogor, Indonesia Osaka, Japan Manila, Philippines Vancouver, Canada Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia Auckland, New Zealand Bandar Seri Begawan, Brunei Shanghai, China Los Cabos, Mexico Bangkok, Thailand Santiago, Chile Busan (Pusan), South Korea
Source: Compiled and adapted from APEC homepage: http://www.apecsec.org.sg/
remoteness of public participation is a marked departure from massive street demonstrations. Table 14.2 shows ministerial meeting sites of the Asia Pacific Economic Cooperation (APEC) from its founding in 1989 to 2005. APEC is deserving of special note for at least three reasons. One is to compensate in some small way for the tendency to focus on Western Europe and the US when discussing global governance. Also interesting is that APEC meetings, in great contrast to G8 meetings, generally have not followed the trend of dis-location to remote sites. However, they have followed the trend of domination of urban space and limiting protests in that manner. Another interesting aspect of APEC is that it deliberately presents itself as an economic and non-political organization. For example, APEC members are officially referred to as member economies, not member countries or nations. One very pragmatic reason for doing this is to allow for Taiwan and China to function as separate member economies within the organization. Despite APEC’s apolitical posturing, its meetings include national finance ministers and heads of state. They have been the target of several significant protests. The differences among protests, though, have more to do with the national setting of the summit than the macro-regional setting in the Asia-Pacific. This illustrates the importance of not overemphasizing the importance of regional differences (EU versus North America versus East Asia) and not underemphasizing the importance of the nation state. As noted above, Sassen described the nation as a “cracked,” not broken or discarded, container for politics (2000: 48).
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 274
274 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia In 1996 in Manila, there were thousands of protesters who demonstrated against APEC (Hernandez 1997). In Vancouver in 1997, there were several thousand protesters and police actions were highly scrutinized and condemned in the wake of liberal use of pepper spray and restrictive policies regarding displays of dissent. Pressure from then-President Suharto’s offices in Indonesia contributed to repressive actions by police in Vancouver (Ericson and Doyle 1999). In Auckland in 1999, similar international pressures came from China regarding demonstrations against Chinese president Jiang (The Press 1999). The 2001 meetings in Shanghai came shortly after the attacks on the World Trade Center and the Pentagon. Shanghai billed itself as “the world’s safest city” and virtually no protests were allowed (Gittings 2001). The 2002 meetings were located in the relatively remote resort area of Los Cabos in Mexico where protests were considerably less than they would have been in Mexico City, for example. Thailand held the 2003 meetings in Bangkok. The Thai government resorted to typical, unimaginative and inhumane tactics for hosting meetings, including clearing Bangkok’s streets and parks of “undesirables” – including attempts to fly vulnerable Cambodians one way to Phnom Penh. In 2004, APEC met in Santiago, Chile, where newspapers repeated the claims from Shanghai four years earlier, “the world’s safest city” (Manriquez 2004). Tens of thousands came to protest despite repressive security. Many came to protest US President Bush who came to the meetings. Police used water cannons and some demonstrations turned violent (CBS News 2004). Following models in Brazil and elsewhere, a Chilean Social Forum, a parallel summit, was organized as well (Manriquez 2004). As this goes to press, the 2005 meetings in Busan (or Pusan), South Korea, have yet to take place. There are two major trends to limit dissent at meetings. One is to institute repressive and very costly security measures. This is based on a myth of violence, discussed below, or on state disregard for the safety and political participation of the public. Many countries hosting APEC meetings continue to follow this trend. A capital city such as Santiago is fortified with security forces, who respond violently to protesters. The other trend is to “dis-locate” meetings to remote areas. This is most clear in the APEC 2002 meeting in Los Cabos and at all G8 summits since 2002. There are two costs of dis-location of meetings to remote sites: financial and social. Due to logistical concerns, air transport, hotel space, etc., it seems likely that remote locations are more expensive. For example, overall costs for the 2001 G8 summit in Genoa were considerably less than those for the 2002 G8 summit in remote Kananaskis, approximately US$110 million versus US$175 million. The remote location contributed to a cost of 50 percent more for hosting a similar summit (Maloney 2002, Reuters 2001).4 The costs associated with the Kananaskis summit should also be examined in terms of environmental impact costs because security for the meeting included assembling over ten-thousand Canadian military personnel in an environmentally sensitive and protected zone.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 275
International meetings and dissent
275
Social costs of dis-location are even harder to quantify but also very high. Social protest is undervalued or viewed as a negative by most decision makers responsible for security and site location for meetings. But social protests about perceived global injustices have raised in public and official debates important issues that would otherwise not have been addressed. For example, the issue of the WTO and its policies entered the general public sphere only after protests in Seattle. The location of the next WTO meetings in Doha, Qatar, however, reduced protests and limited general debate about the WTO. Press coverage in the Los Angeles Times, for example, moved from the front page to the business section. The issues discussed and the audience reached were more limited than if there had been mass protests. Benefits of social protest can be seen in the issues of debt relief and AIDS medicines. The Economist magazine, unsympathetic to protesters, has credited them as catalysts for renewed debates regarding debt relief in the Bretton Woods institutions. The Economist notes a “striking” shift among those institutions and an increased willingness to work with established civil society organizations such as Oxfam. “Public protest has accelerated change on several fronts, notably debt relief . . . Assaulted by unruly protesters, firms and governments are suddenly eager to do business with the respectable face of dissent” (2000: 85). Debt relief has been a central issue among protests at G8 summits, at least since Birmingham in 1998, and it has been receiving increased formal attention. It made a multi-media pitch for public support at the 2005 G8 summits through the Live8 concerts (see above). Lack of access to AIDS medicines has been another key issue for protesters. The WTO meetings in Doha, Qatar, saw concessions made regarding patents and generic production to increase access to AIDS medicines in South Africa, India, and other countries.5 Though the formal concessions were the direct result of pressure by officials within the WTO from such countries, it is a weak argument to say that these changes have nothing to do with pressure from protests and NGOs. The social costs of limiting protests via extreme security include, therefore, a diminished public sphere and associated limitations with regard to policy options and discussions among state actors. Active discouragement of protest threatens the efficacy and legitimacy of global governance institutions. Methods of limiting protest are discussed in more detail below after a discussion of the general conviviality of protests at global governance institution meetings and the many civic spaces used – religious spaces, universities, community centers, the streets.
Civic spaces of the global justice movement Based on the notion of triadization, on the spatial concentration of meetings, and on geographical conventions, it is tempting to categorize global justice events into three regions: North America, Western Europe,
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 276
276 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia and East/Southeast Asia. However, as the APEC examples suggest, intraregional differences may be so vast as to make such categories more misleading than helpful. For example, the differences between a WTO meeting in Singapore (there was one in 1996) and one in the Philippines (a hypothetical one, since it is highly unlikely there will ever be one) would be extreme. Despite such variations, however, this section describes some general aspects of these events at an urban scale in terms of what spaces are used by citizens as insurgent civic spaces. This general description of insurgent civic spaces of the global justice movement applies most fully to cases in the US and Canada.6 Other authors in this collection have described the notions of insurgent civic spaces and civic space, and their conceptualization applies here (Douglass, Ho, and Ooi 2002, see also the introduction to this volume). As global governance meetings became sites of resistance, tactics and strategies of protesters and security officials have developed rapidly. These have affected other insurgent uses of urban spaces such as the tactics and aesthetics of peace rallies opposed to war in Iraq.7 Typically, global justice movement events involve thousands or tens of thousands of citizens mobilizing and converging in the host city and participating in a number of activities – not only protests, but also teach-ins and parallel or alternative summits. A majority of activists come from the host city or nearby, but many come from out of town. This involves considerable logistical coordination, usually by activists based in the host city, for months prior to the event. A key aspect is the securing of appropriate spaces for the most intense actions coinciding with the official meetings, usually a week long period with two or three days of peak activity. These insurgent civic spaces include more than street protests. Progressive religious spaces, universities, and community centers often host daylong or several day teach-ins or conferences on globalization. Private spaces (homes and bookstores, for example), public parks, and the streets are also important sites. Apparently every major event – at least those in North America since WTO-Seattle – has had what is called a “convergence center.” This is often based at a community center that is rented (possibly from the city or from a relatively sympathetic organization) by activists for the week of intense activities. The convergence center usually has one large room as a focal point. There is usually a ring of tables along the walls and a ring of chairs in the middle of the room. The tables have a variety of information on issues such as housing, listings of events for the week, and legal advice. Usually the convergence center is in or close to downtown, and/or, if possible, relatively near the summit site and the numerous demonstrations and teach-ins that will take place. At the convergence center, one can find food for free or nominal donation; activists that will help with and information about legal, medical, housing, and safety advice; information about all the week’s events; and nightly spokescouncil meetings.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 277
International meetings and dissent
277
Spokescouncil meetings, usually held each evening, are discussions about the events of the day and plans for the next day and the week. Updates are very useful because each day usually has multiple teach-ins and demonstrations – it is impossible for any one person to be present at all of them. Updates also provide people with a chance to express pride and camaraderie or to join together in cathartic complaints. Meetings are usually organized around affinity groups. Affinity groups are self-selected groups of activists usually ranging between four and twelve, but groups can be as small as one or bigger than two dozen. They will stick together during demonstrations and sometimes represent a long-standing organization – for example a Food Not Bombs group or a communist party from a certain locale. Each affinity group will typically nominate one of its members as spokesperson for the group by signing up at the beginning of the week. Spokespersons then do the bulk of the talking during the meetings as the day’s events are evaluated and ideas about upcoming protests and events are discussed and modified. One or several facilitators keep track of time and ask people to keep their comments relevant and succinct. Spokespersons usually speak first on any given topic, then the floor is open to all in attendance. Before a given issue is put aside, if there is need for a decision – for example shall the timing or location of a demonstration be changed – it is put to a vote. The name convergence center has been used consistently, in the US and Canada at least, at all major events since WTO-Seattle. The convergence center is, as its name implies, a place for activists to come together – for information, for planning, and for solidarity. Solidarity and coming together are important issues among a large group of people, including many who are interacting with each other for the first time. Usually more formalized in character and more devoted to theoretical and policy-related discussions than to planning demonstrations, are parallel or alternate summits. These summits have a long history, going back decades at the United Nations including well-known events at famous summits on the environment, gender, and housing in Rio de Janeiro (1992), Beijing (1995), and Istanbul (1996). These events take place at sites able to handle conferences, such as universities, and will often receive some attention or have some link, often tenuous, with the official summit – sometimes by way of a document drafted by those at the parallel summit and presented to representatives from the official summit. Sometimes representatives from governments or global governance institutions will take part in the parallel summits as well. An interesting case of a parallel summit that has taken on a life and relevance of its own is the World Social Forum. Held for its first three years in Porto Alegre, Brazil, it has taken place annually since 2001 as a counter, non-proximate, parallel summit to the World Economic Forum, which is usually held in Davos, Switzerland. The World Social Forum’s first year was deemed a noteworthy success by a trade magazine devoted to the planning and organizing of conferences and conventions
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 278
278 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia (Welch 2001) and it has grown considerably over the last several years, including one year in Mumbai, India. Alternative summits are usually complemented by smaller teach-ins and meetings. Often held at progressive churches and community centers, these are usually one-day or half-day affairs. They often feature speakers who are also participating in the parallel summits. In addition to speakers, there is often music or other entertainment with a progressive political and/or multicultural character. There is a lot of overlap among participants at convergence center events, parallel summits, teach-ins, and demonstrations. Teach-ins, as well as various planning meetings, often take place for months prior to the summit. There is, therefore, far more to the global justice movement than street protests, though these are an essential and visible part of the movement. Among the great variety of people and tactics at public demonstrations there are two common features: they are festive with music and art, and they are overwhelmingly non-violent. The latter issue, misrepresented in most media reports, is discussed below. Demonstrations generally have a festive atmosphere of satire and transgression using costumes, street theater, and massive puppets. Images of mild acquiescence and normalcy such as grandmothers and cheerleaders are transformed into symbols of dissent. The Raging Grannies, for example, are a loose network of elderly women (see www.raginggrannies.com). They dress in a mock-genteel style, frilly dresses with sunhats and parasols, and sing familiar tunes with biting, politically satirical lyrics. For example, Cole Porter’s “Don’t Fence Me In” became “Don’t Fence Us Out” during protests in Calgary during the 2002 G8 summit. The radical cheerleaders are another loose network of young men and women who usually dress in red and black mock-cheerleader outfits and cheer against corporate greed, police brutality, and other perceived injustices. Music is always a key part of demonstrations. Though the uses of satire and music are not unique to the global justice movement, the rise of this movement has brought them to levels not seen in street protests for decades, perhaps ever. Demonstrations are near, when possible, the meeting site. Commercial areas and business districts are also used. Parks are used for rallies with music and speakers. Parks and large open spaces are also used as gathering points prior to large marches, with the largest march usually coinciding with the opening day of the official meetings. When large numbers of demonstrators are present, as in Seattle, for example, several starting points will be used. This confounds police efforts to manage protests, and it offers demonstrators a choice between less and more confrontational atmospheres. Wainwright and Prudham (2000) describe, for example, three “microgeographies of resistance” in Seattle: the confrontational, civil disobedience stance of the Direct Action Network who occupied intersections around the WTO meeting site (they had three different starting points among themselves); a more mild stance of protest by
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 279
International meetings and dissent
279
most demonstrators slightly removed from the convention center; and an orderly march by union activists. Another “space” used by activists is the Internet. There is no doubt that the Internet plays an important role in contemporary social movements generally and in the global justice movement specifically (see Kreimer 2001). Planners for global justice movement protests use the Internet, particularly email listserves, to hold discussions, to mobilize people with calls to action, and to provide updates on events. Much of the work of listserves is beneficial because it addresses logistical questions such as how to arrange for transportation and housing and where and when to meet for events. Listserves may also allow members of the movement to stay active and feel involved, by receiving and/or posting information and opinions. The Internet is used for other purposes as well, including virtual protests, but it is perhaps most effectively used as an alternative media source, as in the case of Indymedia (see www.indymedia.org), and as a convenient and inexpensive way to communicate with listserves. However, the effectiveness of the Internet as a tool of the global justice movement has limits. Even in the case of one of the strongest uses of the Internet by the global justice movement, Indymedia would never have developed its network of participatory journalists or achieved an audience without street protests and other more traditional forms of social interaction (see www.indymedia.org). Without other means of communication – street protests, face to face contacts, print and TV media – Internet communication as protest would be virtually meaningless (Boski 2003). For example, no strictly virtual protest has ever been as successful at mobilizing activists and gaining the attention of the general public as large street protests have. Another illustration of its limits is the small protests that have occurred in remote locations, such as the 2002 G8 summit in Kananaskis or the WTO meetings in Doha in 2001. The state actor trend of deliberately dislocating meetings to remote areas to limit protests (Boski 2002) is a barrier the Internet apparently cannot overcome (Boski 2003).
Seattle and the myth of violence Before moving onto trends in state actor reaction to protests, it is regrettably necessary to address the issue of violence. Though unfortunately all too real in some cases – such as the G8 summit in Genoa – the myth of violence, which started in earnest in Seattle and has been perpetuated by state officials and the media, is inaccurate. However, it contributes to the reality of violence when it does occur. The word “violent” is frequently used, and misused, in media coverage of events: In the corporate media the word “violent” is invoked as a kind of mantra – invariably, repeatedly – whenever a large action takes place: “violent protests”, “violent clashes”, “police raid headquarters of violent
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 280
280 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia protesters’, even “violent riots” . . . Such expressions are typically invoked when a simple, plain-English description of what took place (people throwing paint-bombs, breaking windows of empty storefronts, holding hands as they blockaded intersections, cops beating them with sticks) might give the impression that the only truly violent parties were the police. The US media is probably the biggest offender here – and this despite the fact that, after two years of increasingly militant direct action, it is still impossible to produce a single example of anyone to whom a US activist has caused physical injury. (Graeber 2002: 66) This last phrase is slightly inaccurate, but if qualified as “serious” physical injury, then it is apparently true. It is extremely rare to find any reports of police being the victims of violent protesters at these events and no serious injuries of this sort have been reported. Most police injuries in the WTO protests in Seattle, for example, were caused by police use and misuse of weapons. Table 14.3 shows injuries sustained by Seattle Police Department officers. Of the 56 injuries suffered by Seattle police, only eleven, “bruises/cuts from thrown objects,” are directly attributable to confrontational/violent protesters, and many if not all of those came subsequent to police use of tear gas. Indeed, judging from videotape records, various investigations, and discussions with participants of Seattle, many of the objects being thrown were tear gas canisters the police had thrown at protesters. Twenty-six of the 56 injuries are directly attributable to police use of weapons, food poisoning, and a poorly fitting gas mask (fractured teeth). Some of the injuries labeled “strained back/bruises” and “strains/sprains” were due to “lugging around heavy equipment and standing guard for hours at a stretch” and others were the result of protesters not cooperating with arrests, usually by not moving at all and going limp to make arrests difficult (McCoomber 2000). Table 14.3 shows injuries for Seattle Police Department officers. Other police departments and the National Guard provided aid. “An unknown but small number of personnel [from other departments] sustained bruises when struck by objects thrown by rioters, and two suffered food poisoning” (McCarthy and Associates 2000: 235). No thorough records exist for protester injuries. However, according to the report by McCarthy and Associates (2000) an estimated ninety-two people sought treatment at local hospitals for injuries during WTO-Seattle. While any injuries to police and protesters should not be treated lightly, the level of injuries indicates a much lower level of violence than that usually suggested by the media or by state actors hosting subsequent meetings. In particular, protester initiated violence is very low. Media and state rhetoric is inaccurate and irresponsible. The notion of a violent, anti-globalization horde of anarchists with an Internet enhanced capacity for disruption is misleading. Some people at global justice events
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 281
International meetings and dissent
281
Table 14.3 WTO-Seattle: Seattle Police Department injuries Injury type
#
Probable cause
Hearing impairment Strained back/bruises Bruises/cuts from thrown objects Strains/sprains Inhalation of chemical agents Burned hand Food poisoning Chest pain Fractured teeth Total
17 12
Police equipment Carrying equipment or carrying limp protesters
11 7
Protesters throwing objects Carrying equipment or carrying limp protesters
4 2 1 1 1 56
Police equipment Police equipment Police supplies Exertion Police equipment (gas mask) Probably caused by police: between 26 and 45 Probably caused by protesters: between 11 and 30 Caused by protesters prior to police violence: 0
Source: Adapted from McCarthy and Associates 2000: 234. Supplemental information from: ACLU 2000; McCoomber 2000; Richmond 2000.
in North America have used property damage and vandalism for various purposes, and events in Europe typically have higher degrees of vandalism, but vandals are a miniscule aspect of demonstrations, and violence is even rarer. An excellent example is, again, the WTO meetings in Seattle, upon which the myth is based and about which the best information is available. The number of vandals was very small. The Seattle Police Department estimated 500 vandals, and this represents a high end estimate; the low end is a few dozen, with other observers falling in between (ACLU 2000; McCarthy 2000; Richmond 2000; SPD 2000). Given the 50,000 or more citizens active in Seattle, these estimates imply that those who resorted to property damage made up between one-tenth of a percent and one percent of all protesters. While such behavior warrants some sort of security response, police attacks on crowds of people and media acceptance of such attacks were not warranted. Nor are security precautions of completely dislocating subsequent meetings from citizens by either domination of urban space or by removal to remote locations justified by the events of Seattle or subsequent meetings. Expensive and misdirected security measures are based on media and state rhetoric that reinforces inaccurate images of citizens. Security is necessary at meetings, but it should be focused on potential physical harm to participants, such as bomb threats, and on protecting the areas immediately surrounding the meetings and travel corridors for participants, for example between hotels and meeting sites. The main goal of security should be to protect meeting participants. The goal of security should not be to limit dissent. Security should not include as a routine practice the shutting down of large areas of a city to protesters and it should not involve violent attacks by police to disperse crowds. These
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 282
282 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia are expensive and irresponsible actions of an extreme nature that have become routine, in part due to the myth of violence.
Dis-location and other state actor trends Four trends can be observed in security at contested global governance meetings: the militarization of police forces, the radicalization of active citizens, the routinization of control techniques among state actors, and the dislocation of events away from the active public. The first three trends are related and they overlap. Police at meetings spend hundreds of thousands or millions of dollars on new weapons and equipment. Citizen actors are often portrayed – by state and media actors – as radical, extreme, and extremely dangerous. Control techniques of state actors – including the building of fences and barricades, the liberal use of weapons including tear gas, pepper spray, rubber bullets, and concussion grenades – have been routinized in practice and in their treatment by the media as necessary and acceptable. Routinization, militarization, and radicalization often are facilitated via networks of state actors. Examples of inter-city police training include Los Angeles officers visiting Washington, DC, during the World Bank-IMF meetings of April 2000 and Philadelphia during the Republican National Convention a few months later. This was in preparation for the Democratic National Convention (DNC) in Los Angeles that summer. Subsequent to that, the Los Angeles County Sheriff’s Department trained Genoa police officers for the 2001 G8 summit. “For four months, 70 specially selected [Italian police] officers were trained by two Los Angeles police sheriffs. A larger number of police also received a week-long training course from the Americans” (Reuters 2001). Members of the Honolulu Police Department visited Los Angeles during the DNC in preparation for the Asian Development Bank’s (ADB) 2001 meetings in Honolulu. While cooperation among police forces is not undesirable in and of itself, the results of this cooperation have been terrible. Italian police trained by Los Angeles sheriffs participated in a bloody midnight raid in Genoa that hospitalized scores of people (Reuters 2001). At the time of the attack many people were sleeping and none of them were at that time involved in activities justifying a violent police action. The training of Honolulu police visiting Los Angeles for the DNC could only have contributed to wasteful security precautions, which were a major overreaction to imagined or fabricated threats. The fourth trend, dis-location, can be divided into two types. One is dislocation via distance. Examples include the ADB meetings in Honolulu, the WTO meetings in Qatar, and the G8 summit in Kananaskis. Dislocation to remote areas effectively eliminates the possibility of proximate protest. In the United States and Canada, and presumably in some other countries, proximity during public assembly is a right guaranteed to citizens (Ericson
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 283
International meetings and dissent
283
and Doyle 1999; Perrine 2001). This national right is violated by the dis-location of international meetings. This right also has been abrogated at the explicit request of global governance institutions and of foreign governments, as with the ADB in Honolulu (Honolulu Magazine 2001, Rees 2001) and Suharto’s Indonesia at the APEC meetings in Vancouver (Ericson and Doyle 1999). The second type of dis-location is via the domination of space. It also eliminates the possibility of proximate public expressions of dissent – by blocking off citizen access to very large areas around the meeting site with temporary walls, as in Genoa and Quebec City, or by otherwise impeding access, as with the no-protest zone in Seattle set up following the first day of large protests. Dis-location by domination ranges from the urban to the international. In one striking case, a chartered British train of 500 people on their way to Genoa was stopped by French authorities at the border and forced to return to the UK (CNN 2001). Many people headed to Quebec City for the FTAA meetings were turned back at the border by Canadian authorities as were some of those headed to Calgary to protest the G8 meetings in Kananaskis.
Planning for the city as a political space for global issues The city is the most essential site for insurgent civic spaces in this urbanizing, globalizing world. Protests at international meetings and their mishandling by state and quasi-state actors are an extreme but illustrative case of this importance of the city as a political space for global issues. In addition to the already recognized value of formal civil society groups, the importance of dissent and social protest needs to be recognized by state actors and global governance institutions. A better model for planning international meetings could realize the benefits of social protests (alternative policy ideas, increased awareness by the general public) as well as reduce costs for host cities and nations, costs which reach into the tens or hundreds of millions of dollars. Current planning models for international meetings are unsuccessful and the results are unjust, outrageously expensive, and arguably illegal. The cost in financial terms is great – with recent events ranging from over one hundred million dollars for G8-Genoa, to somewhere around two hundred million dollars for G8-Kananaskis. The social cost is high as well, the virtual elimination of protest. Social protest is a necessary and valuable aspect of politics and governance. Eliminating spaces for social protest is an anti-democratic and short-sighted approach to establishing a long-term, legitimate system of global governance. This era of an emerging global governance system would benefit if state actors and others sought to cultivate and facilitate – or at least not impede – an emerging global citizenry. This citizenry is politically active and informed (or at least tries to be) and it informs and expands debates among policy makers. A better planning
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 284
284 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia process would be one designed to reduce pressures, dispel myths, and overcome contradictions among state actors. In part this could be done by bringing state (and quasi-state) actors from various scales and viewpoints together with citizen actors. Two approaches toward a better planning process should be considered. They are not mutually exclusive and can be applied together. The first approach uses specific lessons from previous events to inform decision makers about security and other considerations in hosting meetings. This deals with particular issues such as creating effective and efficient security. For example, security officials should not build walls that are too extensive for police to secure and which are viewed as targets by some protesters. In their analysis of the WTO meetings in Seattle, Gillham and Marx (2000) present a list of several other specific options as well as potential citizenpolice interactions that should be considered in planning for contested global governance meetings. The ACLU evaluation of the WTO meetings in Seattle also makes some useful recommendations (ACLU 2000). A second approach is to use a planning process based on a committee with diverse representatives and real decision-making power. In general, the planning committee should consist of various scales of state, police, activist, business, and civil rights groups. It must be granted a high degree of autonomy with regard to decision making. Even so it is unlikely that such a committee will satisfy all parties. Activists will likely avoid such a committee for fear of co-optation, but legal advocacy groups such as the American Civil Liberties Union (ACLU) could participate and represent some activist interests. At any rate, involving otherwise disparate groups with each other in periodic discussions of budgetary, organizational, security, and civil rights concerns will help to ameliorate contradictions and disagreements, including those among state actors, or at least help make them explicit and open to discussion. The process must be flexible and particular to each case. At the same time it must be formalized with actual decision-making power and authority. This would mean a membership with key decision-makers – the mayor, chief of police, etc. – or with representatives who have been delegated the appropriate authority. The process would likely consist of two rounds: a national/international round of determining site location and a local round dealing with the specifics of facilitating official meetings, parallel summits, and demonstrations through the provision of appropriate spaces. It remains a rather formidable task – for citizens and for those policy makers already convinced – to convince policy makers of the value of social protest and the irresponsible and expensive character of current security measures.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 285
International meetings and dissent
285
Notes 1 There have been, of course, rural or peasant revolutions throughout history. However, they often have an urban component as well, especially if they are eventually successful. 2 My use of the term citizen is meant to be provocative. Those involved are demanding from our emerging global governance system some sort of global citizenship: duties and responsibilities at the level of a world community. 3 The phrase “anti-globalization movement” has become standard in most media reports but should not be uncritically accepted or used. It is needlessly inaccurate. The phrase “global justice movement” is arguably more accurate because it is more inclusive, and it is no more wordy if that is the concern of the media. Smith (2001) proposes global justice movement as well as “a movement for comprehensive globalization” and “a movement for global democracy.” Other possibilities include “anti-neoliberal globalization,” “anti-corporate globalization,” or even “anti-capitalist globalization” movement. Smith explains the important, obfuscating, and debilitating effects of mislabeling the movement. The term “anti-globalization movement” has come to refer to recent mass protests against global capitalist expansion. Much of the public, and even participants in the movement itself, have uncritically accepted the label. But the naming of something gives power to those bestowing names, and the proponents of the anti-globalization misnomer use it to deflect challenges to corporatecapitalist ideology. Pundits such as Thomas Friedman or Paul Krugman can easily convince their readers that the “anti-globalization” movement is an irrational attempt to stop inevitable and unambiguously good economic development. Along with many government officials . . . they frequently claim, We know what the movement is against, but what is it for? (Smith 2001: 14, emphasis in original) A negative label, one in opposition to something, connotes quite different things than a positive label – working for global justice. 4 Estimates for the Kananaskis 2002 G8 Summit range from US$175 to US$300 million, the more conservative number still exceeds estimates of the Genoa Summit. The 2000 G8 Summit in Okinawa, Japan, may have had some costs associated with its remote location, but the whole summit had a lavish nature, leading to an overall price tag of approximately US$600 million, including infrastructure costs. Costs for summits ranging from several million dollars to several hundred million dollars warrant further investigation, especially with regard to costs associated with remote locations and security. However, reliable, detailed information on these issues has been difficult to obtain. 5 Unfortunately, after the meetings were over, the US derailed the progress made regarding AIDS medicine. Subsequently, President Bush has made strong statements committing billions of dollars to AIDS relief in Africa. Time will tell if this is a real commitment or not. However, US commitment to abstinence and opposition to the promotion of condom use will possibly lead to an increase in HIV/AIDS in parts of Africa. 6 Data for this section and for this chapter in general come from a variety of sources. These include: direct participant observation at Calgary protests associated with the G8 Summit in Kananaskis in 2002 and at the Asian Development Bank meetings in Honolulu in 2001; interviews with state actor and/or protestor participants from various events including WTO-Seattle, G8-Genoa, FTAA-Quebec, ADB-Honolulu, G8-Kananaskis, G8-Birmingham, G8-Okinawa, and APEC-Vancouver; and document analysis of state and media reports and
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 286
286 Globalization, the City and Civil Society in Pacific Asia other sources. See Boski (2002) for a brief overview of some early studies of the global justice movement. 7 On February 15, 2003, over ten million people in over sixty cities mobilized in “The World Says No to War” protests. These involved an aesthetic similar to and many of the same organizing groups as the global justice movement. Depending on how broadly one conceives of the movement, one can consider protests against the 2003 war in Iraq to be part of the global justice movement. Its capacity to attract larger crowds is partly because war is a more salient issue than the murky word “globalization.”
References ACLU (American Civil Liberties Union) (2000) Out of Control: Seattle’s Flawed Response to Protests Against the World Trade Organization, Seattle: ACLU. BBC (2005) “Millions Rock to Live 8 Message”, BBC News Online, UK Edition, 3 July. Online. Available: (accessed 5 August 2005). Boski, J. (2002) “Responses by State Actors to Insurgent Civic Spaces since the WTO Meetings at Seattle”, International Development Planning Review, 24(4): 363– 81. —— (2003) “The Internet and the Global Justice Movement”, paper presented at the AESOP/ACSP Joint Congress, Leuven, Belgium, 8–11 July. CBS News (2004) “Bush Greeted by Protesters at APEC”, 19 November 2004. Online. Available: (accessed 13 September 2005). CNN (2001) “G8 Agitators Stopped at Borders”, Online. Available: (accessed 4 February 2003). G8 Evian (not dated) French Government’s Official Website of G8 Evian 2003. Online. Available: (accessed 28 February, 2003). Gillham, P. and G.T. Marx (2000) “Complexity and Irony in Policing and Protesting: The World Trade Organization in Seattle”, Social Justice, 27: 212–36. Gittings, J. (2001) “Fortress Shanghai Awaits Bush”, The Guardian, 16 October. Graeber, D. (2002) “The New Anarchists”, New Left Review, Jan/Feb, 13: 61–73. Hernandez, C.G. (1997) “The Philippines 1996: A House Finally in Order?” Asian Survey, 17(2): 204–11. Honolulu Magazine (2001) “Shanghaied in Honolulu”, Honolulu Magazine, July 2001. Kreimer, S.F. (2001) “Technologies of Protest Insurgent Social Movements and the First Amendment in the Era of the Internet”, University of Pennsylvania Law Review, 150: 119–71. McCarthy and Associates (2000) An Independent Review of the World Trade Organization Conference Disruptions in Seattle, Washington 29 November – 3 December, 1999, San Clemente, CA: R.M. McCarthy and Associates. McCoomber, J.M. (2000) “WTO Injury Reports from Officers Shows Dangers they Faced”, Seattle Times, 8 February 2000.
9780415397896_4_014.qxd 07/09/2007 08:48 Page 287
International meetings and dissent
287
Maloney, T. (2002) “Deputy Chief Defends $34.3M Tab”, Calgary Herald, 26 June. Manriquez, Roberto (2004) “Chileans Protest APEC”, ZNet 18 November. Online. Available: (accessed 13 September 2005). Ohmae, K. (1999) The Borderless World: Power and Strategy in the Interlinked Economy, New York: Harper Business. The Press (1999) “Call for Inquiry into PM’s Chinese Protest Role”, 28 October (The Press is a New Zealand-based mainstream newspaper). Peattie, L. (1998) “Convivial Cities”, in M. Douglass and J. Friedmann (eds.) Cities for Citizens, Chichester: John Wiley and Sons. Perrine, A. (2001) “The First Amendment Versus the World Trade Organization: Emergency Powers and the Battle in Seattle”, Washington Law Review, April. Pianta, M. (2001) “Parallel Summits of Global Civil Society”, in H. Anheier, M. Glasius, and M. Kaldor (eds.) Global Civil Society 2001, Oxford: Oxford University Press. Rees, R.M. (2001) “The Welcome Wagon”, Honolulu Weekly, 25 April. Reid, M. (2001) “Summit Organizers Hope to See Protests Limited to Calgary”, Calgary Herald, 8 November. Reuters (2001) “Genoa police unit trained by US sheriffs”. Online. Available: (accessed 23 September 2001). Richmond, P. (2000) Bringing in an Undemocratic Institution Brings an Undemocratic Response, A report for the National Lawyers’ Guild, Seattle. Online. Available: (accessed 10 April 2001). Rosenau, J.N. (2000) “Governance in a Globalizing World”, in D. Held and A. McGrew (eds.) The Global Transformations Reader, Cambridge: Polity Press. Sassen, S. (1991) The Global City: New York, London, Tokyo, Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. —— (2000) “The Global City: Strategic Site/New Frontier”, in E. Isin (ed.) Democracy, Citizenship and the Global City, London and New York: Routledge. Smith, J. (2001) “Behind the Anti-Globalization Label”, Dissent, Fall 2001. SPD (Seattle Police Department) (2000) After Action Report: November 29–December 3, 1999: World Trade Organization Ministerial Conference, Online. Available: <www. ci.seattle.wa.us/spd/spdmainsite/wto/spdwtoaar.htm> (accessed 10 April 2001). Swyngedouw, E. (2000) “Authoritarian governance, power, and the politics of rescaling”, Environment and Planning D: Society and Space, 18: 63–76. Wainwright, J. and Prudham, S. (2000) “The Battles in Seattle: Microgeographies of Resistance and the Challenge of Building Alternative Futures”, Environment and Planning D: Society and Space, 18: 5–13. Welch, S.J. (2001) “From Meds to Reds”, Successful Meetings, 50(6): 21.
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 07/09/2007 08:53 Page 288
Index
Note: Page numbers in bold denote photographs or paintings, page numbers in italics denote figures, tables or maps activism: China 60, 92; development of 66–7; for global justice see global justice movement; Indonesia 221–2, 229; Korea 197– 8, 202–4; Singapore 75– 6; state’s role 68; Thailand 41, 259 America see USA anti-Americanism 202, 204, 208 anti-globalization movement see global justice movement APEC (Asia Pacific Economic Cooperation) 269; conferences 273– 4, 273; as protest target 273, 274 Arnstein, Sherry 61 Asian financial crisis 40, 41, 44, 220, 221 Asian values, defined 70 Bangkok, Thailand 13, 41–2; developmental periods 254–61; FDI 54; insurgent spaces 260, 261–2; mobilization 260; street vending 260, see also Sanam Luang Beijing, China 39, 88, 92, see also Zhejiang Village capital cities, governmental bias towards 54 CCCP (Chinese Communist Party), community organization involvement 94, 176, 177, 178, 183, 185, 189, 191–2 China: civic space and civil society context 122–4, 187– 92; colonial transformation of public space
38–9; curfew systems 82–3; danwei society 39, 93–5, 95, 125, 175; derivation of post-Mao urbanization 128–9; early forms of public space 79–80; economic reforms 179, 181; FDI inflow 52; and global competition 2; guangchang (public square) 95–101; homeownership 179–81, 185–6; informal settlements 122, 137–8; local diversity 125–6; markets 79–80, 83–8, 84; migrant entrepreneurs 129–30, 131; overview 121–2; parks and squares 13, 91–3, 93, 95–101, 97, 99, 189–90, 268; phases of urban development 80–3; public space in socialist 94–5; relevance of elite leadership issues 124; social services 131, 182, 184; spatial polarization 37; streets 85, 86; temples 86, 88–9, 88, 94; urban design 81, 82, 84, 86, 87, 90, 130, 133; urbanization rates 15; Western influence on public space 89–93, see also Chinese community organizations; Chinese peri-urbanization; Shanghai Chinese community organizations: CCP involvement 94, 176, 177, 178, 183, 185, 189, 191–2; hierarchy 176–8, 177; homeowners’ associations 179–81; militarized features 178–9; overview 175–6; Shanghai model 182–7 Chinese peri-urbanization: and civic space 131–2; Dongmei Village 132–5, 133, 135–7; overview 137–9;
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 07/09/2007 08:53 Page 289
Index 289 significance 121; Zhejiang Village 129–32, 130, 135–7 cities: governmental bias towards capital 54; planning and development 38 civic engagement: and economic status 116–17; Malaysian opportunities 111; of public housing residents 246–7; role of space in enabling 27, 50, 58– 62, 211, 226, 229; Singapore 71, 71–2, 75– 6; and social housing 246–7; and state-society relations 67 civic organizations see community/ social organizations civic space: attributes of good 127–8; concept analysis 3, 5–7, 27, 29, 104, 105– 6, 126–7, 231–2; importance of 50, 105; inclusivity 30; and place sentiment 56–7; privatization of 10, 11, 28, 39, 41, 42, 45, 263–5; provision limitation 6; in public housing schemes 244–7, 245, 249; public-private collaboration 249–50; reasons for decline 45–6; relationship to civil society 28–31, 122– 4, 187– 92; religious institutions as 106; state interference/control see state control of civil space; state-sponsored 58; surveillance of see surveillance; typology 7–14, 38– 9 class issues see social exclusion/ stratification coffee shops, as civic space 11, 31 colonialism: in China 38– 9; impact on settlement systems 35; Indonesia 214, 215; Korea 197; Malaysia 108; and multiculturalism 43; Singapore 68– 9, 233, 236, 239; as target of social mobilization 40–1; transformations from 33 commercial establishments, as civic space 11 community mobilization see public mobilization community newspapers 59 community school, Shanghai 190 community/civic centres, as civic space 10–11 community/social organizations: assumptions about 28; bridging role 4; China see Chinese community organizations; Korea 199, 200, 202; Korff’s review 55; Malaysia 115–16;
mediating role 28; Singapore 68–70, 72 corruption 42, 149, 151, 161–2 curfew systems, early China 82–3 cyberspace see internet decentralization, implications of Chinese 125 democratic governance: demands for 6; pace of reform towards 10–11; Thai shift towards 19–20 democratic rights, benefits in exchange for 1, 33 “developmental state”, principal aspects 33 Direct Action Network 278 dis-location, as dissent limitation strategy 22, 268, 270–5, 282–3 displacement/resettlement 40, 52, 69, 71 Dongmei Village, China 37, 132–5, 133, 135–7 economic crisis (1997) 40, 41, 44, 220, 221 economic restructuring, state response to 2 economic status, and civic organization 116–17 Elden, S. 211–12 elite leadership, in Chinese associational life 124 entrepreneurialism 66; Chinese 129–30, 131 export-oriented industrialization: components 39–40; first phase 33; rise of 32 fast food restaurants, impact on civic space 11 Fateha 73–4 FDI (foreign direct investment) 15; centralization 54; drivers 51; intercity competition 3; percentage share 52; principal bases 1; strategies to encourage 31–2 financial crisis 40, 41, 44, 220, 221 Firey, Walter 56 foreign direct investment see FDI foreign workers see migrant labour free association 123, 126 “free spaces”, definition 5–6, 29 freedom of speech: legislation 9, 31, 74; Singapore 74; Thailand 41, 258–9
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 07/09/2007 08:53 Page 290
290 Index G8 summits: dis-location 268, 270–5, 282–3; environmental impact 274; Evian-les-Bains 272; Genoa 268, 274, 279, 282, 283; Gleneagles 272; Kananaskis 271–2, 274, 283; planning costs 283; Seattle 268, 275, 278, 279– 82, 283, 284 gated communities 2, 14, 45 Genoa 268, 274, 279, 282, 283 gentrification 8 global citizenry, planning for a 283–4 global events: Davis Cup 235; Live8 272, 275; Millennium celebrations 238; World Cup 199–201, 206–8 global franchises 32–3 global governance: APEC conferences 273– 4, 273; civic engagement planning 283– 4; concept analysis 269; G8 summits see G8 summits; international coordination 269–70; necessity of social protest 283; summit geography 270–5, 271, 282–3; triadization 270, 275–6 global governance institutions: dissent limitation strategies 22, 268, 270–5, 281–3; headquarters locations 270; security trends 282 global justice movement: civic spaces 275– 9; internet use 279; media coverage 279– 80, 281; organizing 276–7; protest methodology 278–9; and right of proximity 282–3 globalization: local responses to 53–4; and privatization of public space 263–5; trends derived from 51–2; Westernization as 53– 4 Gonzales, L. 52–3 Hanoi pavements: overview 145–6, 161–3; private trading growth 145– 8, 168; roaming vendors 146, 163– 4, 165, 168; SEA Games’ impact 166–7; state disaggregation 169; state legislation 148– 61; ward policemen’s views 164– 6 Hanoi traffic regulations: 36/CP 155– 61, 166; 57/UB 151–5; 404 campaign 148–51; ND 15/2003 66–7 Hanoi, Vietnam 42; GTCC (Dept of transport and public works) 148, 149, 151; street control see Hanoi pavements; Hanoi traffic regulations Hefney, R.W. 105
homelessness 8, 44, 263 homeownership, and community development 179–81, 185–6, 250 Hong Kong: protest movements 60; urbanization rates 15, 36 IMF (International Monetary Fund) 33, 45 Indonesia: alun-alun 213; and Asian financial crisis 220, 221; civic space chronology 212–22; colonial period 214; economic growth 219–21; emergence of insurgent space 221–2; Islamic groups 224; Islamic period 213; nation-building project 215–16; social mobilization 224, 225, 226–7; state awareness of civic space 225; state-civil society relations 218; Suharto regime 217–21; Sukarno regime 214–16; surveillance in 30, 218–19, 220; urbanization rates 15; YAMP mosques 218–19, 219 industrialization: Pacific acceleration 32–3; social impact 1–2 informal settlements, China 122, 137–8 insurgent space 6, 10, 13–14, 27, 31; Bangkok 260, 261, 261–2; and global governance institutions 22, 31, 45, 268; Indonesia 221–2; internet as 12–13; mosques as 114–15; parks 38 international migration, developmental role 52–3 internet: as civic space 12–13, 207; and community mobilization 73–4, 200, 201–2, 203, 221–2, 227, 272–3, 279 investment, foreign direct see FDI (foreign direct investment) Iraq: and the global justice movement 276; Indonesian reaction 226–7 Jacobs, Jane: sidewalks perspective 42; The Death and Life of Great American Cities 9 Jakarta, Indonesia 220, 222, 223, 225; civic transformation 222–4; demonstrations 225; development process 220–1; FDI 54; image change 217–18; insurgent spaces 14; Islamic influences 38; landmarks 214–15, 215, 216; nation-building
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 07/09/2007 08:53 Page 291
Index 291 project 215–16; pre-colonial period 213; social stratification 9, 44–5; “socio-religious” development 218; surveillance 218–19 Japan: bubble economy 2, 11, 40; foreign labour force 44, 53; parks 8; public baths 11 Kaifeng, China 85, 87, 88– 9 Klongtoey Slums 57 Korea: civic impact of World Cup 206– 8; maturity of civil society 208– 9; red ideology 208; urbanization rates 15, 36, see also Kwanghwamun Square; Seoul Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia, mosques see Kuala Lumpur mosques Kuala Lumpur mosques 113; civic organization in affluent areas 116–17; data collection and analysis 110–11; design 109; overview 117–18; political debate in 111; spatial distribution 111, 112; state interference 114–16 Kwanghwamun Square, Seoul: candlelit vigil campaign 201–3; democratization 198– 9; dissidence 196– 8; pedestrianization 205; as powerbase 196; structure and function 195– 6; surveillance 198–9; transformation 203–5; World Cup festivities 199–201, 206– 8 land development 2, 42 land-use development, Singaporean control 71 liberal democracy, questions about 68 Live8 272, 275 local, establishing the power of the 4–5 Malaysia: civic space/society overview 109–10; migrant workers in 53; mosque design 108, see also Kuala Lumpur mosques malls: China 96, 97; civic space provision 9–10, 31; Jakarta 44; Singapore 239; and social exclusion 10, 45 Manila, Philippines 13 markets, as civic space 79– 80, 83–8, 84, 167– 9 martial law 33 mega-projects 2, 32, 39, 46, 237, 249
middle class, rise of the 1, 2, 15, 32 migrant labour: and civic space in Singapore 239–44; exploitation 14, 44; remittance levels 52; skilled vs. semi-skilled 53; and social stratification 55–6; Sunday enclave phenomenon 241; support networks 53 migration: Chinese entrepreneurial 13, 129–30, 131; international see international migration; rural–urban 43, 55, 134, 138, see also migrant labor mobilization, public see public mobilization mosques: architectural design 107, 108; bridging role 114; as civic space 57, 104–5; Indonesia 218–19, 219; as insurgent space 114–15; Kuala Lumpur study see Kuala Lumpur mosques; multifunctional role 108; surveillance 108–9, 114–15, 117, 118 multiculturalism 14, 35, 43–4, 278 Nelson, Joan, Access to Power 51 NGOs (non-governmental organizations) 6, 55, 199, 205, 205–6, 269 NIDL (new international division of labor) 1, 32, 39 Padang, Singapore 233–6, 235, 248 parks, plazas and squares: China 13, 91–3, 93, 95–101, 97, 99, 189–90, 268; as civic space 7–9, 29–30, 59; colonial Indonesia 214; as insurgent spaces 38; Korean plaza culture 206–8, 207; pre-colonial Indonesia 213; Shanghai 189–90; Singaporean development 69; Sukarno’s treatment of Jakarta’s 216; Thailand 41–2, see also Kwanghwamun Square; Sanam Luang participatory democracy: Singapore 75–6, see also civic engagement pavements: Hanoi see Hanoi pavements, see also sidewalk place sentiment, and civic space 56–7 planning: mediating role 56; public participation 76; Singapore 71–2 plazas see parks, plazas and squares political activism, China 92
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 10/09/2007 12:45 Page 292
292 Index political reform: China 39; and politicization of society 28; requirements 35; role of civic space 27 political transformations, overview 33, 34 politics, space and 211–12 popular protest/dissidence: antigrowth movements 52; internet’s role 12–13; Korea 196– 8; Malaysia 114; mobilization drivers 60–2; state prevention strategies 3, 6, 30, 81–2, 169, 225, 226, 270–5, see also dis-location, see also civic engagement; global justice movement; insurgent space; public mobilization population growth 36–7 PPS (Project for Public Spaces) 105 private establishments, as civic space 11–12, 31 protest see popular protest/ dissidence proximity, right of 282–3 public baths, as civic space 10, 31 public houses, as civic space 10, 31 public housing see social housing public mobilization 37, 57, 60; China 39, 92; and civic space creation 211, 221–2, 224, see also Kwanghwamun Square; delimiting the role of 68; drivers of 60–2; Indonesia 41, 221–2, 223, 224, 225, 226–7, 227, 229; international scale 66–7; Internet’s role 73– 4, 200, 201–2, 203, 221–2, 227, 272–3, 279; Korea 197; media support 60; and selfmanagement 148– 9, 152–3, 156; Singapore 73– 4, 75– 6; targets of 40; Thailand 260; Vietnam 156–7, see also civic engagement; global justice movement; insurgent space; popular protest/dissidence public space, definition 5 public squares see parks, plazas and squares public–private partnerships 2 Quanzhou, China 132– 5, 133 Raffles, Sir Stamford 233 Ramsay, M. 106–7 religion: civic role 106–7, see also mosques restoration, of civic spaces 8
right of proximity 282–3 Rosenau, J.N. 269 rural–urban migration 43, 55, 134, 138 Sanam Luang, Bangkok 256, 262; city establishment period 255; civic function 261–3; contemporary period 259–61; evolution and function 254–61; as insurgent space 260, 261, 261–2; political reformation period 258–9; tourism 263–4; Westernization period 255–8 Sassen, S. 269–70, 273 Scalarbrini missionaries 53 Seattle 268, 275, 278, 279–82, 283, 284 Seoul: civic space overview 194–5; Plaza Park 207, see also Kwanghwamun Square September 11 attacks 10, 67, 274 Shanghai, China 92, 97–8; civic engagement 185; civic spaces 187–90; community organization hierarchy 176–8; housing policy 179; parks 189–90; sustainable development challenges 186–7; “Urban and District Work Meeting” 183; urban governance model 182–7 sidewalks: as civic space 9–10, see also Hanoi pavements Singapore: civil society development 68–70; colonial rule 68–9; community mobilization 73–4; early volatility 234–5; foreign labor force 44; freedom of speech 74; Internet community 73–4; migrant labor 239–44; Orchard Road 239–44, 240, 242, 243, 248–9; Padang 233–6, 235, 248; parks 69; participatory democracy 75–6; planning process 71–2; Raffles Plan 69, 233, 234; social housing provision 244–7, 245; Speakers’ Corner 72; state-society relations 70, 74–5; Suntec City 235, 236–9, 248 social capital 5; sources of 15 social exclusion/stratification 10, 16, 17, 40, 44, 67; commercial contributions to 11, 14, 42; countering 8–9; determinants 138; of migrant labor 55–6; and Thai cremation ceremonies 258; Thailand 260–1, 263
9780415397896_6_ind.qxd 07/09/2007 08:53 Page 293
Index 293 social housing: and civic engagement 246–7; civic space in 244–7, 245, 249; Singapore 244–7, 245 social mobilization see public mobilization social services, China 131, 182, 184 socialist countries, urbanization rates 34–5 socialist experiments 33– 4 Southeast Asian Games 166–7 squares see parks, plazas and squares stakeholdership 4 Starbucks, and civic space 11 state control of civic space 7, 10, 11–12, 76; Abbasid era 108– 9; China 39, 81–3, 123; Indonesia 30, 31, 218–19, 220–1, 220, 225, 225, 226; Malaysia 114–16; Singapore 72–3; Thailand 263, see also surveillance state-society relations: China 125–6, 129, 191–2; emerging issues 17; impact of globalization on 70–1; Indonesia 218; overview 66–7; representations of 67– 8; Singaporean characteristics 74–5; Vietnam 166–7; western and Asian perspectives 67–70 “stealth cities” 9 street vending: Bangkok 260; Vietnam see Hanoi pavements streets, China 85, 86 suburbanization 9–10 Suntec City, Singapore 31 support networks: in local communities 57; migrant labour 53 surveillance 14; China 39, 101; Indonesia 30, 218–19, 220; Korea 198– 9, 200; mosques 108– 9, 114–15, 117, 118; Singapore 18, 43, 45 Taiwan, urbanization rates 15, 36 taxation 31, 54, 80, 84, 161–3 temples, China 86, 88– 9, 88, 94 Thailand: freedom of speech 41, 258– 9; parks 41–2; political reformation 258– 9; tourism 263, see also Bangkok; Sanam Luang third places, concept analysis 57 Tiananmen Square, Beijing 13, 96, 97, 101, 268 Tocqueville, Alexis de 106, 123
tourism 14, 20, 40–2, 114, 238–9, 251, 259–60, 263–5; and displacement 40; impact on civic space 263; Malaysia 114; Singapore 238–9; Thailand 20, 41–2, 259–60, 263–5 traffic regulations, Hanoi see Hanoi traffic regulations unrest see popular protest/dissidence urban governance, Shanghai model 182–7 urban politics: globalization’s influences 51–4; local context of 54–5 urban restructuring, phases of 39–40 urbanization: derivation of Chinese 128–9; dimensions of 35; and global governance 269; social impact 123 urbanization rates 14–16, 35–8, 36; socialist countries 34–5 USA (United States of America): civic role of religion 106; deindustrialization 32; decline of the main street 9; parks 8 values, definition of Asian 70 Vietnam: administrative machinery 146; urbanization rates 15, 37, see also Hanoi “virtual communities” 12 walled cities, China 80–3, 81, 87 waterfront developments 66 WEF (World Economic Forum) 269 welfare services, Singapore 69–70 Westernization: Bangkok 255–8; China 89–93; globalization as 53–4; Thailand 255–8 World Bank 31, 33, 45 world city formation 2–3, 31, 40, 247–50 World Cup: Kwanghwamun festivities 199–201; and plaza culture in Korea 206–8 World Economic Forum 277 World Social Forum 277–8 WTO (World Trade Organization) 31, 45, 67, 237, 268 Wu Jin 80 Young, I.M. 4 Zhejiang Village, China 37, 129–32, 130, 135–7